#fluff amongst angst
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
An Offer From An Avid Reader: Swing Scene
I thought it was about time I returned to this series after a mess of my studies. Currently writing Eloise's storyline or Sophie's so for now, another little scene. A little adaptation that would take place in episode 5 before Grandma Alexandra's death. I present:
âšThe Swing Scene âš
(a rewrite of the 'garden scene' from AOFAG)
*~*~*~*~*
The opening shot focuses on Sophie reading a French book on a swing.
âYour book is upside down.â Benedict whispers, leaning over her shoulder.
Sophie jerks up and double checks, upon seeing it is a tease she glares at him half-heartedly.
âDo you live here?â
âNo,â he sits down on the swing next to hers. âAlthough my mother constantly informs me that I should continue to make myself at home no matter how old I become, or whether she is conveniently out at a picnic with the rest of my family.â
âHence why I thought I would get a blessed few hours of reading, but alas with you sitting there that will be impossible.â
âMy presence is that compelling?â
âI would say disturbing would be a more apt descriptor,â Sophie quips back, giving him another glare that lacks all malice.
âWhat I find disturbing is that my mother is gone from the house on the precise afternoon that the servants have off, yet here you are reading. So, for the third week, you have neglected your freedom and insisted on staying here.â
Sophie turns back to her book, her eyes mechanically moving without comprehension.
âI think you mean to be flattering with such statements, but I feel more unnerved by the closeness of your inspection.â
âWhy do you not go out Sophie? Why do you not join the other maids, or go shopping, or even visit Genevieve?â
âI like readingâand I do go out,â she points out, thinking of her afternoons running after a very spirited Bridgerton.
âHmm, yes, Eloiseâs little escapades,â Benedict says with a little grimace.
âI thought you support her endeavours to open her mind and prospects?â
âNot when it comes at the cost of her safety and, more importantly, yours.â
Sophei waves him off and returns to her book.
âI can handle myself perfectly fine, I have a lifetime of experience.â
âI know.â His soft tone distracts her and she turns to find a soft type of anguish on his face. âI see it. I see that shadow, that sorrow in your eye, so rarely gone.â Sophie tries to turn away, but Benedict gently turns her face back to his. âI cannot bear it when you look sad.â His fingers ghost her cheek, playing with a stray hair, âI wish you would share your secrets with me.â
âI have noââ
âYour secrets are eating you alive.â He looks into her eyes with a gaze that cuts Sophie to the core. âI would do anything to bear that burden for you.â He lifts her hand and kisses it. Sophie shifts away.
âBenedict we cannotââ
âWe couldâ"
âNo.â
Benedict sighs, a little pained but trying to cover it up. He shoots her a rueful smile.
âHave you always been this stubborn?â
âOnly when I need to beâŠand perhaps for certain individuals.â
Their easy manner of before slips back in like the tide lapping up the shore.
âI shall take that as a compliment.â
âThat was not a compliment.â
âAh, but I chose to take it as one.â
âOfcourse you would,â Sophie chuckles and so puts her hand over her mouth to smother itïżœïżœïżœas she has done all season. But just before she does, Benedict captures her hand and so, the sound breaks free.
âExcellent,â He says staring at her with a brilliant smile.
âWhat?â
âI am going to leave, and I implore for you to do only one thing.â
âOh? Only one?â
He ignores her flippancy, but instead pulls her with him as he stands , until she is close enough to see the exact hues of his eyes.
âYou shall stay here and stay smiling. It breaks my heart to see any other expression on your face.â
âYou will not be able to see me.â Less of a quip due to the slight quiver in her voice.
âI will know.â
Their breaths catch. The world shrinks. The pair lean close, noses brushingâ
âSophie!â they jerk apart at the sound of Eloiseâs call. Sophies eyes are wide and she whirls to try and find an escape.
âWe shouldââ
Benedict leans in, pecks her cheek then steals away. A couple moments later, Eloise appears and slumps in the swing recounting a vexing encounter at the picnic. Sophie joins her, ina slight daze, hand on her cheekâstill smiling.
*~*~*~*
As you can see, Iâve juggled around some bits of dialogue to still hold the romanticism of the scene but without Benedict hounding Sophie, and focusing it on the pair realising just how much they get each other on a deeper level.
A little snippet of more to come :)
Iâd love to hear your ideas/corrections/opinions and always open to chat or requests.
Or check out the list here, for more of my ideas.
Or check out the general arcs of my prospective S4 here.
#an offer from an avid reader#an offer from a gentleman#benophie#benedict bridgerton#sophie beckett#fluff amongst angst#i'm sorry for the delay#bridgerton#s4 speculation
17 notes
·
View notes
Text
cw// cancer mentioned, no character death
Eddie's moving to Chicago with his boyfriend and their best friend.
Eddie's moving to Chicago and it feels like everything is finally coming together.
Eddie's moving to Chicago, Steve Harrington is his boyfriend, and his life is starting.
Eddie's moving to Chicago, but then Wayne gets sick.
He tells Steve that he can't leave, not yet, needs to take care of his uncle.
And Steve, his Steve, perfect Steve, says with no hesitation, "I'll stay. Eddie, I'll stay with you. We'll go in six months. Together, that's the plan."
But Eddie can't let Steve do that; Steve who is everything bright and good and right in the world. Steve needs to get out, even if Eddie can't.
He insists Steve go, insists so hard that Steve can only agree, though Eddie can tell it's killing him.
Before they leave, Steve and Eddie cling to each other.
"Six months, baby. Just six months and then I'll be with you."
"I'll stay, Eds. Let me stay for you?"
"Not in a million years. What's six months in a lifetime together?"
"You mean that?" Steve whispers, the words tickling against Eddie's neck.
"Of course, sweetheart. Never meant anything more in my life."
They cling harder, crying against each other, despite it being goodbye for now and not forever.
They haven't said "I love you" yet, and the words hang on his tongue as the embrace ends, but he can't say it now; not when six months of time and 200-plus miles will separate them.
Except Wayne isn't better in six months. He's not worse, but the cancer's still there, he's still sick. And Eddie can't leave.
Eddie figured something like this would happen. Knew in the back of his mind that Steve and Robin and Chicago were never anything but a pipe dream.
When he calls Steve, he thinks he's ready.
"Okay, so Hopper's letting us borrow his truck, but he needs to know our timeline. You think next Saturday--"
"Steve." He says. His stomach clenches.
"What's wrong?" Because Steve knows, like he always does.
"Wayne's not better."
Steve is silent for a beat. "Okay...that's okay. I'll come back. Right now. Tonight. We'll do this tog--"
"You know I can't let you do that."
"Eddie--"
"No, Steve, don't. Okay? Let's just. It's time, you know?"
"It's not. Eddie, it isn't. Don't do this. Please, please," Steve cries.
"It's for the best. I know you can't see it now, but it is. You need to live your life, Stevie. Get that degree. Be someone."
"Eddie," Steve sobs. "Please. You have to know that I lo--"
"Don't," Eddie snarls. Doesn't mean to but can't hear those words, the three that will break him in two. "This is for the best, Steve. A clean break, yeah?"
"No." And Eddie hears Steve shuffling on the other end, like he's getting up. "I'm not letting you do this. I'm coming back, and we're doing this together. A lifetime, remember?"
Eddie's crying now, can't help it. "Please, don't. Steve, just--it's over, okay? I'm sorry. I'm so sorry. I can't do this anymore."
He hangs up the phone before Steve can argue, cries himself to sleep.
5 Years Later
Eddie never gets over Steve Harrington. His golden boy, the brave, perfect, kind, bratty man who has his whole heart.
Wayne is okay. Will never not have cancer, but he's doing good. And Eddie runs a record store in the town over. Visits some bars in Indy when he feels a certain kind of lonely. He's settled, finally, is the thing. He's settled and happy enough, so of course, that's when it happens.
He's at the grocery store, stopped in produce. There's a little girl, maybe 3 or 4--bright pink shirt, chestnut hair, little overalls--sitting in a cart by the tomatoes.
The sight of her sparks something in Eddie's chest, but he doesn't understand what or why, and then she's pointing at him, smiling and wiggling. "Daddy!" She shrieks.
That's when Steve Harrington swoops around the corner, reaching for the girl, his daughter, and Eddie takes a step away, ready to run from this.
The girls says, "That's the boy in all your pictures." She giggles and points at Eddie more. Steve blushes, and Eddie's assaulted by so many things all at once he thinks he may pass out.
"Stevie," he hears himself saying.
Steve freezes, looks at Eddie, so much knowing in those hazel eyes it makes him a little sick. But it still surprises him when Steve pulls him into a hug. Being in those arms again, It's like everything keeping him together falls apart. He sinks into the hold, breathes in deep, feels like home.
It shouldn't, though. Steve's got a kid. Probably a wife. Can't have his ex-boyfriend falling apart in his arms in the grocery store. Eddie disengages, steps back a little. Steve blinks, eyelashes fluttering, and Eddie is still so in love with him it hurts.
"I should--I should go," he mumbles, gripping at the back of his neck like it's a lifeline. The little girl giggles more, bouncing in her seat, and he's overcome with fondness. Can't help but give her an exaggerated bow as he goes.
He makes himself walk to the end of the aisle, but once he's left Steve behind, he runs.
That night, when a knock comes at his door, nothing prepares him for a sheepish Steve Harrington standing on the other side.
"Sorry to drop by unannounced," Steve says, manners still impeccable. "Wayne gave me your address. I'm glad--I'm glad he's doing okay, Eddie."
Eddie's too astonished to respond, nods for a few seconds before, "Th-thanks. Uhh, you wanna come in?"
Steve does and then they're in Eddie's little living room together and what the fuck is he supposed to do?
"Where's the kid?" he asks. He gestures Steve to the couch.
Steve smiles, a soft thing that's a knife to Eddie's heart. "Oh, I left her with Robin. They'll be fine for a few hours. Her name's Ellie, by the way. Ellie Jane Harrington."
"She knows who I am?" Eddie asks.
"Course. I told her about everyone. Showed her pictures. I hoped she could meet you one day."
"Yeah?" Eddie can't stand the thing that unfurls in his chest, blooming with love, so much care it aches in his teeth. "I swear next time I won't run away."
Steve laughs, hazel eyes fond in a way that Eddie can't look at for too long. "You didn't run away, Eds. It was a weird--reunion."
Eddie chuckles, pulls hair over his face. "A little bit. Not every day you run into your ex and his daughter scoping out tomatoes."
"I was hoping to give you a call, ask you out to dinner, or something. Not my kid recognizing you at Bradley's Big Buy."
"You wanna take me out to dinner, Stevie?" He asks before he can think better of it. Steve blushes red, and god Eddie missed him.
"Thought it might be nice, yeah. Get to know each other again."
It's Eddie turn to blush. "Why are you here?" He asks, good of a segue as any.
"Here, like, in your apartment, or here in Hawkins?"
"Both."
"I'm--uh--the new counselor at Hawkins High. Might coach the basketball team."
"But--Chicago," is all Eddie can say.
Steve laughs. "It was fun for a while, but--I don't know, man, it got hard with a kid. Joyce told me about the job opening and I decided to try."
"And Ellie's mom?" Eddie doesn't want to ask, can't stand not knowing.
Steve's eyes fall. "Ah," his hands squeeze into fists. "She's not in the picture. Never really was. After--" he takes a deep breath. "After we broke up, I sort of. Lost myself for awhile. Slept around. One night, I got this call saying that a baby had been surrendered at a fire station, my name listed as the father."
"Oh, sweetheart. I bet you didn't hesitate."
Steve stares at his hands, smiles. "Not for a second. I cried when I saw her, Eds. Just fucking sobbed. She was so beautiful. Then I had to figure out how to raise a kid and finish school."
"But you did it." Eddie can't hide that he's crying anymore.
Steve nods, is crying too.
"I'm really proud of you, sweetheart," Eddie whispers.
They look at each other, tear stained and sad but somehow so happy, and Steve leans forward, presses his mouth to Eddie's. He freezes, shocked to stillness, overwhelmed with the thing he never thought he'd have again.
Steve pulls back, face red and eyes wide. "I'm so sorry. I got it in my head--" he stands, fumbling for his keys. "I should have never--you told me we were done and I know you meant it. But I saw you in the grocery store and I thought, you know, I'm never getting over him. I'm so stup--"
"Steve, wait" Eddie snaps out of it all at once, hurrying to where the man he's never stopped loving is shoving his feet inexpertly into his shoes.
"Don't leave," he says, almost whispering. "Please don't leave. Steve, I'm so, so sorry for how I ended things. I was so young and stupid, and--I didn't want you to lose your dreams for me."
Steve turns then, tears trickling down his cheeks. "You were my dream, Eds. You still are. I should have come back, made you let me stay. But I thought--maybe your feelings had changed. That you didn't--that you weren't--"
Eddie can't help it, pulls Steve into his arms. "I was. I am. You're all I've ever wanted." He presses his face to Steve's hair, breathes in deep. "I loved you then. I love you now. I've loved you every day in between."
"I love you," Steve sobs. "I love you so much."
They kiss, lips slotting together like they never stopped. It's salty with tears, but it's perfect. It's them.
Their mouths part, but they stay in each other's orbit; need the proximity after years apart.
"I have a kid now, Eddie," Steve says into the silence between them.
"Yeah," Eddie nods. "She's beautiful. Looks like her dad."
Steve smiles, flushes again. "She needs stability in her life, you know? She's my priority. Always will be. And if I--if this--"
Eddie knows. Understands his boy just as well now as he did back then. "We'll take it as slow as you need, baby. I want to be there for both of you. When you're ready. And until then, I'll be wherever you need me."
More tears escape Steve's eyes, but Eddie brushes them away. "We have a lifetime to figure it out."
#steddie#steve x eddie#steve harrington#eddie munson#ficlet#oneshot#break up#second chance at love#reconnection#mutual pining#angst#angst with a happy ending#girl dad steve harrington#steve harrington has a kid#good nephew eddie munson#wayne has cancer#getting back together#eventually ellie calls eddie daddy and everyone cries#soft#a little bit of fluff amongst the heartache
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
Amphibia is proof that the best character writing tip is to make everyone at least a little bit problematic
#this is why all of my OCs are horrible people in one way or another#this goes for relationships too#lum1ty is cute and all but nothing about it ever destroyed me nearly as much as even the most tame scene between any members of#the calamity trio. and ik it's because the relationship between those 3 is what drives the story while lum1ty is a romantic subplot and all#but my objection is: that's precisely the problem#it's supposedly meant to be the fluff amongst the angst. a refuge from everything else that happens in the show#plus it's not the MAIN main relationship of the show - the main relationship is between Eda Luz and King#but... i genuinely believe divorcing lum1ty from the rest of the story does them a disservice. imagine how could it would have been if#they let amity be a little bit worse. deeper into the emperor's coven or something. with a more intense rivalry w luz#characters in toh just need more Drama imo especially luz's friends#hunter is great *because* he's Dramatic#this isn't toh bashing. i love toh. i just can't help but feel it's an example of characters being too... *nice*#cant remember who said that the only thing worth writing about was the human heart in conflict with itself and#im sorry but you can't convince me a character like gus or willow is just as much in conflict with themselves as like. idk. hop pop.
40 notes
·
View notes
Text
#oooc#thank you everyone for your support#I have felt a little out of place amongst everyone because im not the most proactive when it comes to the spice#I have more experience writing fluff/comfort and angst/horror/fighting and such. The times I have is with mutuals im really close to#i will absolutely entertain the idea of sinday asks and such because it makes me laugh like crazy being able to write flustered goku#but i will probably take a while to write anything downright smut/spicey#i'm also working on making something to see who would be interested in shipping with Goku. A ship checker#mainly just to see who'd be interested and then try and slowly plot it out or ya know#alright i've rambled enough in tags im now going to go be emotional for an hour because im an emotional wreck of a person and i need#my ice cream to cope
13 notes
·
View notes
Text
[The moment they get home from Miss Shine's house, Theo runs to Blaire's room, hugging his little brother]
I'm so sorry for being mean and running away!
[Blaire is startled, but eventually hugs back]
It's ok... I'm sorry for shouting as well...
[The two embrace tightly. Theo's finally home. ]
#hatchetfield rp#ooc - Need some fluff amongst the angst fest!!!#ooc - also slightly out of order but that's ok we live laugh love
2 notes
·
View notes
Text
@barrelcrow said:
Forehead kiss for Inej :)))
â GOOD MORNING TO YOU TOO, â she murmurs at the feeling of lips pressed to her forehead. her voice is thick with sleep. once upon a time, it was a struggle even to sleep in the same bed â for both of them, drowning and choking and vanishing night after night, their demons dogging their heels. but patience and persistence healed what wounds time could not. now, she can't imagine sleeping without kaz's warm presence next to her. inej rolls over, pushes herself upright, and stifles a yawn. it's still dark outside â she always wakes with the sun these days. â up already? â
#ic.#inej threads.#barrelcrow#inej bond » barrelcrow ( i think iâm lost without you. )#{ just a little casual post-ck fluff amongst the angst }#{ im imagining like 3-5 yrs after? inej has a fleet so she can stay around or take kaz with her when she does go }#{ feel free to create a circumstance for kaz getting up early. or not! SDKHSKJDSHD left it open for us to explore a lil domestic plot }
1 note
·
View note
Photo
Makes me so happy đđ„°đ
A dumb Good Omens comic.
#đ„°#oh this is so cute#absolutely need a bit of fluff peppered amongst all the angst#fluff#good omens fanart#good omens
6K notes
·
View notes
Text
"in every life"
curse reincarnation, fluff
ryomen sukuna x reader
Synopsis: you, a former sorcerer and sukuna's wife, are killed in the heian era. sukuna does not believe in a life without you, so he takes it upon himself to bring you back a thousand years later
to sum it up: you are sukuna's life, and no matter how long he has to wait, he will bring you back to him by any means necessary
WC: 3,621
Warning(s): angst in the beginning, reader death (but you're revived), brief icky descriptions of a vessel's possession
-> ask | sukuna fic list
Sukuna remembers the exact moment you left him, soul fluttering almost gracefully from your eyes as your body fell limply into his four arms.
The moment replays in his mind as though it had only happened yesterday, or perhaps as recently as a few hours prior. Time has never been something the king of curses worried himself over, for his strength and existence exceeded such mortal constructs, but when his thoughts wander to you as frequently as air fills and deflates from his lungs, the very concept grows skewed and suddenly, time is a matter of great importance to him.
A king is nothing without his queen beside him, his rock, his partner, and that is what you are. That is what you were, but Sukuna refuses to address you in any form of past tense because your temporary withdrawal from the planet and from his side would never alter the fact that you are his, that you have been his, and that you will be his until the end of time.Â
Sukuna has never been one for romantics, for connections that tie his free spirit down from the unfettered, terrifying rule that he leads, but when you entered his life, his opinions shifted and his ambitions changed, making room for you at his side upon his throne.Â
The two of you had been married for years before you left him. Sukuna had never bothered to count, but now he finds himself mulling over the yearsâ contents in search of a piece of your memory that can stay with him until the time comes for you to return to his hand.Â
When you were alive, Sukuna never fathomed you leaving his side. He almost feels he should punish you for so abruptly taking an absence from him without permission, castigating your spirit until he feels that the space you once occupied close to him emanates remnants of an apology, of guilt, of a promise to never do such a foolish thing ever again.Â
When you were alive, you were a sight to behold, a perfect fit for the title of his wife. You were deserving of each and every privilege he bestowed upon you; of holding his face in your small, dainty hands, of pressing your lips to the textured plate of his face, of throwing your legs over his thighs as you settle onto his lap with a large, burly arm coming around you and securing you there for all of his servants and former concubines to see how high you sit amongst him and how low they remain beneath the two of you.Â
You always said what you were thinking. While he ensured that everyone within and outside of his temple feared him, you were always unaffected by his intimidating presence. He remembers one instance in which you were lying beneath him, a mess of silk fabrics swarming your bare figure over your reserved place in his bed with your hair splayed out messily over the pillows and your eyes weighted with a foolish look of what he could only describe as enchantment and tender allegiance.
He feels the ghost of your fingers trace his jaw as he looks down at you quietly, dwarfing you in his mass. A smile touches your soft lips with a rosy hue swirling over your (s/c) skin.Â
âYour eyes are quite beautiful.â
Your voice is a whisper of past enamorations through Sukunaâs ear as his brows arch in reminiscence. He remembers how he glared at you in confusion, face hard though he always allowed you to continue admiring him, to continue touching him without consequence. His eyes, which mirror the color of fresh, crimson blood as he has watched it gurgle from the mouths and limbs of his victims, staining the streets, his hands, and his monstrous legacy, are windows you believe to be⊠beautiful.
Your sentiments never failed to befuddle him. He never did understand why you associated such a ferocious beast with beliefs so light and pure. He is not beautiful, he had thought. He never desired to be beautiful. He is simply Ryoman Sukuna, enough of himself to be categorized in unique isolation, separate from your labels of aesthetic charm and peace.Â
Youâre silly. Silly with love and submission, he thinks, but he has never denied you of these admirations though he fails to agree.Â
Besides, you are his wife. He would have allowed you to worship him in any way you pleased if you asked, and in truth, you hardly did ask. You knew what you were to Sukuna, how you and only you remained the only soft spot that the salmon haired demon withheld in his breast. You were beyond requesting approval to love him in the ways you saw fit, and Sukuna was pleased because you knew, in all spaces, that you were his and he was yours.Â
Among all the trophies of battles won, of cities conquered, of titles obtained, you are Sukunaâs greatest prize.Â
His love for you was always silent, long glances and grips of the waist, orders to slaughter on your behalf and the pat of his hand over his beefy thigh to beckon you over. His love was an unrestrained space for you to express your desires, to demand his attention, and his compliance with a veil of frustration poorly masking his easy willingness to give you anything you pleased. His love was long, sleepless nights, the marking of his territory by means of stinging bites and purple bruises over your smooth skin that no living being in his wake could mistake for anything but a reminder of your connection to him.Â
His love was you incarnate, just a woman before hellâs greatest crown, but his love no less. His wife. His queen. His eternity.
Sukuna does not know why he mourned you when you died. He found himself reacting impulsively, in a short-lived panic when your blood spilled over his skin and your eyes lost the light that heâd been following through the tunnel of his rein for years.Â
He knows death is a taboo concern only for mortals to fret over, but when you die, he feels as though he has died himself. Your life flashes before his eyes, your time with him, and this strange ache swarms his body and manifests as a ball in his throat as his ruby hues melt over you in alarm.Â
He struggles to accept your parting. Heâs viciously angry, a horrible wreck that his servants fear stepping too close into proximity as the time passes and your vacancy weighs itself over his temple and his body like a mountain. He had believed your death to be painful, but the period that follows, the period of waiting stings him like no pain he has endured before.Â
A king needs his queen, and without you, no matter for how long, he feels empty. He rampages his heartache away, but it no longer holds the satisfaction it did when you were with him, watching from the sidelines and cheering him on. His estate feels colder somehow, the dent youâve left in his bed losing its shape and the memory of you fading from othersâ minds, but not from his. Never from his.Â
Sukuna knows that he will see you again. In any era, no matter how much farther into the future, he will find you once more, bring you back to his embrace, and dust off the crown that he has reserved for your pretty head alone.Â
He holds onto a piece of you, storing it safely, awaiting the time to revive you even within his own cursed slumber after having sealed himself for a millenia, severing parts of him and scattering it over the country.
You, however, remain stowed safely in one place. A place he will remember to return to when he reawakens in rebirthed flesh.
Now, a millenia following your untimely death, Sukuna stares emptily at the woman before him, curling and tossing around with bound wrists and ankles at his feet.
Sheâs crying, screams of horror rising into the starry sky as Sukunaâs eyes glint menacingly beneath the moonlight. He watches her carefully, curling his lips. He looks at this pest, this fragile, forgettable mortal woman and sees everything that you are not. For a moment, he hesitates, his fingers clutching over the ancient parchment wrapped object he holds protectively within his grasp at his side.Â
His brows draw together in frustration induced by your vessel. He knows he picked wisely, however, he can not deny the hesitation that captures his mind when he contemplates whether this vessel will do your worth justice. Whether it will truly bring you back the way he plans for you to be.Â
He holds up the object in his hand, your energy emitting from behind the paper and through his veins, easing into his blackened soul. You are practically calling to him, holding his hand, murmuring into his ear that it will be okay.Â
Sukuna is reminded then and there solely by the spirit of you that nothing in this world could even begin to dwindle the brilliance in which you shine, that even within the body of a bird or a squirrel, your essence would burst through. You will reincarnate wholly as how you left him, and as nothing less.Â
With a heavy exhale through his nose, Sukuna unravels the object, tossing the parchment to the ground, and takes a step forward to approach the young woman squirming in the grass before him. He walks over her, feet planted on either side of her figure, and bends down. Her eyes go white with terror as snot and tears dribbles over her nose and down her cheek. Sukuna looks into her coldly, grasping a hand over her face and digging his black nails into her jaw.Â
She shudders an agonizing, shrill screech that is soon muffled by the manner in which Sukuna squeezes her cheeks inward and forcefully pries her mouth open.Â
With a steely, disconnected glare, Sukuna takes the object imbued with your cursed energy, your ring finger. He pulls your wedding band from the decrepit digit and pushes it to the womanâs lips. Her eyes go wide as she chokes over her jawâs lack of mobility, and the taste of something foreign and timeworn on her tongue. Her stuttered, whimpering gasps release and she gargles once Sukuna pushes the object down her throat. He slaps his hand back over her mouth as it slides down her throat and she twitches uncontrollably, eyes cracking with red veins.Â
The king of curses holds her still as her body flops wildly, her chest lurching forward and limbs flying about. Her body can not handle the intrusion of a thousand year old sorcererâs influence, so it fails. Her eyes roll into her skull and her fingers twitch once her limbs have stilled in the grass. A symphony of crickets chirping lifts into Sukunaâs ears as the woman beneath him goes completely silent, dead, still.
He waits. After a millennia of existence confined to cursed flesh, after years of the cold left in your wake nipped at his skin, after battling bodies for dominance over a vessel, he waits just a few seconds more for you.
After it seems as though he has lost you for a second time, the bodyâs eyes flicker. Sukuna stills above you, pupils shrunken in anticipation.
Movement shifts beneath him. A chest rises, and breathing begins steadily through it. The color of this vesselâs skin shifts, transitioning slowly, milking into the hue of gentle (s/c) that Sukuna once caressed with his rough fingers. Color flushes through pale cheeks, and irises of (e/c) roll back from the skull and stare widely ahead, directly into Sukunaâs gaze. Finally, your voice comes, a gentle hum of confusion and discomfort as you regain your lost senses.
Sukunaâs heart skips as the familiar warmth of your body emanates from beneath him again, and his hand is slowly sliding from your parted lips. He feels as though heâs just run a marathon despite his inability to wind himself. He breathes out heavily, gradually, and silence envelopes the two of you in the darkness of the late night.Â
While Sukuna had planned this from the very moment you went dead in his hands, he feels somehow starstruck by you. You look as beautiful as you were centuries in the past, skin smooth, brows curled, lips soft as though you had not been gone from his life for more than a brief second. You have returned to him as he had thoughtfully calculated, and yet, he can not fathom the fact that you are here at long last, mere centimeters away, manifested into truth by his graze of your chin.Â
The muscles in your brows pull together in disbelief, glimmering eyes shining over as you take in the sight before you. The last thing you felt was a blade slicing into your heart and ripping down through your body, the last vision of Sukuna racing to throw you into him as your opponent met his end with the selective mutilation of his internal organs at your husbandâs hard, feral, red glance.
You blink hurriedly, shooting a hand out to your husbandâs bicep. â...Ryo?â you whisper in a trembling voice, knowing him by gaze and presence and touch alone.Â
The said demonâs brows angle and his body lurches forward with a sharp exhale upon hearing your voice utter his name outside of the confines of his mindâs nostalgia and imagination. He is overcome by the return of you to him, eyes fiery with longing for his once lost love and shoulders aching as the weight that had been crushing down finally releases. The sensation of your fingers curling over his arm sends chills down his spine, for time has never altered Sukunaâs course of existence, but time tells in the way he physically shivers when your loving contact revives on his skin after having been stripped of him for what feels like eternity.
Tears pool in your eyes and your shaky hands raise to smooth over his face, exploring his marked skin and familiarizing yourself with the structure of the being you fell in love with many lifetimes ago. Sukunaâs brow flinches as you feel over his face, and his own palm cradles over your cheek, dwarfing your head in the fashion it always used to as the back of his fingers skim over your heated flesh.Â
âRyomen,â you say his name again, voice crumbling and your shoulders jerking in awe.
He trips down into you, hands clutching over your head as you guide his face down with his hasty movements. Your name tumbles hoarsely from his rumbling voice, against your lips, and slotting into your mind in a haze as his lips meet yours urgently.Â
You cry gently into him, lips parting and pushing back in as he kisses you fervently, savoring you, burrowing you into his bodyâs memory to recover the time he has spent deprived of you. Your hands fly over his neck, down his back, detailing the ridges and the muscles rippling beneath the fabric of his shirt that you know so well. He presses himself down into you, pulling you in closer by your head, flushing your chests together to intertwine your souls once more. Heady grunts and growls heave into your mouth between frenzied, stunned, satisfied kisses, and each time a tear of yours catches into the liplock, Sukuna is pulling it into his lips, saltiness swirling through the sweet release of his misery.Â
Heâs missed you. So very much, heâs missed you. He doesnât know how he has managed to go so long without you now that you are here again, now that he is holding you again, kissing you again.Â
âMy king,â you whimper when you get a chance to break away, foreheads bumping as Sukuna shushes you gently.
âDo not fret, peach,â he soothes you, lips brushing yours as his now loving gaze spills into your own. âYou are alright.â
Despite Sukunaâs ruthlessness and his wild murderous expeditions, as well as his blood-curdling tone that further accentuates the weight of his threats when thrown into the direction of others, Sukuna melts into calmness for you, his low voice mellow and meditative, enraptured in the peace that you bring him. You know all sides of your dear husband, and yet this is the rawest side of him that you know, that he treats you with.Â
âWhat happened?â you whisper as his hands run over you, catching your tears and tracing the curves of your flesh. âWhere are we?â
âIn the garden,â he answers you easily, kissing the corner of your mouth gently.Â
âAt⊠at home?âÂ
He hums in affirmation, leaning back just a bit to stare into you. The pairs of your eyes shine as they absorb the image of one another, still and sincere. Grass tickles your ears and your arms, and you look down, realizing that you are lying in a patch of greenery. You slowly tilt your head to the side, and Sukuna keeps his gaze glued to you like you will disappear before him. Your eyes capture the stems of daffodils and lavender that sprout around your head, pointing into the night sky and swaying gently in the warm breeze. You recognize the plants as the ones you had always taken to tending by the creek behind Sukunaâs temple, which he had the servants fashion as a suitable garden for you to indulge in.Â
You do not recall being here last. You recall dying. You recall your world going dark.
You turn back to meet his heavy eyes. âWhat did you do?â
He is silent for a moment, taking his time to study you before answering as though the question is the simplest one he has ever been asked. âI have brought my queen back to me. As I have always sworn to do if we were ever separated.â
â...How long have we been separated?â
âIt does not matter.â
âHow long was I away from you, Ryo? How long did I leave you for?â
âIt does not matter,â he reiterates gently yet ever so firmly. âDo not think of it.â
âPlease-â you frown, eyes shining over again. âI hadnât- I didnât mean to leave you. I donât know how I even let it happen⊠I canât imagine what that must have gone throughâŠâ
Ryomen catches the guilt in your gorgeous eyes and he is quick to gather you up in his arms. He pulls you up slowly, keeping your eyes locked as you allow him to lift you from the ground with his arms wound tightly over your waist. Your hands go to Sukunaâs shoulders as he kneels over you, keeping you steady and upright, face to face, nose to nose, eye to eye.Â
âI refuse to allow the first thing you do in reincarnated life to be reminding me of what life was like without you,,â he says. âI do not wish to revisit it. It does not matter,â he repeats for a third time.Â
You tilt your head with the tug of your lips downward sadly, threading your hands through his pink locks and holding onto the nape of his neck. The moonlight milks over you regally, as though the stars have aligned for this very moment, to illuminate you both in the universeâs joyous eye. You swallow hard. âAm I a curse?â
âYou are my wife. I will not tolerate you labeling yourself as anything different..â
You inhale deeply, bringing your forehead back to him and closing your eyes. His arms pull you in tight, rhythmic breaths easing you into this reality complacent, affectionately, lovingly.Â
âIâm sorry I left you, my love,â you murmur.
Now that heâs heard you apologize, seen your remorse sparked by something out of your control, he doesnât fare well with it.Â
You are not a plague to him, a burden, and telling him that you are sorry in his mind now insinuates such. Even after leaving him, after stealing away his warmth, after haunting his slumber and his consciousness for eons, he does not fault you. He would never fault the woman he chose to keep by his side in wellness and in death.Â
He does not accept your apology. You have done nothing but love him, yet Sukuna is the one who should have protected you.Â
He runs a hand over the back of your head, down your hair, and exudes his message of impenetrable love to you through his embrace and sweltering red eyes. âAll I ask of you is that you stay. In this era and the next. Stay by my side as you are meant to be.â
You nod eagerly against him. âI will,â you whisper. âI will, I promise.â
Sukuna reaches down at his side for the ring he had set down. With one hand to your back, he pulls your wedding band forward and presents it to your twinkling eye. You gasp.Â
âYou still have it,â you sigh.
âIn what world would I not?âÂ
You bring your hand down, spreading your fingers, and you watch as the kind of curses slips the rusted treasure over your finger, fitting it perfectly into place with the renewal of your marriage and the reunion of your hearts.
You admire the way it looks upon your hand happily, and Sukuna drags you back into his lips, pecking you tenderly before moving back in with his hands firm to you. You shift further up so that his arms can completely take you in, heads bumping as your lips swim together in commemoration of a rebirth into a new life.
#jjk x reader#jujutsu kaisen#jjk fandom#jjk fanfic#anime#jjk#jjk season 2#jjk x you#jujutsu kaisen sukuna#ryomen sukuna#sukuna x reader#ryomen sukuna x reader#sukuna ryomen x reader#ryomen x reader#sukuna angst#sukuna fluff#sukuna x reader fluff
8K notes
·
View notes
Text
đđđąđ§đ đŠđČ đĄđđđ«đ âïž
Rockstar!gojo x art student!femreader
synopsis- satoru gojo fell in love with you when he was 17. He tried everything to gain your attentionâjoining the student council, participating in every extracurriculars, performing well in academics yet nothing worked. That was until high school. In college, having been forced into a band, he needed to find a new artist for their posters which he requested shoko to take care of. What he didn't expect was shoko to bring you as a volunteerâ
warnings- college!au, satoru being heads over heels for you, heâs so damn in LOVE save my boy, friends to lovers, misunderstanding, SEMI PUBLIC SMUT, fingering, oral fem receiving, PUSSY DRUNK GOJO, dirty talk, creampie, BALL OF FLUFF, ANGST, mentions of smoking and alcoholism, super cute ending
w.c- 8.2k (have faith)
a/n's note- i'd poured out my heart in this (especially the smut). i hope you all do like this. your comments and reblogs are highly appreciated as it helps motivating me for writing long ass fics. taglist is open you can ask me to join. love ya' all!!
When satoru met you for the first time, he was 11 years old.Â
You were the daughter of his motherâs friend whom he heard of so many times. Though the accidental reunion in the mall while grocery shopping was the first time satoru ever had the opportunity to meet you face to face.Â
It was a totally random encounter, coincidental even, you can say when your mother recognised satoruâs mom and both squealed like teenagers. They'd a lot to catch up with, thus having their kids entertain each other in the play section was convincing enough for them to chit chat in a cafe.
And this is how satoru ended up being stuffed, hand in hand with you, to go enjoy in the play section as his mother patted his back, asking him to be good to you.Â
âDon't leave her hand, okay toru?! Make sure you both stay together.â His mom said before scooting herself with your mom.Â
Satoru looked at you, his hand locked in yours as you made eye contact with him before shying away, looking in the other direction. He stood confused before pulling you to the gaming section, without any word.Â
He scanned amongst the box of video games, before pulling out one which caught his eyes with his unoccupied hand. He gave a side look to you, reluctantly asking âyou want to play this?âÂ
You gaze down at the video game he held in his hands, eyes sparkling a bit, if satoru wasn't seeing things, then raise your head to look at him again. âIt has vibrant colours.âÂ
Satoru nodded, feeling a little giddy that you liked his preference. âIt's called mario kart.â
âOh.â Your eyes widened as he revealed the name.Â
âDo you know how to play it?â You shake your head at his question. âThen I can teach you!âÂ
âReally?âÂ
âYeah, let's go and install it on the playstation.âÂ
By the time satoruâs mother returns with your mum, they find satoru giggling along with you, hands still locked with each other, as he points to various stacked video games.Â
That day slowly came to an end and satoru didn't get to see you for the next two years till your giggles became a distant echo and your face a blur.Â
By the time he was 14, he almost forgot you.Â
Until that one day when he noticed you, sitting alone with your lunch staring at the sky at the campus of his high school.Â
You were biting on your chopsticks with dreamy eyes as recognition drew in satoru's mind.Â
Y/nâ he thought. His brows frowned, thoughts slowly going in a muddle. How are you here? eating lunch in his high school campus unlessâ you're a student over here too! Satoru felt foolish, his lips slowly curving in a smile lifting one hand, abandoning the basketball in the other to greet you.Â
However, before he can get his words voiced out to you, gaining your attention, a brown haired girl comes up to you dragging you along with her in a hurry.Â
Satoru's hand froze in mid air, awkwardly stretching it above his head before bringing it down and turning towards his friends. He sprinted back to his group resuming the game, yet his mind stayed with you and your dreamy eyes.Â
He wanted to say âhiâ and watch your eyes grow wide before nodding your head just like you did back then. He wanted to show you the basketball he was holding and maybe teach you how to play ball just like he did back then.Â
âOi satoru! Why are you missing the catch?!â one of his friends shouted, breaking him free of his daze. âsorryâŠtaking a break!â He said, excusing himself, before going and plopping himself down on a nearby bench.Â
He recognised the brown haired girlâYura. She often came to him asking for little favours. Did she know you? A friend? You studied in the same school and yet he only saw you today. Where were you all this time? Satoru was the same age as you. So you were bound to be in the same class, maybe different sections but he knew students from the other sections too. How come he didn't notice you yet?
The recess was over soon and he ran back to his class. Before entering the class, he noticed you again, hurrying to the class next to him.Â
Class 1-2.
Satoru felt silly as he read the classroom name in his mind.Â
As the final semester rolled on and a new semester started, satoru found out class 1-2 changed to class 2-2 and this year he was in the same section as yours.Â
He was excited to finally be able to talk to you without any awkwardness. After all, you were in the same classroom nowâ which means you will know him when he introduces himself on the first day of class. You will see him, introducing himself aloud and clear and recognition will draw on your face as you remember him.Â
That's what he initially thought the night before the first class. Until satoru felt the urge to perfect his speech and kept on practicing it, holding the crumpled sheet in his clammy hands, past midnight.Â
As a result he woke up late and by the time he hurried himself to school, the self introduction was half-over. He mumbled his apologies to his homeroom teacher, before hastily introducing himself and going to his assigned seat.Â
With that his perfect speech plan of gaining your attention bombed miserably. He raised his head in the direction of your seatâfirst row second desk, way far than hisâ fourth row last desk.Â
That's when he decided with the determination inclining in his heart to get your attention and make you remember that it's him.Â
The plan was simple. He just have to wait till recess and watch his chances closely. Once you're free and alone he will go make a move saying âhelloâ! Maybe even ask for your number.Â
Recess hour came by and his plan chose to bite the dust with girls and boys swarming around him to get his number and be friends with him. The group kept him occupied for the entirety of the recess and by the time he was done you were no where to be found in class.Â
Similar things happened the next day and the next day and the next day, never ceasing to leave him alone.Â
Satoru eventually came up with another planâ excelling in academics. The more he's good in academics, the more are the chances for you to come up to him wanting his help to understand a problem. And the plan worked exceptionally well with girls frequenting him with a doubt in their lessonâ except for you.Â
This time satoru came up with his active participation in extracurriculars and sports. The more he active he is the more is the chance of you joining the same activity or maybe seek his assistance for the upcoming sports day.
This plan too, was indeed prodigious and did attracted a lot of attention except yours.Â
His last option was of joining the student council. As the spirited member of the top student council, you might come up to him with a problem you're facing or anything you want to change.Â
So, without thinking much he did joined the student council, hoping to finally gain your attention. However the following week, concerns and requests for changes decreased promptly. The other council members sighed, few scrutinizing satoru. After all no one in the entire school would want their so very handsome, energetic and popular Satoru Gojo to have a heavy work load after school.Â
âSince we don't have any work to do now, thanks to gojo-kun, I'd gladly like you all to only maintain the regular class desk arrangement.â the student council president announced before leaving the council room.Â
Satoru sighed, this isn't what he thought. He just wanted your attention not the entire schoolâs. Everyone looked at him, when he walked, when he sat, when he ate, people always turned around to take a second look. Yet you never laid your eyes on him. Even being in the same class you never came up to him to chat.Â
Back slouched, with his tie undone, he slammed the door open of his classroom to pick up his bag.Â
You flinched.Â
Hand covering your mouth, a dust wiper on the other, you looked at him as he froze.Â
One entire year, was how satoru spent to gain your attention, to get you look at him, and when it finally happened the time seemed to halt. The sun rays pooled into the room with slow breezes messing up your bangs and satoru couldn't mutter a word but stare.
Conscious about him gaping, he tore his gaze away from you before shutting the door, this time gently.Â
The council president asked them to take care of class desk arrangements. However, the desks in his classroom have always been arranged, even before he joined the student council.
âyouâŠum arrange the desks everyday?â He said fixing his tie, slowly walking up to his desk, wiped clean by you. âYes.âÂ
Satoru accompanies you cleaning and arranging for the rest of the time in complete silence. Soon you take your leave, and so does satoru but this was the time he was happy like really really happy.Â
He didn't exchange any words of recognition with you, from the day at the mall. He didn't talk. Yet he was beaming radiant, for just being with you, momentarily alone, in peace.Â
That day soon came to an end and another year passed by. Satoru did nothing but admire you from afar. This was the only way he felt the closest to you. He saw how you wiped and arranged the desks everyday; help people without even letting them notice; lend the only pencil you have without a word; and care for the garden whose garish flowers were disregarded by others.Â
The more he saw, the more he knew you. And the more he felt his heart slipping away.Â
You were kind, gentle and soft. You noticed people behind their masks. You regarded the smallest of the things with such care. And your delicate hands, often smeared with paint, held the responsibility of others without complaining.Â
He often saw yura asking favours from you, shoving her cleaning duties to you, sending you to get her lunch from the 7-eleven nearby and never once you said 'no'. You were so so precious.Â
He knew heâd to stop; the way you engrossed him, linger on his mind all day to the point that he was unable to think of anything but you was straight up creepy but his eyes never stopped searching for you.
Even in the midst of the crowds on a random road his eyes would unconsciously seek for you.Â
And by the time he was 17, satoru was hopelessly, absurdly and miserably in love with you.
Another year passed by and he could do nothing but stare. And the fact that you often looked at him too made things even worse.Â
He was so down bad for you that he couldn't keep on going like this anymore. He was so sure he'd confess to you on the day of graduating the high school, not caring about rejection.Â
Satoru stayed up an entire night, perfecting his confession. But by the time the graduation ceremony ended and he went to look out for you, you were nowhere to be found.Â
He asked yura about you, to which she replied that you went back home early and satoru had his heart broken at 18.Â
He couldn't move on easily but giving you up was the only option left. Unwillingly, satoru made his devastating decision of giving you up. He never thought he would see you again until a few years later in college, shoko brought you right in front of him.Â
âWe need a new artist to cover up for this concert.â said geto suguru, stuffing his phone back in his pockets. âWhy? What happened to ren?âÂ
âGot himself into an accident and fractured his right arm.â Geto plops himself back down on the couch beside satoru, before pulling on the fretboard of his bass.Â
âShould visit him then.âÂ
âForget it.âÂ
âWhy?â frowned satoru, geto suguruâhis best friend, the one he went to middle and high school with, was not the type to feign indifference. His behavior indeed had satoru confused.Â
âNanami informed he got drunk at the last concert before getting himself into the accident. Drunk driving it is.âÂ
âDid yaga find out about this?âÂ
âFortunately, he didn't. Nanami covered the case before him finding out,â geto brought his hand, swiping back his string of bangs, âif it reaches yaga, he will ban us from using the campus stadium.â
âlucky I'd sayâŠso what now?â The next concert is in 3 days and the band poster is still incomplete.Â
Shortly after satoru joined his college, suguru started a band along with two other guys. The band was doing well but due to a disagreement they decided to split up. Suguru then suggested satoru join the band and the following year they gained another member named nanami kento.Â
They used to hold performances at random pubs but as its popularity increased, the college decided to give them the campus stadium to hold their concerts. Something they did extra was hiring an artist to do their band posterâ hand-drawn. It'd become a little traditionâ a lucky charm says suguru, and now that their artist had broken his hand right at the eleventh hour before the concert they will have toâÂ
âFind a new one.âÂ
ânanaââ geto shuts him before he could finish his sentence. âNanami is trying his best, so am I. So, you try finding one too.â
âHow am I supposed to?âÂ
âWell I'm sure if you go with a face like this to the art department, people would volunteer in a line.âÂ
âSame goes with you, why don't you go and ask. I'm sure if you could wear your shirt a little loose you can surely get your clingy ex find a good one." Gojo says in a mocking tone, grabbing his guitar and looping it around his back before leaving the club.
He was sure annoyed, but he will have to find one, geto wasn't in a mood to joke earlier either. Rather than going by himself, he decided to ask shoko get it done for him; he was sure she'd agree for a few packs of cigarettes.Â
Walking on his way to the parking lot he texted shoko to meet at their regular cafe.Â
âSup!âÂ
Satoru smiled knowing shoko could never fail him, even if she didn't agree right away a little guilt trip will do.Â
âAll good?âÂ
âYeah, what do you need?âÂ
âJust a little favour.âÂ
âAnd what that might be?âÂ
âGet an appropriate artist from the art department. Ren broke his arm and suguru's so down about going himself, yaâ know about his ex,â shoko started grabbing her cup of iced coffee to retreat when gojo slammed two packets of cigarettes on the table. âI've two more packs to offer.âÂ
Shoko returns to her seat, a big smile on her face. âOkay! Since I'm your empathetic, gracious and compassionate friend, I will try and see what I can get done.âÂ
âYes pleaseâŠâÂ
âI'm not doing it for cigarettes yaâ know.âÂ
âMhmmmâ satoru nods his face dramatically.
âGet the other two packets out.âÂ
âSure.âÂ
Satoru knew four packets would get the job done as he parted away from shoko, driving his way back home.Â
And the next day when shoko texted him that she got a volunteer and is bringing her to the club, he didn't expected it to be you.
Shoko looped a hand around your shoulders âso this is the club,â chewing a gum, âand this is satoru gojo.âÂ
âHiâŠâ you said looking at him, before taking a look at those instruments laying behind.Â
Itâs you. It's really you. He couldn't believe his eyes yet stood unblinking as if you were some mirage and will fade away once he closes his eyelids.
âGojo?â Shoko waved a hand infront of his face and realizing he didn't respond to you, he bent his torso bowing to you.Â
âWoah,â shokoâs face scrunched up, cringing at his behavior, âwhen did you start being all formal?âÂ
You giggled at her comment while satoru hushed her with a series of âshut upsâ.Â
âI'mââÂ
âY/n.â satoru whispered almost as if reminding himself the way your name sounded in his lips. âY/n, i know.âÂ
You chuckle at his words, tugging a strand of hair behind your ear.Â
âYou know her?â shoko tilted her head at him, not expecting you to be acquainted with him.Â
âWe went to the same high school.â You say when satoru does nothing but gape at you with dreamy eyes.Â
His heart did a whole somersault at your sentence. You remembered him; you remembered his name; you remembered he was in the same high school as you. The fact that you regarded him made him so giddy that he was practically ready to throw his hands up in the air or kiss the floor on which you walk.
âKayâ I'll leave you guys to talk then.â She smirked before raising a cocky eyebrow at satoru, excusing herself from the club.Â
âSoâŠyou're the only one?âÂ
âHuh?â
âIn the bandâ i meanâŠâ
âOh noâ he dragged, âthere are two more members along with the back musiciansâŠâÂ
You humm, taking a proper look at the club.Â
âYou like it?âÂ
âIt has vibrant colours.âÂ
Your words echoed in his ears, the same which you said to him at the mall. Oh how bad had he wanted to hear those.
âThe jazzies,â you read the name of their band aloud, âwhy jazzies? You only play jazz?âÂ
âNoâŠwe play all sorts of musicâŠit's just a name suguru chose for the band.âÂ
âyou do originals?âÂ
âBoth originals and covers. Anything suguru comes up with.âÂ
Your mouth forms a little âoâ as satoru explains to you.Â
âgeto seems to be doing all the stuff, what do you do?âÂ
âYou know him?â satoruâs brows furrowed. âWhom?â you ask.
âgetoâŠgeto suguru.âÂ
âOfc, he was in the same class as us.âÂ
âOh.âÂ
Ofcourse. Both he and geto were in the same class as you. It was no big deal for you to remember both of them. However, accepting that he wasn't any special was bitter.Â
Satoruâs eyes followed your figure as you went out to reach for his guitar, mindlessly drawing your finger on its printed patterns.
âYou didn't answer my questionâŠâ
âI guess I found you for our band.âÂ
When none of you says anything, satoru breaks the ice, clearing his throat.
âYou know how to play?âÂ
âErrâŠno.âÂ
âI can teach you.âÂ
He slided his index among the few string instruments before pulling out an acoustic one, bringing it to you.Â
âHold the fretboard with your left hand,â satoru pulled the strap over your shoulders, âand bring your right hand over the body, fingers near the sound holeâ yep that's right,â he turned your back to him, gently holding the back of your palms.Â
âNow, pluck the chords for me,â his chest was against your back as he guided you through the strings.Â
âLike this?â you ask him.
âYes, you're doing very well.âÂ
The guitar in your hands, played smoothly as satoru guided you through it.Â
Just like when he taught you how to play mario kart.Â
Satoru looks down at you smiling in excitement. Oh how cute you looked like that. He could admire you twenty-four seven, never wanting to tear his gaze away, for you're that ineffably eesome in his eyes.Â
Time almost ceased when you looked up at him, eyes crinkling with a smile that soon died as red creeps up your cheeks.Â
Satoruâs face was mere inches away from you, his eyes wavering down to your lips.Â
âSATOâRUâ oh,â geto bursted in along with nanami causing you both to flinch.Â
He quickly leaves your hand.Â
âY/n??â Geto dragged out your name, looking at you with his eyebrows knitting and lips forming a silly smile.Â
âHi,â you pull the strap over your shoulders abandoning the instrument on the nearby couch. âI'm here to volunteer.âÂ
âYou do?âÂ
âYeahâŠâÂ
âThat's great! I can't believe satoru even managed to talkââ satoru smacked him mid sentence.Â
Nanami, for some reason, found the ceilings very interesting today, totally ignoring his two seniors.
Geto explained to you about their little tradition of hand drawn posters and showed you the posters they used for the last concerts. You, then, asked them to send them a group picture of the three and their preferences for colours and themes.Â
âFor that I might need your numberââÂ
âI- i can send it to herâŠâ Geto passed a suggestive smile at satoru, which he ignored and awkwardly forwarded his phone to you.Â
âYeah that sounds fine. Here's my number, save it and text me later.âÂ
âKky!âÂ
You pull the sling of your tote bag up to your arm, giving them a little nod, before turning your back to leave.Â
âWait!ââ satoru held your arms frantically pulling you back. He hurried to the back near the couch you plopped the guitar and shoved it to you. âT-take it.âÂ
âAhâ no I can't do that.â
âTake it. You can learn how to play and I- I can teach you.â he tried not to stutter yet failed miserably.Â
âNo i reaââ
âconsider it as a giftâ from me.âÂ
You frowned a bit but agreed anyway.Â
âThat's really sweet of you satoru! I will wait for your text! Bye!!âÂ
He waved back to you.Â
âWhat was that?â Geto implies in the direction of the exit door through which you just left.Â
ânothing.âÂ
Later, You sent the photo of the finished banner to satoru. It took you 42 hours to finish it.Â
Satoru on the other hand was practicing really hard, totally different from his half hearted performances from the previous ones which wasn't unnoticed by the other members.Â
He has to be the best. After all, this concert will be different from the previous ones. This time you will be there to see him, cheer for him, and notice him.Â
You soon bring the banner rolled up to the club. âWoah! You really did a great job.âÂ
âThis is much better than renâs.â says nanami before going back to his drum set, giving you a thumbs up.
âSatoru?âÂ
âY-yes.âÂ
âYou liked it?âÂ
âI loved it. It has vibrant colours.â You giggled at his answer, shifting your direction to his gaze. His fingers seemed to flake off any dust on the surface of your work, handling it so gently.Â
It wasn't his fault he felt so overwhelmed. All these years he'd yearned for one kind word from your lips yet he was left starving.Â
And now you'd drawn him with such precision, that it was as if you were accustomed to drawing him for the hundredth time.Â
His heart fluttered at the thought.Â
âI will be there at your concert,â you say, turning your back to him. âAll the best!âÂ
The campus stadium was full with a bunch of students and hippies, it was really hard for satoru to try locating you amongst the sea of crowds.Â
The music rang loud, brisking fiery cheers from the crowd, full of vim and vigor. The spotlight shone on the threeâ geto with his vocals and string of bass; satoru with his acoustic guitar; and nanami with his drum set.Â
The crowd roared in excitement as music coursed through their veins.Â
Will you be cheering too?Â
Satoru raised his head from the guitar, plucking chords effortlessly, to his audience.Â
And as if it was fate that drew both of you together, his eyes found yours. You were there in the vip section, along with shoko and another girl. You were moving with beats, swaying your arms in rhythm to their music.Â
His eyes locked in yours as you waved a hand at him. Oh how, how pretty you looked. Everything except you was a blur to him.Â
The crowd goes even more wild, seeing satoru blush, not sensing it was you who caused it.Â
The concert continued till past midnight as the vibrations thrumming around the air slowed and wrapped up with their ending song: âWhere Our Blue Is.â
As the applause slowly start to dissipate, satoru pulled off his instrument, running to the edge of the stage, and hopped down the raised platform.Â
The college girls shrieked baffled, some even reached out, grabbing on his wrists and clothes. He politely got out of their grip making his way to the vip section, geto and nanami following him.Â
The still air felt electric as he approached you.Â
âyou liked the show?âÂ
âOfc it was amazing!!â The girl beside you answers in your stead, whom he now recognised as yura.
âIt was really good.â you say swallowing a laugh bubbling up your throat at his huffed out appearance.Â
âThanks to your banner, it even attracted more audience.â geto remarked, placing his arm around satoruâs shoulders.
âThank you.âÂ
âYou should thank me for bringing her in.â Shoko reclaims, looping her hand around your arm, âlet's go steal some shots.âÂ
âOh no i can'tâ i don't drink. And I need to hurry back home it's late.âÂ
âKyaahhâ you've let me down y/nniee. Only two packets of cigarettes can get my mood uplifteââÂ
âI will bring it tomorrow.â You say shutting up her whines.Â
âkk bye and text me when you get home the rest are joining me right ?â
âCount me out. I'll be driving her home tonight.â Satoru says sheepishly, ignoring the smirks and exchanged looks of his bandmates, a slight blush creeping up his cheeks.
âNo but I was about to go home with her ââ yura interrupts.
âSatoruâs fine. You're coming with us.â Shoko dragged her along with geto and nanami, which satoru was glad of.Â
Finally he'd be alone with you.
He guided you to the parking lot from the back of the stage, before getting his car keys out.Â
It's metallic jingle echoing softly as he presses the button on his key fob. The car responds with a soft beep unlocking as satoru opens the passenger door, holding it open for you.Â
âHere,â he gestures with his other hand, âget in.âÂ
âSure.â You say gulping thickly.
The thick smell of your cologne mingling with the leather scent of the car.
He closes the door before sprinting to the other side, getting himself in. âDon'tâ â he stops you when you reach out for your seat belt. âAllow me the honorâ his finger brushes against your skin as he reaches out for the seat belt.Â
Your heart practically jolts at his action.Â
The click of the seat belt buckle echoes softly in the quiet car, as he straightens back to his former position.Â
âWhere do you live?â He clears his throat, starting the car engine and flicking on the headlights before pulling out the car into the driveway.Â
âIn the downtown.âÂ
âThat's quite far from the campus, how bout I drive you everyday back home?â His eyes suggestive, making you chuckle.
âI can't let you do that.â
âWhy?âÂ
âSince it's far from the campus and you won't be visiting often.âÂ
âWho knows, I might be visiting your place often.âÂ
You turn your face from the window to look at him.Â
âWhat?âÂ
âI will have toâ to teach you guitar.âÂ
You crack up at his silliness, finding yourself melting again.
âOkay fine. But that still doesn't counts.âÂ
âWhy not!âÂ
Since that day, satoru did visited you often, sometimes barging in with shoko and sometimes alone teaching you how to play guitar, plucking on chords and notes.Â
And you attended all of his concerts. Their previous artist has recovered now and has resumed his work, so you no longer work with them. However they insist you tag along each time and it's not like you complain.Â
You liked satoruâs company. He was handsome, charismatic and popular. You'd watched him your entire high school. He was the one of most popular students, good in a millions of things, starting from academics to being athletic. He'd win every sports competition and even participate in all the extracurriculars. You'd admired him for he could do the things which you didn't had the courage for.Â
You liked how he didn't judge people, helped them in their need, and even took care of those garish flowers nobody seemed to double take.
You'd previously met him before high school, though he never brought that up. You wondered if he even remembers the day at the mall. You wanted to ask him so bad, howeverâ
Your world was only limited to papers and paints.
So you painted.Â
You painted him so many times that you'd have more than five sketchbooks with paintings full of him.
You wanted to be friends, maybe even more than friends.
But that didn't matter now. He was near you and you would do anything to keep your thumping heart in control and not have satoru cut you out of his life.Â
But how can you?
How can you control it when satoru so gently, so lovingly, takes your hand in his. When he smiles so sweetly at you. When he teaches you how to pull chords and other instruments. When he drops you home from college almost everyday. When he hugs you and tells you to take care.Â
How are you supposed to be just friends when he's so overly affectionate to you?
Or maybe it's just your overthinking.
Satoru was always polite and sweet, he'd always been sweet to others and you were no special.Â
âWhat are you thinking baby?â
You come out of your daze, rolling your eyes at the nickname.
âHow many times do I have to tell you not to call me thatâŠâÂ
âNot my fault you aren't paying attention to meâŠâ he pulls you closer to him, resting his face on your shoulder.Â
âHave you always been this hungry for attention?â you ask, getting yourself comfortable abandoning the guitar beside you on the couchâ of the club.
âI've been starving.âÂ
You cringe at his words. Satoru has another concert today and they just finished practicing an hour ago and now they are taking a break.Â
Geto and nanami and other back artists wanted to get some fresh air so they left you and satoru alone to entertain each other.Â
âAre you really skipping on me?â He looked at you with puppy eyes.Â
âI've a gallery exhibition tomorrow.â You need to scoot back home to get ready for it. It's a big event for you to showcase your arts.Â
Satoru hummed, nuzzling his face on the crook of your neck, âI'll be there. You're going to do great.âÂ
An uncertain lump forms in your throat, hard to swallow, you say nothing. Your heart was in a conflict again, no matter what you can absolutely notâ
âI will be going then. All the best for your concert.âÂ
You push satoru away, reaching for your tote bag from the side of a random arm chair. âWait I will dropââÂ
âWho's leaving?â shoko barges in with yura and others.Â
Satoru points at you.Â
âI just got here. You can't leave already.â
âYup! Yup! Please stay a little longer, baby. I'll drop you back home, no worries.âÂ
Shoko exchanges suggestive glances with geto and they somehow persuade you to stay a little longer.
They start practicing for another round when shoko pulls your head closer, âwhat do you think about gojo?âÂ
âHuh?!â You shout over the music, unable to hear her.Â
She grabbed your hand and pulled you outside, with Yura following closely behind you both.
âWhatâ âÂ
âWhat do you think of gojo?âÂ
A burning sensation hits you slowly as shokoâs question registers in your mind.
You ears turn red.Â
âEhâŠum h-heâs a nice guy. A nice musicianâŠandââ
âAnd?â Shoko wiggled her brows at you, a sly smile on her face.Â
âA-a nice friend.âÂ
âJust a friend?â You nod at her, seemingly more embarrassed at her implications.Â
Shoko's face literally radiated disappointment. It was as if someone told her that cigarettes are now banned in the country. âI think he's interested in you,â you choked on air at her remark. âNo?âÂ
Yura shrugged.Â
The music slowed down and then paused, bringing your conversation to a momentary halt.Â
Satoru rushed outside, complaining about why you left in the middle of his practice.
âBruh, chill, I'm not trying to steal her away from you. We're just talking!â Shoko jokes as you laugh all flustered.Â
Just when you were about to leave one of his fangirls suddenly appeared from nowhere and threw herself into his arms, wrapping hers tightly around his neck. He stumbled back a step, surprised, before regaining his balance but he didn't put her down rather he spinned her around before setting her back down, with a polite smile on his face.Â
The other members just saw the scene unfold with amusement. Nanami was surprised at the fanâs boldness and geto simply observed the scene as shoko rolled her eyes, finding it hysterical.
âWhat do you think of shokoâs remark?â said yura, looping her hand around your arm.Â
âWhat?â You say suppressing the slow tinge of jealousy.Â
âAbout gojo being interested in youâŠâÂ
âI-i don't think so.âÂ
You try to laugh it off.
âYeah, he's just polite. To pretty much everyone.âÂ
Her words felt like a splinter to your heart. You shouldn't feel like this. It'd happened beforeâ not now again.Â
Yuraâs right, satoru is just polite and will do the same for everyone what he does for youâ because he's kind. And you're no special.
The entire ride was silent. Satoru kept asking you if anything was wrong but you just guised a smile at him, insisting it was nothing.
The next day at the gallery event, you behaved oddly. You smiled at him but didn't reach your eyes, your answers to his question were of one word, even avoiding his touch.Â
âDid I do something wrong?â he asked warily.
âNo.âÂ
Days passed by and you distanced yourself more from him.Â
Satoru, on the other hand, was almost losing his mind. His world turned upside down. You stopped coming to his concerts, ignored his texts and even refused to let him drop you back home.Â
It was yesterday youâd allowed him to teach you the guitar yet today you behaved as if you'd long forgotten him. You were cold and distant, leaving him puzzled by his own thoughts upon your sudden change in demeanor.Â
He couldn't help but wonder whether he'd done something that made you this upset?Â
You'd said it was nothing.
Then why?
What the fuck did he messed up?
Satoru missed you terribly and violently.
He eyed you from the inside of his car parked a bit far from your department. Today was another day you refused his offer to drive you to class. âI'm kinda sick so I won't be going.â This was what you'd texted him the morning and yet there you were getting off your uber.Â
You lied to him.Â
âCome with me to their concert today.â Shoko urged you, her lips pursed in a thin line.Â
âI'm sorryââ
âNo you're not so sorry. Tomorrowâs Saturday, come with me, gojoâs getting mad without you.â
You suck in a breath at the mention of his name.
âWhat's wrong?â shoko says sipping the last of her drink before plopping it on your tea table.Â
âNothing.âÂ
âThen come.â
You agreed eventually. Attending the concert won't be a big deal.Â
And it wasn't, except for satoruâs piercing gaze burning holes in your back. You accompanied Shoko backstage and casually greeted everyoneâ including him.Â
âGod, haven't seen you in so long.â geto side hugged you as nanami gave you a nod of acknowledgement before running off to the stage for some last minute preparations. âSatoru missed you like crazy.âÂ
You attempt a weak smile in satoru's direction, darting a hesitant glance his way. His gaze was fixed on you, but his expression was unreadable, almost giving shivers down your spine.Â
One of the other members suddenly hurried over to Geto, urgently speaking about some issue, he politely excused himself and exited the room, closely followed by Shoko. Now, you were left alone with Satoru, the only two remaining in the room.Â
âI should go and check what's the probleââ you try sprinting your way out the door, âwaitââ when satoru stops you.Â
His hand on your arm, preventing you to go any further and when you struggle to get out of his grip, he tightens his grip even more slamming you to the wall, pinning you caging your body.Â
âWhat's wrong with you?âÂ
âGojo you're hurting mââÂ
âGojo?â His voice cracked, grip losing before letting your arms go, âwhy? Why must you do this to me?âÂ
âDo what?â You drift your gaze away unable to look at satoru, who's this close tearing up.
âThisâ why must you do this? Why must you ignore me? Why must you be distant from me? Why must you lie to me so that I won't bother picking you up or dropping you home? Why must you reject my affection?â He sucks in a breath âYou know I can't live like thatââÂ
âwhy?âÂ
âDon't pretend like you don't knowâŠâÂ
âno no don't say it,â you throw your hands up in the air frantically, âdon'tâ I canât fall againâŠnoâ I know you're just being polite and you will do this for anyone, but I canât help it if I don'tââ
âI love youââ he whispers, bringing your hand up, placing the palm flat to his chest.
âNo you don't.âÂ
âYes I doâ what do you mean you can't fall again,â he suppresses your struggles of wrenching free your hand from his grip. âYou have no idea how crazy I'm for you. I love you and I've loved you since I was 17. I was about to confess to you on our graduation day but you just disappeared leaving me alone. And now that I have you I'm not letting you goâ make no mistake baby, if there's anyone Iâd ever kneel forâ it'd be you.âÂ
Thick silence covered the entire room, except your heavy exhales. Satoru gojo was inches close to you, your hand still laid flat against his heaving chest.Â
âB-but I wrote you a note confesââÂ
âWhat note? I neverâŠ.â confusion twisted on his face bitterly.Â
âYou threw it in the dustbinâ the one I wrote to you the day before graduation.â
His face told the truth, as he shook his head denying it. He never received any note from youâ nevertheless having the audacity to throw it in the trash when he'd been hopelessly in love with you all these years.
âYura told meââ you shut your mouth as the realization hits you. The person whom you considered as a friend backstabbed you long ago.Â
She lied about him discarding it while it was actually her who had stolen it off his desk before satoru even noticed.
Your head raised in embarrassment, ready to apologize for the misunderstanding when suddenly, Satoru's lips met yours in a tender kiss. The kiss was filled with such affection and tenderness that you felt as if you might melt in his embrace. His arms held you close, firmly yet gently, as he deepened the kiss. Your heart pounded in your chest as you responded to his kiss. All thoughts of the misunderstanding were forgotten in that moment of pure intimacy before satoru pulled away with frowned brows and a dazed smile.Â
âTell me, would I kiss anyone the same way I kiss you?â he pulled you again, smacking his lips on yours as he snaked a hand around your waist, the other, still firm, holding your palm.Â
You could feel his heartbeat going rapid the more he deepens the kiss, sucking on your upper lip.Â
He pulls away again.
âTell me, would my heart beat the same way as it beats around yours?â He smacks his lips again, this time pinching your waist making you gasp as he slips his tongue in.
His hand fumbles with the hem of your dress, pulling away again, a string of drool connecting both of your lips. âWould I be breathless the same way as I'm now?âÂ
His hand travels up your inner thigh, till it reaches the wet blotch of drenched silk. You grasp his shoulders, when he starts drawing circles over the fabric, smirking before nuzzling his face on the crook of your neck.Â
âSatoru, what if someone walks inââ your body jolts, nails digging into his back as he pulls the fabric to the side, plunging a digit in without any warning. âLet themâŠâ he goes back to sucking your skin while rubbing his thumb over your swollen clit.Â
Your teeth sank on your bottom lips, his finger slowly plunging in and out of you. âNngh âtoru, youâreââ small trembles quivered through your body as he plunged with a faster rhythm.Â
âShh baby! Let me take youâ he inserts another digit as your teeth dug even deeper into your lip, stretching you and filling you so well.Â
He was stroking you, curling his fingers inside until hitting your most sensitive spot. Sweat beaded your forehead as your trembles gave way to full body shudders, shutting your mouth with your hand not wanting to be loud.Â
Satoru drew himself back from your neck, satisfied marking and suckling, withdrawing his digits, slick from you as you wince at the loss of his fullness.Â
He brings them up and sucks your essence off his fingers with a pop. âI want to eat you out.âÂ
Before even you can make out his words he kneels down bunching up the fabric to your hips pulling your panty down properly and latching onto your swollen clit.Â
âFuck âtoru.â he lapped his tongue on your clit, drawing circles, tasting your sweet before drawing himself back, âI am fucking you baby.â He says, licking a fat stripe on your vulva, his rigid tongue swiping back and forth over your clit sending sensations that make your body jolt. âHere and rawâ he hummed against your pussy, his breath warm and hot sending vibrations to your core, before vacuuming on your clit.Â
Your hand grasping his hair, as he worked on your orgasm.
He plunged his digits again, rhythmatic with the little pants escaping your mouth, along with the slick sounds of your hips buckling down his fingers.Â
He smirked internally at your enthusiasm.
âSo fucking nasty for me huh?â He said against your pussy, licking and sucking till you were nothing but withering in mindless pleasure. You were taking it well, suppressing your moans into breathless pants until he sucked, fingers pressing the most sensitive spot inside you.Â
A shriek fell past your lips, knees buckling, followed by a string of moans and whimpers. âOhâ fuck..â you try closing your thighs which he prevents with his iron grip of one hand, forcing it open till he has better access. âDon't even dare closing on meâŠâÂ
The wet sounds of his fingers, plunging in and out of your gummy walls, echoed throughout the empty room.
Something coiled hot and fuzzy in the lower pit of your stomach. You clenched hard around his finger, when the bass-heavy beats of the band's concert began, causing you to involuntarily shove satoruâs face deeper into your cunt as you heard voices from the stage outside.Â
Geto's unmistakable voice rang out, accompanied by the heavy drumming of nanami. They had started performing without satoru.Â
âNnâtoru they startââ your voice died down into a breathless gasp as you felt your pelvic muscles clench, tension looping around your entire body as fiery sensations erupted. You arch your back against the wall, unable to stop your toes curling at the intensity of his tongue lapping, finger fuckin' you, as your vision gets blurry.Â
âYeahâŠcum for me babyâ his velvety murmurs were all it took for you to turn into a mess of sensations, your body erupting as your high came down bursting, dripping and spilling down your thighs, his chin and his neck.Â
Satoru lapped up the drops carelessly strewn about your skin, his tongue tracing a path along the droplets splattered on your inner thighs as he savored everything with anticipation.
âTell me, would I kneel infront of anyone and let them cum this hard on my fingers?â He straightened himself up, âand then drink it up like a pussy drunk male whore?â his gaze never left yours, wiping the leftover slick from his chin with the back of his hand before licking it clean.
The music from outside has now gained its intensity, thrumming even louder.
Noâ you mouthed.Â
Satoruâs gaze was still fixed at you, when he unzipped his pants, his aching cock sprang out red, already leaking precum.Â
You gape at his girth.Â
It was big.
And fucking thick.Â
Leaning in, Satoru brings his lips close to your ear, his voice clear over the blaring music from outside, âLike what you seeââ
You didn't get to answer him before he slammed right in.Â
A cry of pleasure tore from your throat, as you loop your hands around his neck, nails digging on his back.
He hissed out a breath, restraining himself from moving till you adjusted to his size.Â
Only then did he slowly pull it out leaving only the tip inside. You grimace at the loss of fullness until he slams back in causing you to clench around him.Â
He let out a low guttural moan which was almost inaudible to you over the roar of music if you weren't so close to each other, feeling the raw desire of his voice vibrating on your skin.
âTell meâ hahh- would I let anyone clench this hard on me if this weren't you?âÂ
You were at a loss for words.Â
The kind, polite, sweet satoru you knew was gone. In his place was someone who fucked hard.Â
When you don't answer he pulls out and slams right back in harsh, eyes gleaming with wicked intent.Â
Satisfied, satoru guides his one hand to tapping on your thigh suggesting you wrap your legs up around him.Â
He repositions his dick on your entrance, before supporting your weight with one hand, pinning your body completely to the wall, while the other hand grabs your neck, choking you before giving you a sloppy breathless kiss.Â
âYou like it don't yaâ hmm fuckâ so tightââÂ
Your cries came out choked as he pounded into you, in an insane manner, desperate and primal.
âTell meââÂ
ThrustÂ
âdo youââÂ
ThrustÂ
âstill think I'm just being polite?â
Thrust.
The roar of geto's voice singing out aloud different notes masked out the filth of your moans.Â
The sensation was in again, hot and uproar, coiling beneath the core of your consciousness. Satoru sensed you being close to your climax, continued to plow into your pussy, now supporting your weight with both hands against the wall.Â
Your toes curled again, nails digging down his back almost scratching the fabric, âyes that's it love,â your eyes rolled back as you arch your neck unable to handle the pleasure, âcum for meâŠâÂ
Your mouth forming a little âoâ, mind blank as your eyes saw stars. The only consciousness left in your body directed you to the burning of your heat, till it came crashing down.
You came hard letting your head fall on his shoulders too spent for anything.
Satoru too chased his high, thrusting into your swollen pussy, his cock twitching inside you, till you felt him getting sloppy and tense before cumming into you.
The music was still very loud, beats thrumming your flushed veins.Â
None of you said anything, remaining in the same position. Satoru pulled himself out, his cum dripping out your vagina, before walking over and placing you on a nearby chair.Â
He cleaned you up gently tugging your clothes back and fixes himself before cleaning the mess near the wall.Â
âTheyâ they started performing without youâŠâ you huff out, drained still in the very euphoria of your pleasure satoru showed you.Â
âI told them to do soâŠâ he shouted over the noise.Â
You remain stunned for a while, letting out a breath. âI'm sorryâŠI avoided you.âÂ
âHere I thought you were giving me a thousand kisses as an apology.âÂ
You chuckle at him, back to his normal selfâ your sweet, kind and maybe not so polite satoruâŠ
He came over to you, lifting you effortlessly before plopping himself down on the chair with you on his lap.Â
âI missed you.âÂ
âI missed you too.âÂ
âNo but I missed you like crazyâŠâ he pouted. ây/n be my girlfriendâŠplease.âÂ
Tears start forming in your eyes, overwhelmed, you never thought the satoru gojo you met at the mall, the satoru gojo you loved your entire high school would someday ask you to be his girlfriend.
To paint his heart with your love.
âI will.âÂ
âno waitâ marry me instead!â
You dug your face deeper into his chest, laughing at his playfulness. And satoru just smiled.
Finally he would be yours.Â
you and Satoru started dating since then and things couldn't have been any better for him. He practically announced to the world that you were his girlfriend, always picking you up and dropping you off from campus, and claiming a kiss as his reward. Youâd also cut Yura off, not wanting any more negativity in your life. Satoru was yours, and you were his. And He couldn't be any happier.
Tags: @cccandynecklaces @secretfankoala
© strawberrymochin 24 | plagiarism won't be tolerated |
#jjk#jjk x reader#jjk smut#gojo satoru#jjk fluff#jujutsu kaisen#gojo satoru x reader#satoru x reader#jujutsu kaisen x satoru gojo#satoru gojo x reader#jjk x you#jjk gojo#gojo x you#gojo x reader#jujutsu gojo#gojo smut#jujustu kaisen#gojo saturo#satoru#satoru gojo#satoru gojo fanart#gojou satoru x reader#gojo satoru smut#geto suguru#geto x reader#kento nanami#nanami x reader#shoko ieiri#satoru smut#satoru x you
6K notes
·
View notes
Text
âi love you and i love you.â ᥣđ©
{yuta okkotsu x f!reader}
summary: yuta okkotsu has been hopelessly in love with you since he was fifteen. you, his muse and his reason to live as you took care of him growing up more than anyone else in his life. in fear of breaking your best friend pact and losing you entirely, yuta swallows his feelings for the sake of keeping you in his life, but he can only take so much.
warnings: college au, friends to best friends to lovers trope, lowkey ooc yuta oops, mentions of underage drinking, hopelessly devoted and lovesick yuta for reader, cursing!!! both reader and yuta cuss lol, lots and lots of fluff, ANGST, afab!reader, use of y/n, pet names, no smut in this one! slight sexual themes, reader is older than yuta by two years.
word count: 8.7k
authors note: YAAALLL i actually poured my heart and soul out into this one so i really hope it reaches your heart and soul as well! it is so so cute and i had so much fun writing it. this is definitely not the end of this au! i plan to write more short stories that take place after this one :) mwah.
ââââââââââââââââââââââââ
yuta was thirteen years old when he first saw you.
you were a casual friend of his older brother who had invited his entire group of friends over for a thanksgiving feast reunion amongst yourselves. yuta stayed locked in his room for the most part, from time to time lazily making his way down the halls and through the kitchen where you all sat to get a glass of water for himself, silently savoring at the food on the table.
eventually you had picked up on his lame attempts of coming into the kitchen for random excuses, concluding that he just wanted to gawk at the food and maybe score a bite or two of the pumpkin pie drenched in whipped cream, sitting pretty and proud in the middle of the table.
but after various unsuccessful attempts and various defeated stomps down the hall and back to his room after every shoo from his brother, he knew he wasnât going to get even a lick. at the end of the night when the group settled down and many began to take their leave, yuta made his way back down one more time in search of any lucky scraps left behind.
but what he found instead was you, standing in the kitchen with a white porcelain plate in your hands, a slice of pumpkin pie drenched in whipped cream sitting pretty in the middle.
âfor you,â you had said calmly, plate outstretched, beckoning him to take it. âi saw you come down a few times looking at it, and i think whoever brought it is taking the rest of it back home, so here.â
yuta had never spoken to a girl before, much less a fifteen year old one with the sweetest smile he had ever seen in his life on her face, but he timidly and awkwardly took the smooth plate from your offering hands, and muttered a squeaky thank you before stumbling down the hall and slamming his bedroom door shut.
from then on, yuta looked forward to the next time his brother would have his friends over, nagging at him constantly with questions of when, and even going as far as to straight up planning the hangouts himself (the location of all of them being at their house of course), but his brother would only shove him out of his room and lock the door shut.
luckily for yuta his wish was granted, and his curious eyes saw you around a lot more often than not, and you gradually became a close friend of yutaâs brother instead of just casual one. every time you came over to his house, you always greeted him with the biggest smile on your face before going into his brotherâs room with the rest of the group. and over time, your greetings to yuta went from sweet smiles, to pats on the head, to ruffling up his hair occasionally, and to his personal favorite, the side hug.
you always were around in yutaâs growing life and always made sure he had gotten something to eat that day, or if he had a ride to soccer practice, or if his phone had enough battery to last him through his tutoring sessions, or even if he had someone going to watch his soccer games in the mornings (which was never).
yuta was fifteen when he realized he liked you.
âso no one is going?â you asked sharply, âagain?â
yuta shrugged. âits at eight oâ clock in the morning. i donât expect anyone to, not even you-â
âwell iâm going,â you said simply, putting the rest of your textbooks away in your locker and slamming it shut. âgeez not even your brother goes to your games? iâm gonna yell at him later.â
âitâs fine.â yuta shook his head and gave you a small smile, his insides twisting and contorting with an overwhelming boy crush for you. âa lot of my teammates parents donât go either, usually only to the first two of the season.â
but not you. you went every single time, even going as far as dragging his brother with you so he could have family there to watch him play. yuta always made sure to turn and raise a hand to you from across the field, waving it side to side before getting back in the game, his heart thumping wildly in his chest with an insane sense of adrenaline to do good on the field and show offâ because you were watching.
yuta was still fifteen when he realized you liked his brother.
firstly, he felt utterly stupid for not picking up on it before. yuta was always too busy staring at you and memorizing every inch and detail of your face to realize that you were looking at his brother the same way yuta looked at you. he was too busy running around in soccer fields and eating the ham sandwiches you always made for him after practices to realize how red your face would get when you sat next to his brother during his games, or when you gave him sandwiches. yuta was too busy drooling over you in his mind that sometimes you wouldnât even notice him waving at you from across the field like he always did, your eyes trained on his brother instead, that sweet smile he was all too familiar with shining for someone else.
it wasnât fair. it wasnât fair at all. yuta felt like his brother always got everything and he always ended up with scraps. yuta never got a friend group like his, or a stellar reputation in a sport like he did, or people at his beck and call everywhere he went, or nominations for pointless shit like homecoming king.
but yuta didnât give a flying fuck about any of that. he didnât want any of that. he wanted you. just you.
but he couldnât have you.
yuta was sixteen when he realized he was in love with you.
he had been for a while actually, and he knew it, but the thought alone of you liking his stupid brother only fueled the fire of denial to save himself from getting hurt more than he already was.
but it was absolutely pouring rain that day, his tutoring session having been cancelled last minute due to the weather, and because of this he had no ride home and no umbrella to even attempt at walking home, not that he could anyways seeing as it would take him thirty minutes to do so. yuta absolutely could not take that chance. he had his laptop in his backpack with all of his school work, and worst of all, his final project that he had been working on since the beginning of the school year, a precious green portfolio filled with notes worth more than gold to him.
yuta grumbled as he scuffed his feet against the concrete at the front of his school under a rooftop, lips pressed into a thin line in annoyance. his parents were at work, there was no way they could just drop everything and go to him (not that they would anyways), and his brother was too busy hanging out with you doing god knows what at god knows whereâ so even calling you was out of the picture.
at the mere thought of you hanging out with his brother, he sighed softly, sadly, and slumped down on a blue bench with his cold hands stuffed into the pockets of his jacket, eyes trained to the ground.
heavy pit pats of rain smacked against the ground as he sat there in thought, the sounds of cars zooming down the wet streets as the only source of life around besides himself, seeing as it was already late in the day and everybody else had gone home. without him even noticing, the front doors beside him creaked open as he sat there grumbling.
âyuta?â
his head snapped up upon hearing your pretty voice call out to him, his eyes wide as he saw you standing there with an umbrella.
âwhat are you doing here?â he asked softly, standing up. yuta looked at you then and noticed your eyes were red and tired, and a shock of worry shot up his spine.
âi was-â
âare you okay?â he asked quickly. âyour eyes are red.â
âoh really?â you mumbled, rubbing your eyes with your palm, waving him off. âitâs nothing, i didnât even notice.â
he pursed his lips, concern written all over his face as he took in your defeated expression, but before he could press any further, you spoke again.
âwhy arenât you in tutoring?â
âoh they cancelled last minute,â he stuffed his hands further into his jacket and looked to the side. âi donât have a ride home now because of it, and i canât even walk home because itâs raining hard as fuck and i have my laptop in my backpack.â
you hummed in understanding, and even though it looked like the worst possible thing ever just happened to you, you gave him that same sweet smile he craved every time he saw you. âletâs walk to your house together. i have an umbrella we can try and fit under.â
he looked at you incredulously. âno no! itâs okay! you live down the street i donât want to make you walk thirty minutes in the rain with me and thirty back-â
âitâs okay!â you laughed. âi would never leave you here by yourself yu, you know that.â
oh how he loved when you called him that.
his shoulders slowly relaxed, a wobbly cute smile spreading across his face, his cheeks a fuzzy pink. âokay.â
you walked together in a comfortable silence, your little umbrella just barely covering the both of you and yutaâs cheeks were still an intense pinky shade due to the close proximity, his steamy breath basically fanning the side of your ear as he huddled close to you.
after a few minutes spent walking on the sidewalk, yuta spoke up again.
âwhy are your eyes red?â
you immediately froze, but relaxed quickly.
âjust tired sâall,â you responded weakly, but the little wobbling of your bottom lip told him otherwise.
yuta slowly lifted his hand and reached out, placing it softly on top of yours and clenching over the stem of the umbrella. the action caused you both to stop walking, your curious eyes snapping to his.
his palm felt like it was on absolute fire at the feeling of your soft hand under his, yutaâs breath trembling as he breathed out.
he swallowed. âcan you please tell me why.â
your eyes flooded with tears then, and you shut them tightly as you dropped your forehead solemnly to rest against his shoulder, your frame shaking with quiet sobs escaping your lips.
yutaâs eyes softened and he quickly took the umbrella from you, wrapping his arms around your shoulders in a tight hug. his heart thumped so hard against his chest that he could hear it ringing through his ears.
he patted the back of your head gently. âwhat happened? whatâs going on?â
you shook your head against his chest.
ây/n..â he sighed worriedly, running a soothing hand over your shaking back now.
âi have a crush on your brother,â you sobbed.
he knew. god he knew. but hearing you say it out loud broke his heart ten times more than it did when he found out on his own.
yuta slightly pulled back, bending his knees a little to look at you at eye level, his hand on your shoulder.
âi know.â
your eyebrows furrowed, more silent tears spilling from your eyes. âyou know?â
yuta nodded, smiling sadly at you as he wiped your tears with his thumb, your eyes closing as he did so. âi spend almost every second of my life with you, of course i know. i noticed.â
you sniffed.
âwerenât you just with him now?â he asked.
your eyes shut tightly again, eyebrows contorted in pain as you nodded. âi confessed to him. i wanted to tell him before we graduated next month.â
you lifted your hands and covered your face, sobbing into them. âiâve loved him since middle school.â
loved?
yutaâs shoulders slumped as he stared straight ahead, feeling like he wanted to crawl into a deep dark hole and stay there.
âhe-â you hiccuped. âhe rejected me.â
his head snapped down immediately, eyebrows furrowing in a mix of disbelief and anger. âhuh? he rejected you?â
you nodded, dropping your hands from your eyes and burying your head in his chest.
âwhy? what did he say?â
âhe said he didnât feel the same wayââ you stopped for a moment to even out your breaths. âand that he was sorry.â
yuta scoffed, shaking his head. âwhat a big fucking loser.â
you snorted at that, and he looked down at you fondly, relieved you laughed.
âhe⊠he thanked me for everything that iâve done for your family though, especially you.â
he stayed silent.
âhe said he was thankful that i was like another sibling for you, and that i took care of you.â
another sibling?
yuta didnât say anything, that phrase like a slash through his heart while he still thought about how much of a fucking idiot he was to reject you. you, out of anyone deserved to get everything you wanted. you were selfless, incredibly sweet, the most gorgeous human being to ever walk this earth, and you had done so much for everyone that you neglected your own needs all of the time.
how could he not love you back? how could his brother not see the angel in his life that loved him, that sentiment alone an absolute privilege to have? something he would kill for?
yuta knew he shouldnât make this about himself. he knew you were absolutely hurting and heartbroken, but he just had to know. it was eating him alive inside and out and over and over again as he kept thinking about it.
âis that how you see me?â
âhu-huh?â you hiccuped, picking your head up from his chest to look at him.
âas another sibling. is that how you see me?â
you blinked up at him, your eyes trailing over his furrowed eyebrows and worried gaze, and you hesitated for a moment, not knowing exactly why.
but you nodded, slowly. âyouâre my best friend, yu. youâre not just anyone to me i care a lot about you. more than most people in my life.â
for a moment, yuta looked at you blankly, his mind unable to properly register your words. he didnât know whether he wanted to cry, call up his brother and yell at him, kiss you, or run away.
a part of him knew that too, that you only saw him as a sibling. but like everything else in his life, he buried it down and chose to pretend like it didnât exist for the sake of his heart.
but regardless of you not returning his feelings, he would rather be something to you than nothing at all. he would rather make some type of difference in your life and have a special spot, than be an absolute nobody to you.
so he smiled. he smiled with soft sad eyes and nodded, pulling you back in and resting his cheek against the top of your head. âyouâre my best friend too.â
yuta didnât see you around much at his house after that, which he understood.
but you still texted yuta everyday and hung out with him sometimes at school, and you still went to his games and practices and made him ham sandwiches after, and you still gave him that sweet smile he loved so so much.
but he never missed how sad you got around his brother, even at the mere mention of him. he never missed how your eyes stayed glued to the ground or had a far off look to them, your arms wrapped around yourself with a safe distance between you both.
when you graduated high school, yuta was a brat the entire ceremony. he was pissed. so pissed that you were two years older than him and that he wasnât going to see your pretty self around school anymore, which was pretty much the only reason he tolerated it in the first place.
but when your graduating class threw their caps up into the air and his family went down to congratulate his brother, yuta made a beeline for you instead.
and behind that scowl on his face that he had the entire day, his eyes were glossy.
yuta never cried.
when you noticed, your shoulders instantly dropped and you ran to his open arms, practically throwing yourself on him. âyuuu! donât cry for me!â
âwho said iâm crying?â yuta grumbled into your shoulder.
you pulled back and smiled at him, âiâm gonna miss you the most.â
yuta smiled, but then faltered, and a sliver of fear shot up his spine. was this the last time he was going to see you? was this the start of you both slowly distancing, and then ultimately falling apart? were you still going to call him and text him everyday?
as if you could sense his fear, you quickly shook your head. âyouâre literally stuck with me for life. you will never find another best friend to replace me, you got it?â
you waved your little index finger at him sternly, and yuta laughed. âi got it.â
yuta was nineteen when he almost kissed you.
after you graduated high school, luckily you went to a college that was only about a thirty minute drive from his place. you were still in yutaâs life, if not way more than it was before, which he thanked his lucky stars for. you went from being a best friend of his brothers, to being only his best friend, as you and his brother didnât really talk anymore after high school.
and to that, yuta was happy.
and when he graduated high school, you of course were there, crying and pinching his cheeks and hugging him so tight his back cracked a little bit.
he didnât go to the same college you did (although he definitely tried but didnât get in) and went to one that was about forty five minutes away from home, one he commuted to everyday like you did for yours.
you both got so much closer that you obliviously acted like a couple, when you werenât. yuta would pick you up from class and drive you to lunch, pay for all of your meals and anything you practically wanted despite you fighting him every time on it. he would kiss your forehead and your cheek and throw his arm around your shoulder when you walked, he would call you baby and compliment you every single day, and he would sleep over at your house almost all of the time, your head on his chest and his arm wrapped around your torso.
he knew best friends werenât really supposed to act like this, but did you? you both had grown so accustomed to it that it wasnât a weird thing for you both, but the constant questions from your mutual friends or even each others parents was a dead giveaway that it in fact, was not how best friends were supposed to act.
but neither of you seemed to care.
âstop moving yu!â you whispered harshly as you applied an aloe vera mud mask to his face. yuta snickered, dodging your fingers every time they came close to applying the mask, with the only reason he was doing it being because it made you laugh.
you were both sat on your fluffy pink rug in the middle of your room in your pajamas, surrounded by all of your skincare essentials and even the fancy products you only pulled out on special occasions. it was one in the morning at this point and you both were still up, trying to keep your laughter to a minimum in attempts at not waking up your parents downstairs.
âbaby this stuff smells kind of funky,â he commented as you applied some to his cheek.
âthe funkier the better,â you responded, focused. âkind of smells like you.â
he pinched your side and you giggled, flinching away. âiâm kidding! iâm almost done, donât move.â
yuta listened and stayed still, watching your concentrated pretty face that was practically inches away from his as you applied the mask to the rest of his face, his poor heart almost giving out.
once you were done, you smiled triumphantly and wiped your fingers with a warm damp towel. âall done!â
yuta smiled fondly at you and kissed your cheek. âthanks. is this what you put on every night?â
you shook your head, ânot every night, only when i want my skin to look extra good for special occasions.â
âwhich is..?â
âitâs usually when you invite me over to your family events or when we eat dinner at that one really nice place by your school.â
yuta stopped at that and he felt his heart clench at your words. he didnât know why and he usually didnât let it, but his mind was making him believe that maybeâŠ
no.
he relaxed again, humming in acknowledgement. you picked up a circular pink little tub compartment thing and unscrewed the cap, dipping your ring finger in the shimmery product.
âwhatâs that?â he asked softly, nodding his head to it.
âitâs my lip scrub!â you responded enthusiastically, lifting your ring finger and scooting closer to him. his eyes looked straight at you as you slid your finger over his lips. âit has kind of like a rough texture, itâs supposed to exfoliate your lips and make them really soft.â
his cheeks slowly turned pink, his eyes trailing down to your lips as you sat back, finished.
âhereâ put some on me now so you can feel what iâm talking about,â you handed him the little tub and he dipped his index finger in, swallowing the lump in his throat.
he timidly lifted his hand and pressed his finger to your waiting perfect lips, softly and gently running the product on your bottom lip before going to the top, his eyes mesmerized and nearly drooling.
yuta was practically tracing you, wanting to burn forever the shape of your mouth into his brain to remember for the rest of his life, wanting nothing more than to press his lips on yours.
but he inhaled sharply and quickly dropped his hand. âiâm finished.â
you pressed your lips together and spread the product around, âdid you feel it?â
he shakily nodded, wiping his finger on the warm damp towel before handing it over for you to do the same.
you held up a corner of the towel to his lips and gently wiped the scrub away, âand now theyâre soft.â
you passed the towel back over to him, and you sat back, eagerly waiting for him to do the same.
yuta swallowed again and mimicked you, except he was much slower, much more gentle over your plush lips as he subconsciously leaned closer to you that by the time he was done, his nose almost bumped with yours.
with eyes half lidded, he stared at your lips in a daze, licking his bottom lip slightly as you looked at him with wide eyes. he wanted to, so badly, to just grab your face and press your lips together, to pour the love heâs had for you for the past four years out and cherish you with everything that he has.
âyu?â you spoke softly, your voice barely above a whisper, your breath fanning against his lips.
his eyes immediately snapped to yours and he flinched back like a deer in headlights. âsoâ so when do i take this off?â he pointed to his face. âthe mud mask.. when does it come off?â
you looked at him curiously, your eyebrows slightly pinched together as you tried to make sense of what was happening, if anything even really happened.
âalmost..â you responded, unfocused. âin about five minutes.â
yuta quickly nodded and pressed his lips into a thin line, his hands clenched so hard into tight fists that his knuckles turned white.
he couldnât look you in the eye. what the fuck was he doing? he was going to scare you away if he kept doing things like this, if he kept almost slipping up and doing something that could jeopardize your friendship with him.
your trust.
you nudged his shoulder with your finger, and he finally looked at you.
âis the face mask bothering you that much?â you said with a silly smile, and yuta physically deflated, affection pumping through his system.
âno baby,â he shook his head. âi like it! i think i should keep it on for the rest of the night and go to class with it tomorrow morning.â
you snorted and shook your head, âdonât be mean.â
he raised his hands up frantically, âiâm not! you think everybody has the privilege of getting a free facial by their pretty best friend?â he held up his index finger and wiggled it side to side. âi donât think so.â
you giggled, so much, and grabbed the warm damp towel again, scooting closer to him by your knees. you began wiping away the mask on his face, being careful of not going too rough in fear of accidentally irritating and hurting him. yuta held you by the hips, assisting in keeping your balance and rubbing little circles into your stomach with his thumbs.
your cheeks went a little pink after a bit.
as the rest of the night went on, and when you both finally settled into bed facing each otherâ his hand on the side of your hip, you softly traced the rather dark bags under his eyes and frowned.
âyou need to get more sleep, yu. i think youâve had these bags since you were fifteen.â
âitâs because i always grind so i can buy you a big white house with a wiener dog and a picket fence.â
you laughed a little too loud and slapped a hand over your mouth, leaning forward and resting your forehead against his as your shoulders shook. when you settled down, you removed your hand and smiled sweetly.
âonly if the house comes with you.â
yutaâs breath hitched, and his eyes searched yours desperately, for any indication that maybe, just maybe, youâŠ
no.
âwhat⊠you want me as a roommate?â
you playfully rolled your eyes and gently shoved his shoulder.
yuta was twenty years old when he confessed to you.
it was also the first big fight you guys ever had in your entire years of knowing each other.
your relationship stayed the same, two peas in a little pod through college that never seemed to go to one place without the other, so much so that when you did, people would often ask where the other half was. he loved it. he loved you so much, and he found it harder and harder and more heart breaking for him as the years went by watching you not be his in any way shape or form.
every time he visited your campus or went with you to your college parties, he noticed the lurking eyes it seemed like every guy had on you everywhere you went, and it agitated yuta more than anything else. he was still a stubborn brat, and instead of doing something about it and maybe telling you how he feels, he just endures the pain and scowls at their glances, leading you through crowds by the hand or by the small of your back.
he never really indulged in the traditional college experience like you did, and never ever talked to any other girl besides you. he never wanted to or had any interest in doing so, regardless of you returning his feelings or not. you also never really talked to any other guy besides yuta or made any mention of your dating life, people mostly assuming you both were.
yuta weaved through the crowd, trying to spot a place for the both of you to sit while you went to get drinks from the kitchen. upon finally breaking free from the pile of dancing sweaty bodies, he recognized one of your girl friends and a couple of others sitting on a long lounge sofa, her eyes perking up.
ây/nâs boyfriend! you came?â
he stopped a bit, then smiled wide.
âyeah! sheâs in the kitchen now by the way, sheâll be over here in a second.â
and when you did come over, already a bit tipsy from the line of shots you got pulled into while getting drinks, you walked over to where yuta sat while greeting your friends, handing him a red solo cup. and instead of sitting in the spot yuta had saved for you right beside him, you settled neatly on his lap.
his eyes nearly bulged out of their eye sockets as you swung an arm around his shoulders for support and made yourself comfortable. you had never done something like this, and he swallowed the huge lump in his throat as trembling hands settled around your waist and over your lap. his arm tingled with the feeling of your thighs underneath, afraid to put his hands anywhere near them in fear of making you uncomfortable or accidentally grabbing your face and making out with you.
but the chance of that happening wasnât anywhere near impossible, as he was already tipsy by his drink and his hand was already gently caressing over the skin of your soft plush thighs.
best friends donât do things like this.
and he did not give a single fuck.
your boobs were practically shoved up in his face, his pinky cheeks absolutely blazing as his eyes darted to every corner of the house and anywhere else that wasnât your tits, his lips itching to feel, to taste.
the night progressed and the both of you got increasingly more and more drunk, clinging on to each other on the couch or stumbling through the house, laughing when one of you would trip and almost face plant on the hardwood floors, leaning on to each other for support.
âyour boyfriend almost knocked over the tub of tropical mix in the kitchen!â your girl friend yelled over the loud booming music, laughing.
yuta expected you to correct her, but you didnât, and only laughed along with her.
âno it wasnât him! it was me,â you giggled drunkenly, your arms around his neck as his were tight around your waist, your group standing off to the side of the dance floor. âhe had to grab me and pull me from it!â
and thatâs how it often was, just you and him. you taking care of him and him taking care of you in every way possible, trying to pay you back for all of the years you spent being there for him when he was younger and way more, simply because he wanted to.
and on a night where yuta was studying for finals in his room, his brother that was visiting from college came in and sat down on the edge of his bed.
âyou studying?â he asked.
yuta nodded, not bothering to take his eyes away from his notebook, still scribbling down his notes. he never really had the best relationship with his brother, much less after what had happened with you getting rejected by him.
his brother took a deep breath through his nose and nodded. âi um⊠are you still friends with y/n?â
that caught his attention, and yutaâs eyes lifted from his notes to look at him. âyes? iâm with her like, most of the time. if you havenât noticed.â
âno i have,â his brother murmured. âhow is she?â
yuta took a second to respond. âsheâs good.â
âthatâs good thatâs good. does she um- does she still have the same number?â
yuta put down his pencil and leaned back against his desk chair. âwhy?â
âi wanted to just catch up with her is all,â he shrugged. âi saw her when you brought her here for momâs birthday and i hadnât seen her since graduation.â
âcatch up with her?â yuta mumbled. âsince when do you give a shit about y/n?â
his brother scoffed. âi always have, yuta.â
âdidnât seem like it when you rejected her and started dating one of her close friends like the next day.â
his brother didnât say anything, and yuta rolled his eyes at the lack of response, picking his pencil back up to continue his work.
âi still have her on social media and see what sheâs up to⊠she posts you a lot. are you guys likeâ a thing?â
yuta bit the inside of his cheek. âno.â
his brother visibly relaxed for whatever reason and nodded. âi just want to talk to her again, is all. maybe buy her dinnerââ
yuta pushed his textbook away, dropped his pencil again and spun around, looking at him with narrowed eyes. âfuck no.â
his brother scoffed. âiâm not asking for permissionââ
âfuck no.â
âyuta iâm your brother i literally took you to school everyday and took care of youââ
ây/n did that.â yuta cut him off. ây/n gave me rides to school when i didnât have my license and bought me food when i didnât have a job. she also came to every single one of my games regardless of the weather and helped me with my homework when i was too stupid to figure it out on my own, everything you shouldâve done.â
âthatâs not trueââ
âyes it is.â yuta crossed his arms in annoyance. âshe didnât have to do any of that. she never had to take care of me the way that she did but she did it anyways. she took on your role because you were too busy being a dingus doing god knows what and she knew that. y/n has done more for me than youâve ever done in your entire twenty two years of living.â
his brother sat there in silence, yutaâs heavy angry breathing being the only thing heard in the room.
âokay wellââ his brother stood from his bed and walked over to the door. âiâm just going to text herââ
âwhy the fuck are you gonna meddle into her life now? what⊠are you bored? are you not satisfied with whatever fucking girl you find up there at school?â yuta threw his arms up in irritation, his blood beginning to boil. âyou treated her like shit. like absolute dog shit when you ignored her and avoided her for months after she confessed to you. do you understand how disrespectful that is?â
âwhatever man it was high schoolââ
âand what, that gives you a pass to treat her like that? when that happened i was sixteen picking up the pieces you shit all over at your grown ageââ
âiâm leaving.â
and with that, his brother walked out and slammed the door shut, and yuta was left absolutely red. red with anger he had never felt before in his life as he grabbed his notebook and chucked it across the room. he hated how casual he spoke of you, like you were just another girl he was going to try and get to know and fuckâ to then leave without another word like his brotherâs been doing his whole fucking life to girls. but not to you, it couldnât happen to you.
and it was like yuta was going through the five stages of grief because then he was afraid. what if you let his brother back into your life? what if you fell for him again? youâd done it before the chances were not zero of you doing it again.
yuta didnât want to lose you. he would rather gauge his eyes out and eat them for breakfast.
with that, yuta stumbled through his room putting on his shoes and snatching his car keys from his night stand, running down the hall and slamming the front door shut before getting in his car.
the drive was only about fifteen minutes to your house, and he felt so bad that it was nearly two in the morning and he was most likely going to wake you up, but he couldnât stand it. he was going absolutely crazy, everything in him gnawing and eating him alive, his brother having pushed every single button in his body and more.
his tires screeched as he pulled into your driveway, thankful that your parents were away on a getaway trip as he slammed his car door shut and made his way up to your front door. yuta rang your doorbell twice before you finally opened it.
slowly, you peeked your tired eye through the slit, and your body immediately relaxed at the sight of him. âoh my god yuta, you scared the absolute shit out ofââ
you stopped, your face falling at his livid expression and the way his chest heaved erratically. âyu? are you okay? whatâs going onââ
but yuta only pushed passed you and trudged up your stairs without another word. dumbstruck, you closed your front door with a click and locked it, following him up the stairs and into your room.
âwhatâs wrong?â
âmy brother is visiting from college.â he mumbled, sitting stiff on your desk chair. you moved to stand in front of him.
ââŠyou mentioned that yeahââ
âand he⊠he told me that he wants to reach out to you.â
your eyebrows furrowed, taken aback. âme? for what?â
âhe says he wants to catch up with you, see how youâre doing. be friends again i guess.â
yutaâs eyes remained stuck to the floor like glue, and you remained silent as you processed his words, confused out of your mind.
âi mean⊠i mean i guess? i guess thatâs fineââ
his head snapped up, âthatâs fine?â
you shrugged, âyes? i donât see the big deal i donâtââ
âbabyââ he shook his head in disbelief. âhe absolutely broke you and treated you like nothing in high school, and youâre fine letting him back into your life? great.â
you narrowed your eyes at him. âwhy are you being like that? he just wants to be friends again and thatâs fine with meââ
yuta scoffed. âhe doesnât deserve it! he doesnât deserve youââ
âyuta, whatever happened between your brother and i was years ago! iâm over it! this isnât a big fucking deal!â
you hated fighting with him, god how much you hated it, and the way that he looked at you now was making you absolutely sick.
âso youâre just gonna be friends with him again?â he shrugged, looking at you with narrowed eyes.
âyeah?â
âyouâre fucking stupid,â he spat, getting up from your desk chair and walking over to the door, reaching for your doorknob.
you instantly grabbed his shoulder and spun him around to face you. âwhat the fuck is wrong with you?!â
âwhatâs wrong with me?!â he raised his voice, jabbing a finger to his chest. âwhatâs wrong with you! do you not remember how bad you got when he did what he did?! do you really think i would stand here okay with you rekindling your little love for my brother?â
you scoffed, âmy little love?!â
and before you knew it, angry tears were streaming down your face. you hated the way he was talking to you, and you didnât know how your argument escalated so quickly and so drastically as you wiped your cheeks furiously.
and at the sight of you crying, yuta faltered slightly, his eyes softening.
âwhy do you think i still love him? i donât! i havenât since he rejected me!ââ
âwho says you wonât start again?â he spoke lowly, arms crossed over his chest. âmy brother never had to lift a fucking finger for you to be head over heels for him. you donât give a shit about yourself and youâre willing to throw yourself at him againââ
âshut up.â you spat, sobs raking through your body. âthe fact that youâre stuffing a bunch of fucking words into my mouth and assuming iâm going to jump into your brothers arms is bullshit.â
âiââ
âis this how low you think of me?â
âno baby i donâtââ
âyes you clearly do because everything thatâs come out of your mouthââ
âno! no iâm sorry i donâtââ
âthen whyââ
yuta shoved his hands into his hair exasperated, âbecause i love you!â
he let his arms fall limp, his eyes glossy and red with the most gut wrenching look on his face that read pure exhaustion. you had never seen him so torn.
âi love you and i love you and i have since since i was fifteen,â his voice shook with each word, hands trembling at his sides. âmore than a best friend, more than anything in this world, and i never saw you like another sibling like you did for me.â
âfi.. fifteen?â you spoke so softly he almost didnât hear you.
he nodded sadly, silent tears slipping down his cheeks and you automatically reached up, softly wiping them away with your thumbs as he closed his eyes, much like how yuta did when you got your heart broken by his brother on that rainy day.
yuta never cried.
âi swallowed it. you loved my brother and i swallowed it. i didnât give a shit if you only saw me as a sibling because i would rather make some type of mark in your life and be in it than not have you at all. but i canât take it anymore.â
he let out a sob, and he instantly shoved his face in the crook of his arm in embarrassment.
âyuâŠâ
âyou mean absolutely everything to me baby,â his voice was muffled a bit by his elbow, and after roughly wiping his eyes on the sleeve of his sweater, he dropped his arm to look at you again. âi would do absolutely a-anything for you. youâre precious to me and the prettiest girl i have ever laid my eyes on and will ever lay my eyes on.â
he hiccuped and crossed his arms over his chest, staring up at your ceiling. âbut i know you donât love me like i love you. iâve known for years and i just canât bring myself to let you go. itâs so bad that i would rather you break my heart over and over again than let you go for the sake of my wellbeing and watch you walk out of my lifeââ
âyuta, can you please look at me?â
âiâ i canât,â he shook his head as his voice trembled, tears slipping from the sides of his eyes as he continued to stare at your ceiling. âi canât do itââ
you slowly reached out and cupped his wet cheeks in the palm of your hands, tilting his face down gently to look at you, your eyes filled with remorse at the defeated look on his face.
âwhy didnât you tell me?â you asked softly. âwhy didnât you tell you were hurting so much?â
he shook his head slowly in your hands. âitâs not fair to you. i didnât want to put you in a difficult positionââ
âwhat difficult position, yu?â you spoke so gently, so sweetly to him that he almost fell to his knees. âhow could you have kept this in for five years? i canât even imagineââ you hiccuped, âi hate that you were hurting because of me-â
your voice began to contort again into sobs, and he quickly shook his head. âno baby no, it was not because of you, you did nothing wrong. you did the exact opposite.â
you wiped more of his tears with your fingers as he spoke, listening intently.
âno one gave a shit about me the way you did. not even my own parents, and not even my stupid brother that pretended like i practically didnât exist. you were the only one that was there and you didnât have to be. you couldâve easily ditched me at any given point and you never did, and i canât thank you enough for giving me a reason to keep going.â
he wiped his eyes. âand thatâs why i fell in love with you so hard because you were so selfless and sweet and i love your smile. i donât think i could ever make up for everything youâve doneââ
âbut you have!ââ you interjected, but yuta only shook his head.
âno i havenât. iâm a stubborn asshole who just said a bunch of shit five minutes ago that i didnât mean and i only hurt you and i never wanted thatââ
âyuta.â you spoke firmly. âyouâve literally done more for me than anyone else in my entire life and i hate that you canât see that or give yourself credit. you were there for me when i went absolutely insane after your brother rejected me even though you loved me then. you put your own feelings aside to take care of me baby..â
you softly took his hands and led him to sit with you on the bed, wiping his wet cheeks with your sleeve.
âdo you not remember when even though you didnât have a job, any chance you got money you would spend it on me instead of yourself?â you laughed softly. âthe minute you got your license you drove me anywhere i wanted⊠and even to little things like the store because you said you didnât want me to spend gas money.â
yuta slightly smiled.
âyou never ditched me either, when there was every opportunity you couldâve. you always make sure i eat and get enough sleep⊠and you make me so happy yu, i wish you could see how much i miss you when youâre not around.â
he tucked a piece of hair behind your ear and leaned in, softly planting a kiss to your cheek. you smiled warmly.
âwho told you i didnât love you back?â
yuta froze. âyou did?â
âwhen?â
âthe day my brother rejected you?â he cocked his head to the side. âi had asked you if you saw me as another sibling and you said yes.â
you threw your head back and moaned, âoh my god yu, of course in that moment because i was stupid and into your brother and i had just gotten rejected!â
you deflated and smiled at him warmly then, your eyes shining with emotions he didnât allow himself to believe were there. for five years, yuta forced himself to believe you could never return his feelings as a form of protection, and now there was a huge wall in his brain that was itching to come down.
you scooted closer to him and wrapped your arms around his neck, your foreheads touching. âask me again.â
âhm?â he was dazed, wide eyes staring into yours.
âask me that question again,â you spoke softly. âthe one from that day.â
yuta swallowed thickly, his breathing shaky through his nose, reiterating the phrase he played through his head like a broken record since it happened.
âas another siblingâŠâ he murmured. âis that how you see me?â
you shook your head gently against his forehead, âno⊠to meââ you leaned back slightly and tilted your head to the side. âyou look like the man iâve been in love with for the past three years.â
silence. nothing.
and then, his eyes welled with tears as he tackled you down and just cried. he cried and he cried into your neck and shook like a little leaf, you holding him so unbelievably tight as your bottom lip wobbled. yutaâs arms were snaked around you as he held you with just as much force if not more.
half a decade. half a decade yuta spent hopelessly lovesick for you that your words burned over his entire body like a fever, his mind reeling and hazy. he held on to you so fucking tight and refused to let go of you, in fear that this was all just some horrendous sick dream and he was going to wake up alone in his bed without you.
you placed a hand on the back of his head as you hugged him, âi love you so much yuta that sometimes i feel like im going nuts.â you laughed softly. âit was always you⊠itâs been you thatâs why i said earlier that i didnât care if your brother wanted to be friends again, because i love you and i donât give a shit about him and iâm sorry i made you upsetââ
âno,â he lifted his head from the crook of your neck and looked at you, his cheeks flushed with dried up tears and red eyes. âthat was just me being an absolute dick and scared of re-living high school all over again. i took that out on you and that wasnât fair at all, baby. iâm sorry.â
you carded your fingers through his hair. âwe both have things to be sorry about, and a lot of years to make up for.â
and finally, yuta grinned so big that his cheeks hurt.
âcan iââ he exhaled shakily. âcan i kiss you?â
âplease.â
and he smashed his lips against yours, greedily kissing you with so much desperation as he lip locked with you, his hands squeezing and roaming your body. the sound of your lips smacking was loud, and his kisses were so needy and sloppy against your soft plush lips that you squeaked at the intensity. you felt him grin again at your noise and he pulled away from you.
âiâve wanted this for so longâŠâ he breathed out, his breath fanning against your face as you tried to recover from what was probably the best kiss of your life. you nodded frantically, too dazed and caught up in the thought of his mouth on yours to respond with sentences that made sense.
he chuckled cutely at this, and he pressed a kiss to your forehead. âi love you and i love you.â
and since then, it was like the final wall had finally crumbled down, and yuta began to live like he was supposed to, like he was meant to, with you. his days of yearning and silent torment were over, and most of the time it still felt like a dream whenever he was by your side.
things stayed relatively the same between you two, as you now acknowledge how much of a couple you both actually were acting prior to yutaâs confession. the only major difference now though, was that yuta earned the privilege to call you his and give you sweet kisses as he picked you up from class, or when you make and hand him those ham sandwiches you always do just for him, only this time adorned with a honeyed kiss of your own.
sitting on his living room couch now, your head resting on his lap as a random horror movie played in the background, yutaâs fingers gently brushed over the features of your face as you stared at the tv, his eyes stuck to you like sticky lovesick glue.
you turned your head to look at him after a bit. âwhy donât you start playing soccer again?â you hummed. âis there a team at your school?â
yuta nodded, âthere is baby.â
âwhy donât you try out?â you smiled sweetly at him, and his heart ached. âi always loved watching you play. i miss it.â
âokay,â he tapped your nose. âjust for you.â
you rolled your eyes playfully. âand iâll start dragging your brother with me again.â
yutaâs eyes flung open as his jaw dropped, and you snorted, giggling uncontrollably as he tickled and pinched at your sides. âiâm just kidding! iâm kidding! iâd rather die.â
he let out a boyish laugh, his eyes sparkling as he looked down at you. âas much as i hate him, i canât thank him enough for being a stupid dingus.â
you quirked an eyebrow, âthank him? why?â
yuta gently and softly pinched one of your cheeks as he smiled at you, and it was then that you noticed the bags under his eyes were nearly gone. he leaned down and pressed a kiss to your lips, moving some of your hair away from your face after he did so.
âbecause he brought you to me.â
and you smiled, that same radiant sweet smile that made him fall in love with you in the first place, as you reached up and ran a tender finger under where his eye bags once stood, your voice light and airy as you spokeâ
âi love you and i love you, yuta.â
#jjk#jujutsu kaisen#jujutsu gojo#jujutsu yuta#yuta okkotsu#yuta x reader#yuta okkotsu x reader#jjk x reader#gojo x reader#gojo satoru x reader#jjk x you#jjk fluff#jjk fanfic#jujutsu geto#jujutsu nanami#jujutsu megumi#geto suguru x reader#nanami kento x reader#jjk yuta#gojo satoru#gojo x you#yuta x you#anime#manga#jjk smut#jujustsu kaisen x reader#yuta x y/n#gojo x y/n#yuta fluff#best friends to lovers
5K notes
·
View notes
Text
Ex at Christmas
violet "vi" x female reader â đŠđđŹđđđ«đ„đąđŹđ
summary: christmas is just around the corner, and you've been invited to spend them with your ex-girlfriend's family. only one problem is that your ex-girlfriend has not told anyone that the relationship is over. (requested by anon) â SEQUEL warnings/themes: fluff and angst, found family af, fake dating, ex lovers, christmas, family gatherings, secret santa, everyone is alive and happy au, modern au vi just begging for you to take her back? words: 17.8k.... (i got carried away) notes: it's so long i should've cut it into parts but idk where... so suffer (â„ïčâ„)
As always, the last drop is a lively spot. warm, cozy, and familiar. Colorful lights hang from the ceiling, a decorated tree stands in the corner, a 'merry christmas' painted on the wall, even a few strings of garland have been hung from the low ceiling.
People are crowding around the bar. Some are playing pool, some are simply chatting amongst themselves, cigarette smoke curling up toward the ceiling.
Vander's voice snaps you from your thoughts. âLook who finally showed her face around here.â He reaches over the top of the bar to ruffle your hair.
âI know, I know,â you laugh, swatting his hand away. âThings are just... busy, y'know?âÂ
Vander rests his forearms on the countertop, leaning closer to you. âJust making sure you're still alive. 'Been an awful long while since I last saw you.â
âI've been fine, old man.âÂ
âGlad to hear you're doing alright kid. Haven't seen you around here in, what, three months? You need to come by more often, keep an old guy company,â he chuckles. âI almost thought you'd vanished.â
âYou sound like a grandma with kids that never call.â
Vander grins and winks at you, taking a rag and wiping at the bartop. âYou're like a kid to me, so I guess it checks out.â
You scoff but say nothing, leaning against the bartop as your eyes start to travel across the room. A few people mill about that you recognize as regular patrons, but other than that, there's pretty much no one of interest.
Vander snorts and lifts the rag to his shoulder. âWe're having our christmas gathering again this year, you should swing by. Just like last christmas, eh?â
A lot has changed for you in the past month, and you've been dreading this coming up. âI... don't know. I don't think so.â
Vander raises an eyebrow. âWhat do you mean you don't know? Not up to seeing the old gang again?â
âNot exactly,â you murmur, the memory of the breakup is still fresh. It's not that you don't want to see your friends, it's just the idea of seeing Vi again.
You sigh, running a hand through your hair. âIt's not that, I just... things have changed, especially recently. I don't want to... accidentally make things awkward or something.â
Vander shakes his head and it almost seems like he's laughing at you. âWhy would it be awkward?â
âI don't knowâŠâ You sigh, your shoulders slumping in resignation. âNevermind it, I'm going.â
Your words get a smirk out of Vander, and he reaches over to poke your arm. âThat's what I like to hear,â he gives you a wink, folding his arms across his chest. âYou better show up or I'll drag you here myself. You know I could.â
âLike I'd let you drag me here, old manâthere's no way your back can handle that.â
âAh, you kids these days have no respect for your elders. You're gonna break my old back and then I'll die,â he pretends to sniffle, making you scoff.
Silco then walks over, looping his arms around Vander's shoulders. The two of them exchange a knowing glance before Silco turns his attention to you. âLook who actually decided to show up.â
Vander laughs as he pats Silco's arm. âCut the kid some slack. They're just here to have a good time.â
Silco chuckles, his eyes still on you. âSo are you coming on Christmas?â
You almost sigh as Silco brings up the party again. You rub at the back of your neck, and just as you're about to answer, Vander beats you to it.
âYeah, she's coming,â he confirms.
Silco hums, he lifts his arm from off vander, resting it in his hip instead. âGood, I was beginning to think you were going to weasel your way out of it.â
Vander smacks his shoulder. âLay off, would ya? let the kid breathe.â
Silco relents and waves his hand dismissively. âI'm just saying,â he looks back at you. âWe all want you there, you know. It wouldn't be the same without you.â
Hearing them say that makes you feel guilty for even considering not going. You know they mean it. You just hope it won't be too much awkward with Vi there.
Vander nods and smiles. âHe's right, you know. Everyone's been asking about you. They'll be happy to have you there.â
âI get it. You don't have to butter me up, old man.â
Vander chuckles, then he glances over his shoulder, gesturing to a small, unassuming box on a nearby table. âHey, could you grab that little box over there for me?â Silco smirks and nods before moving to get the box, bringing it over and handing it to Vander.
âWhat's in the box?â you ask.
Vander grins at you, holding the box in his hands. âWe're doing a secret santa,â he explains, âand since youâre coming that means you're participating too.â
Your eyebrows raise to your hairline. You'd completely forgotten about the secret santa. You groan in annoyance, running your hands over your face. âI'm still annoyed I got that whoopee cushion from Powder last year.â
âThat was a good one. She was so damn proud of herself too, and besidesâŠâ Vander pauses, turning to look at you. âYou never know, you might get something less annoying this year.â He then holds the box out to you, a smile on his lips.
There's always the possibility you won't get something shitty, but knowing most of your friends... Yeah, that's unlikely.
You look at the box, then up at Vander, sighing. You take the box from him. âI hope you're right, old man.â
Vander chuckles before stepping back to talk to Silco.
You turn the box over in your hands, feeling the weight of it. It's not too heavy, and you almost feel compelled to shake it. But if you do that, you'll probably end up drawing Vander's name, and that's basically cheating.
Sighing, you decide to just bite the bullet. You take the lid off the box, sticking your hand inside. Your fingers rummage around before they eventually close around a folded piece of paper.
You pull out the slip of paper, unfolding it slowly. You glance at the handwriting, then almost roll your eyes.
Of course you got Vi.
Out of all the names you could have drawn, you get the one person you didn't want to get. You could have gotten literally anyone else. Mylo, Claggor, Powder, Silco, or anyone other than Vi. but no, you had to get your ex. Just your luck.
You look at the note again, and the first thought that comes to your mind is...
Well, crap.
You're so focused on the slip of paper in your hands that you don't notice Vander and Silco peeking over your shoulder.
âSo, who'd you get?â
Vander's question makes you jump, you quickly stuff the paper into your pocket before they can see who it is.
âNo one,â you say, waving your hand to dismiss the question. âIt's not important.â
Silco raises an eyebrow. âThen why are you pocketing the paper?â
âIt's a secret for a reason.â
Vander and Silco glance at each other, and you can tell they're silently communicating.Â
Vander turns back to you a moment later, rubbing his jaw. âA secret, huh? Well, that means whoever you got won't know it's you.â
Silco hums. âThat's probably a good thing,â he mumbles.
âThat's kind of the point of a secret Santa.â
Vander nods, scratches his beard before his lips turn up in a small smile. âTrue means you can give them something real nice.â
Silco glances at Vander before looking at you. âWhoever you got is probably going to be very happy when they get their gift.â
You almost snort at Silco's words. Yeah, right. a gift from you? Sheâll probably chuck it straight in the trash.
You run a hand through your hair, trying to shake the thoughts of Vi out of your head. You don't know why you're worried about how she'll react. Why care if she'll like the gift? Why care if she's happy with whatever you get her?
The answer is so obvious, but you don't want to admit it even to yourself.
Vander and Silco are still looking at you, and you realize that you have to say something. Any longer and they might figure it out.
You push those thoughts away and force out a small scoff. âIf they'll actually like it. I'm not the best with gifts.â
âOh, I'm sure they will,â Silco says, an almost knowing smirk on his face.
Vander nods. âJust give them something from the heart.â
From the heart, my ass. The only thing you want to give her from the heart is a kick in the ass.
âBecause someone's gonna be real happy with something from me.â
Vander and Silco exchange another look again, like they're having an entire conversation without actually saying anything.
You turn away from them, looking out the window. They're probably trying to read your mind, figure out who it is you got. The thought makes your eyes twitch. You don't want them to know. You don't know why, but you really don't want them to know.
âJust do us a favor,â Silco suddenly says, cutting into the silence that had fallen between you. âTry not to stress too hard about it. You'll give yourself gray hairs.â
Vander chuckles at Silco's words, âYou'll give us an old heart attack.â
âHa ha, funny.â
Silco grins at your response. âWell, we're only half-joking.â
Vander's eyes soften. He slaps Silco's shoulder to get him to shut up. âWhat he means is, you overthink too much,â Vander adds.
You almost huff. Yeah, so what if you overthink? It's a normal thing to do. especially in situations like this, where you're stuck with the one person you don't want to be.
Why keep thinking about her? You need to stop obsessing over her. She made her choice, and it wasn't you.
You run your fingers to your face, trying to think of something else to distract yourself. It's not like you don't know what you want to get Vi. You just don't know if you should get it.
âI don't overthink,â you grumble, shifting your weight on your feet.Â
âOh yes, you do.â
And they're both right about that.. You can't even count how many times you've paced around your apartment, replaying every interaction you had with Vi over and over again in your head. Every word, every touch, and every look. All of it, it's like your brain refuses to let you forget.
You've spent countless nights trying to figure out where you went wrong. What you could have done differently if there was something you could have changed. All of that, just because of one person who tossed you aside without a second thought.
âListen,â Silco suddenly says, snapping you out of your thoughts. You look over at him as he stands up straight, a smirk spreads across his lips. âYou're going to drive yourself crazy thinking about something that hasn't even happened yet.â
âHe's right,â Vander gives you a look before continuing. âAnd for the love of God, stop overthinking.â
If only it were that simple. If only you could just switch off your brain and stop thinking about everything.
But you know damn well you can't do that. Your thoughts are as uncontrollable as the weather, and right now, they're a mess.
You take a deep breath, trying to calm your thoughts.
âI should probably go,â you mutter, and the two men nod. Vander pats you on the back as you start for the door.
âSame place, eh?â he calls after you.
âDon't think too hard, kid,â Silco adds.
You give them both a small nod as you exit the bar, shutting the door behind you.
Christmas is going to be one hell of a mess this year, you can feel it.
Now all you have to do is figure out how the hell you're going to deal with it.
â
You're standing outside of Vander and Silcoâs house, the weight of the present in your hands suddenly feeling a thousand times heavier.
You've replayed this moment in your head countless times, but now that it's happening for real, you're not sure if you're ready.
Christmas music drifts out of the house, it's a familiar tune that you've heard a million times.
You push down the anxiety gnawing at your stomach. You shouldn't be feeling so nervous, it's just a gift. Just a present for a secret santa.
But this isn't just anyone, this is Vi. The one person who you didn't want to get. The one person who broke things off without a second thought.
Stop thinking about this. It's just one night. one stupid night, and then it will be over. You can get through this, you can handle being around Vi for one Christmas. No more thinking about her. No more wondering where you went wrong or if you could have done something to change things. Just get through the night and forget about her.
You take another deep breath, straighten up, and square your shoulders. Then, in one moment, you push open the doors to their house and walk inside.
Your eyes search the room, looking for that familiar pink hair. But you don't see her. Your shoulders relax a little. Maybe she's not here yet. That'll give you a few minutes to brace yourself. No one is around right now, probably in their rooms or preparing for the dinner.Â
You were so distracted by looking around that you didn't realize someone was standing right behind you until they grabbed you and spun you around. Your eyes meet their powder blue ones, and your mouth suddenly goes dry.
âWhat the hell are you doing here?â
âWoah, hey-â you stumble over your words.
âDon't 'woah hey' me,â she snaps, her grip tightening on your arm.
Vander's deep voice cut in before you could even speak. âYou've actually came.â
You feel her look away from you, her hand finally falling from your arm. As soon as it does, you rub the skin where she grabbed you.
Vander looks between the two of you and says, âHand me the gift, kid. I'll put it there.â He gestures towards a christmas tree where the gifts are already sitting underneath.
You quickly hold the present out for him to take.
He takes it before giving both of you another look. âGo easy with your girlfriend, eh?â
You freeze, your heart stopping as his words register. Your eyes widen as you slowly turn your head to look at Vi.
Girlfriend?
âI will.â Before you can even process what's happening, you're being pulled outside.
You yank your arm back from Vi, quickly putting some distance between the two of you. âWhat's your problem?â
She spins around and scoffs, looking you up and down. âI should be asking you that. What the hell are you doing here?â
âVander invited me. He asked me to come.â
âThen you should've said no.â
âWow? just wow.â You take a deep breath, trying to stay calm. âI know that things didn't go well between us, but you don't get to push me out of this family. They're my family too, and Vander invited me here to celebrate. I have as much right to be here as you do.â
You refuse to break eye contact with her. âYou can ignore me all you want, but you don't get to decide how I'm allowed to spend my Christmas. If you want to keep acting like this, fine. Ignore me, pretend I don't exist, just like you've been doing for the past months.â
Vi lets out a laugh, rubbing a hand on her forehead. âThey do not know.â
You blink at her. âWhat do you mean?â
She looks over at the entrance and says, âThey all think we're still together.â
Your eyes widen. âWhat?â you almost shout. âWhy the hell would they think that?â
âBecause I didn't tell them,â she scoffs. âEvery time I talk to them, they ask me how you are. Silco and Vander keep making comments about how we make a cute couple. They still think we're together.â
âWhy the hell didn't you tell them?â you glare at her. âWere you ever going to?â
âI don't know,â she retorts, throwing her arms up. âThey're all so happy about us being together.â
âThat's such bullshit,â you snap at her. âThat's such a crappy excuse! You should be the one to tell them we broke up.â
She looks away, planting her arm on her hips. âDon't you think I know that?â she shoots back. âIt's not that simple. I can't just rip off the bandage like that.â
âIs that it? Youâre scared that they'll know?â
âDonât act like you donât know how Silco and Vander can get.â
âI know how they get,â you snap back at her. âYouâre just too much of a pussycat to face them and tell them the truth.â
Her expression hardens, and her jaw clenches. âLook who's talking. You can't even say no to a little family gathering, but here you are.â
âDon't even start. I didn't come here because I wanted to see you. I came for the family, not for you.â
âAs if I wanted to see you either. The last thing I wanted was to have to deal with you all night.â
You look her right in the eye. âFine, you know what? I'll go tell them right now that we broke up. They deserve to know.â
She grabs your wrist before you can take a step towards the door. âWaitâ
You look down at her hand, then back up at her. âWhat?â
âDon't,â she says through gritted teeth. âJust... don't tell them yet.â
You scoff, ripping your arm away from her grip. âWhy the hell not? So they can keep thinking we're still together?â
âJust don't tell them tonight. Can you just give me until after Christmas?â
âWhy are you still dragging this out? What difference does it make if we wait till then or do it now?â
âBecause it's fucking christmas!â she snaps before dropping her gaze. âLook, it's the holidays. I just... I don't want to ruin Christmas. They've all been looking forward to all of us celebrating together. I don't want to ruin it by spoiling the fun.â
âWaitâlet me get this straight. You want to fake it this christmas? Pretend we're still a happy couple?â
She's quiet again. âYeah,â she whispers, looking down. âYeah, that's what I'm asking.â
âYouâre unbelievable, Vi.â You take a deep breath, trying to keep yourself together. âDo you know how ridiculous that sounds? You're asking me to pretend like we're still together, to pretend that nothing has changed.â
âIt's just one day,â she mumbles. âOne day, that's all I'm asking for. We can tell them anytime after that, just not tonight, please.â
She even says please. Something about the way she says it makes your heart ache.
She looks desperate, like this really means something to her. Who are you kidding? Of course, this means something to her.Â
They're her family, they're important to her. And on Christmas, all they want is for everything to be perfect. perfect food, perfect presents, and perfect couples.
You hate the way she's looking at you with those soft, pleading eyes. She always looks at you like that when she wants something, and you always give in. She does it subconsciously, knowing how to get exactly what she wants. And damn it, it works.
âFine,â you mutter through clenched teeth. âYou've got your damned wish.â
And there it is. There's the look you've been waiting for. That look of relief that comes to her eyes.
You hate that look. You hate how your heart flutters when she looks like that. You hate it so much.
âYeah?â
âYes, you've got me for tonight. I'll pretend like we're still together. Happy now?â
There's a flicker of a smile on her face, something quick that's gone before you can even register. âYeah, thank you.â
She looks away again. Silence falls between the two of you as you shift awkwardly.
This is gonna be a long night.
You let out a sigh, watching as she keeps her focus on the floor. This is so damn awkward.
And it's your own fault for agreeing to this nonsense. There's no way this night doesn't end up being a goddamn catastrophe.
You would give anything to just disappear right now.
Powder's voice snaps you out of your thoughts. Peeking her head out of the doorway, looking at the two of you. âHey, you two. Itâs cold out there, get your asses in here.â
You look at Vi, waiting for a sign of acknowledgment.
She slowly glances up, her gaze meeting yours. âCome on,â she murmurs, holding out her hand.
Taking a deep breath, you take her hand in yours.
You've held her hand so many times beforeâmore times than you can count. Holding her hand used to be nothing, but now it feels so odd. Almost awkward.
But she doesn't seem to notice how out of place it feels. She slowly leads you towards the door, squeezing your hand as she pulls you along.
âHow are my favorite love birds doing?â Mylo's voice greets you as you both enter.
He slings a casual arm over your shoulders, leaning on your shoulder to get a better look at you. âIt's about time you two showed up. I thought for sure you were just gonna keep making out in a corner somewhere.â
It takes everything you have not to elbow him in the stomach. Instead, you keep a neutral expression and chuckle awkwardly, âYeah, you know us. Can't keep our hands off of each other.â
âYou two are sickeningly in love, it's really cute, actually.â
Your eye twitches, and you bite the inside of your cheek.
âYeah, we're very in love,â Vi says, and you can tell she's trying not to roll her eyes.
Mylo claps you on the shoulder before releasing you. âWell then, I'm going to go find myself some eggnog,â he leaves towards the kitchen, whistling to himself as he goes.
You turn to look at Vi, and you almost feel a twinge of hatred towards the way she so casually holds your hand, like nothing is wrong.
âAre you okay?â
Her voice brings you back to reality, and suddenly you're all too aware of how hard you're clenching your jaw and the fact that you're basically just glowering at the floor with a storm cloud over your head.
You raise your eyes to meet with hers, and you have to force yourself to release some of the tension. âYeah, fine,â you mutter. âjust coldâ
It's a lie, obviously. It's not cold at all. Vander always keeps the place nice and warm.
Not even she's dumb enough to fall for that. She glances around, clearly noticing how you're not really hiding your feelings well.
She runs her thumb over the back of your hand. It's an innocent gesture, one that you've seen dozens of times before. It's not meant to be anything special, it never was. And yet, it still makes your heart skip a beat.Â
You have absolutely no idea how you're going to get through this night with both your sanity and your heart still intact.
âOkay,â she finally says, âcan you stop clenching your jaw so hard? you look like you're trying to grind your teeth down to the bone. I know this isn't the ideal situation, but please don't go around looking like you want to kill everyone in this room.â
Her fingers squeeze your hand, and you realize just how tightly you're holding her hand in yours. Your knuckles are white, and your fingers are probably digging into her skin.
Gritting your teeth, you loosen your grip.Â
âThere, that's better.â She lets out a quiet breath. âPlease try and just relax for a bit. This is going to be hellish already, so I at least need you to not look like you hate me every second we're in here.â
You let out a frustrated huff, looking away from her. âPlease don't act like you care.â
âI'm not acting like I care,â she says, a tone just loud enough for only you to hear. âI do care, and that's the problem.â
Of course she has to say something like that right now. Of course she has to hit where it hurts the most.
Care? care about what? about you? about what she put you through, how she broke your heart?
You open your mouth, but your response dies in your throat. You have no idea how to respond to that.
A loud shout interrupts your thoughts, and you both turn around. âOi! Time for dinner!â Powder yells from the doorway into the kitchen.
Vi mutters under her breath, âfinally.â
Powder grins as she waves you both over. âHurry up or Vander will eat everything and complain about his bad back afterwards.â
âWe're coming,â Vi calls back.
The two of you head towards the kitchen. There's a long table in the middle of the room, covered in a red and green tablecloth. Everyone is already crowded around the table, taking their seats as you two enter the room. Vander is at the head of one of the tables, Silco seated beside him. Mylo and Claggor are chatting amongst themselves as Powder takes her seat beside Claggor.
Vi looks at the seating arrangement and sighs, realizing what's about to happen. She pulls you over to the table and sits down, pulling you down into the seat right next to her.
After a few moments, everyone quiets down and turns their attention to Silco.
Silco places his hands together. âIt's good to see everyone together like this today. I am thankful that we are all here, safe and healthy.â He glances around the room in a quick survey, seeming to count everyone's attendance. âAnd what better time to be together than the holidays?â
Powder lets out a huff. âCan we just eat? I'm starving.âÂ
Silco raises his hand for Powder to stay quiet. âPatience, Pow. First, let's do something a bit⊠different.â
Mylo and Claggor glance at each other in confusion. âDifferent?â Mylo repeats.
âIndeed,â Silco replies. âInstead of just diving into our meal, I thought it would be nice if we all took a moment to share a few words about what we are thankful for this year.â
âWe're really gonna do this?â
Claggor nudges him. âBe polite, Mylo.â
âHe's right, though,â Powder chimes in.
Silco raises an eyebrow at them both. âIs it really such a hassle to express gratitude at the end of the year?â
Mylo and Powder grumble something under their breaths.
Claggor is the first one to respond. âI think it's a fine idea.â
âThank you, Claggor,â Silco replies, âI'm glad we have at least one cooperative person here.â
After a moment of silence, Vander speaks. âAlright, then I'll go first... I am grateful for my family,â he says as he looks around the room, taking in the faces before him. âI am thankful for my health, for my business, and most of all, that everyone is still here with me and safe.â
âThat's so soft,â Powder mutters, but everyone ignores her.
Vander turns his head and looks directly at Silco, as if he's saying something that's meant to be for Silco's ears only, though everyone can clearly hear. âI'm also thankful for you, Sil,â he adds, the corner of his mouth twitching in a knowing smile.
You're not sure if you're the only one who noticed, but that comment definitely seemed personal and almost a little out of place.
He collects himself quickly and nods at Vander, seemingly not quite sure of what to say. âThank you, Vander.âÂ
Silco clears his throat and composes himself, turning his gaze to Powder. âHow about you, Pow? Any words of gratitude?â
Powder groans, slouching back in her seat like a child who's been forced to eat her vegetables. âI swear, if you make me say something corny-â
Mylo leans over the table to look at her sister. âSay something nice for once, or you're not getting dessert.â
âUgh, fine. I am thankful forâŠâ she looks around the room. âI'm thankful everyone's here and we're all... whatever, happy and healthy or something like that,â she mumbles.
âI'll take whatever I can get,â Silco mutters before turning his attention to Claggor. âWhat about you, Claggor?â
Claggor seems to be taking a moment to think, like he's actually putting effort into what he will say. âI'm grateful forâŠâ his eyes are almost unfocused as he thinks. After a moment, he glances up to look at Vander. âI'm grateful for the family I have here.â
Vander gives him a warm look in response.
Everyone's gaze turns to Mylo, expecting him to go next.
He fidgets anxiously, shifting in his seat as he glances around the room. âWhat am I supposed to say?...er, fine... My whole life's a mess, but...at least all you idiots are here to make my life more miserable.â
âWe love you too, Myloâ Powder teases. âReal touching. I think I might cry.â
Mylo throws a glare in her direction. âShut up.â
Silco glances at Vi, his gaze lingering as he waits for Vi to speak.
âI'm thankful forâŠâ her voice is a bit quieter than usual, more hesitant. She glances at you before continuing. âI'm... thankful for the people I have in my life.â
Everyone's gaze settles on you next, waiting for you to say something. âWell, I... I guess I'm thankful to be able to still participate in this family gathering, even if I haven't seen everyone in a while.â You take a look at Vi before moving on. âHopefully I can still be here and spend Christmas with all of you next year too.â
She holds your gaze for a moment, almost as if she's processing what you just said⊠and then, unexpectedly, a smile tugs at the corner of her lips.
It's a subtle change, barely noticeable, but you see it. and just seeing her smile, even a small one like that, has butterflies filling your stomach. It's been so long since you've seen her smile like that. A part of you misses it, a part of you yearns to see it more often.
She quickly looks away, and you notice that her cheeks have turned a light shade of pink.
âThere, we all said our little cheesy bullshit,â Powder says, clearly getting impatient.
Silco turns to Powder, his expression disapproving. âLanguage, Pow,â he reminds.Â
Vander sighs. âYes, Powder, mind your languageâ he adds, earning a mock-offended look from Powder.
âLike you don't swear all the time.â
âI do not swear all the time, Pow,â he protests, although you know it's a lie. Even the most proper and upstanding people swear, and Vander is definitely not that.
âYeah, yeah, sure.â
Vander huffs but chooses not to add anything. Silco lets out a dry cough to redirect everyone's attention. âRight, now that that's over, let's go ahead and eat, shall we?â Silco says, as if the whole moment of gratitude never happened..
âFinally,â Mylo grumbles, âI was starting to wonder if you forgot about why we all gathered here.â
Silco gives him a look. âPatience is a virtue, Mylo.â
âWe've all been patient for the last hour, so spare me.â
Claggor lets out a little sigh, but thankfully Mylo and Powder seem to settle into silence for the time being.
Silco nods in approval. âThen, shall we begin?â
Vander gets up from his seat, moving to go grab the food.
Powder and Mylo look at Vander expectantly, and they both look like they're about to get out of their seats. Silco gives them a warning look, silencing them before they can get a word out. âWait until everything is ready.â
They both grumble, but they obediently sit back down. They're impatient, sure, but they at least know better than to piss off Silco.
Vander returns a moment later, setting a platter filled with food on the table. It looks delicious, and the smell is mouthwatering. Your stomach growls a little, reminding you of how hungry you are.
Powder and Mylo are practically drooling, and you honestly wouldn't be surprised if they lunged for the food the moment Silco gave the word.
Thankfully, he doesn't give them any chance. He simply says, âPlease, help yourselves,â and Silco has to gesture for them to wait.
They almost get up and move to the table, and they're clearly resisting the temptation to shove each other to try and get to the food faster.
Mylo lets out a curse, and Jinx giggles in response. Vi stands up and grabs both of them, grabbing onto their shoulders and holding them back from each other.
âEnough, you two,â she scolds, âthere's plenty of food for everyone. Chill out.â
They look at her with expressions that clearly are saying, 'no, we're hungry'. Powder lets out a huff, and Mylo looks like he's one more remark away from shoving her sister.
Vi's expression sharpens, her eyes boring into Mylo and Powder. âNo, quit the bullshit, you can wait a few minutes, and if you two can't act like adults about it, neither of you are getting any.â
Mylo immediately shuts up at that, his expression turning slightly more guilty. Powder just looks like she's about to protest, a pout forming on her face. Vi glares at Powder to shush her as well.
âJust quit it,â she says. âYou can wait, the food will taste better if you don't shove it all down your throats like dogs.â
âFine, we'll wait,â she grumbles.
Mylo just nods with a pout, staying quiet.
Vi seems to notice their looks, and she rolls her eyes, staying put just in case. She seems wary as she watches Powder and Mylo, her eyes switching from them to the food on the table.
And sure enough, the moment Silco gestures for everyone to get their food, Powder and Mylo are gone, rushing to claim their plates.
Claggor lets out a sigh as Powder and Mylo shove each other for their own plates. No one says anything though, they're all just used to it. This is just how Powder and Mylo are, and they've come to accept it. Vi doesn't even seem as bothered as everyone else does.Â
Mylo seems like he's really close to just pushing Powder to the side and snatching up the slice he wants, and Powder doesn't look any better. Honestly, if Vi didn't step in, there was a chance they'd start throwing punches.
And judging from how the others' looks, especially Silco, they look like they're expecting this.Â
It's like this is all completely normal, they know to expect this kind of behavior when food, and more importantly, free food, is involved.
Powder and Mylo finally settle down after their little fight, and they finally begin digging into the food.
Mylo is practically shoving it into his face, eating it like he's been starved for weeks. Powder isn't any better, although at least she's not making a complete mess.
Claggor is significantly slower when it comes to eating, choosing to take his time as he slowly eats as opposed to just shoving the food into his mouth.
Vander eats at a decent pace, and he doesn't seem as starving like Mylo is.
The last one to begin eating is Silco, and surprisingly enough, there's a smile on his face. He takes one look at how Mylo and Powder are chowing down on their food, then he turns his gaze and looks at you, as if silently asking if you're going to eat.
You take the hint, and you decide to dig into your own food. The food is delicious, and you can't blame Mylo and Powder for basically trying to swallow their food whole.
Vi also begins eating now that everyone's settled down.
Vander lets out a laugh, his eyes crinkling up at the corners. âSlow down a little, you two, the food isn't going anywhere.â
Mylo and Powder both raise their heads at that, and they both look like they're considering it for a moment... but they immediately go back to shoving food down their throats.
Claggor shakes his head as he watches them eat. âYou'd think they'd never seen a Christmas dinner before.â
âYou know them, they would scarf down all the food in town if they could.â
Powder glances up at that, a small pout forming on her lips. âHey, it's not our fault we're just starving.â
Mylo nods in agreement, his mouth too full to say anything.
âYou both just had eaten before this,â Claggor counters.
Mylo swallows whatever food is in his mouth long enough to argue with Claggor. âAnd that was hours ago.â
âYeah,â Powder agrees, âit was practically an eternity since we ate.â
âTwo hours is not an eternity,â Claggor retorts.Â
âIt might as well be,â Powder counters.
Despite the bickering and arguing the dinner feels oddly... domestic, almost.
Claggor looks like the responsible and mature oldest sibling who's done with his siblings nonsense, Vander almost acts like a tired parent, Silco acts more like a stern aunt, and Powder and Mylo act like rowdy kids who are constantly at each other's throats.
Vi sits next to you. She's making sarcastic comments with Silco, laughing at Powderâs jokes, and making small talk with Claggor. She even gives Mylo an unimpressed glare when he tries to snatch all the bread for himself.
It's almost like you're both back to normal. The way she's acting makes your heart ache. She's giving you all the attention a partner would give.
She gives you fond smiles whenever you make a comment, she casually slides an arm around your shoulders, she even scoots her chair a little closer to yours.
Her eyes are soft, her voice is soft, whenever you look at her, she looks back with this almost affectionate look.
It's so normal, that it almost takes you back to your relationship and how you two were before the breakup.
She's even doing little things, like leaning closer to you, letting a hand rest on your thigh, even discreetly grabbing your hand and intertwining your fingers with hers under the table.
You want to hold her tight and never let her go, but your brain keeps reminding you. You two aren't together anymore.
But when you look at her, when she looks at you with that look in her eyes, everything goes quiet.Â
Maybe it could work this time.
Maybe you two could just bury the hatchet and move on.
Maybe things could work between you two if you try it out again.
Then you remember the fights, the nights you spent on your bed, crying while Vi was out with friends. You remember how she treated you after the breakupâhow she tossed you aside like discarded trash.
You try to ignore it, push it to the back of your head. But it's so hard when Vi sits next to you, close enough for you to catch the scent of her perfume. She smells like cigarettes and leather, something that's so her.
You're so focused on trying to stop yourself from touching her or even getting closer that you're almost surprised when she suddenly leans her head against your shoulder.
She doesn't say anything, just leans against you.
She's so close. She's pressed against your side, her shoulder against your shoulder, her head against yours, her hand on your thigh.
You notice her scent again, now stronger.
Her hair brushes against your neck, the way you can feel the warmth of her body, and the way her thumb draws little circles into your thigh.
She's so close, and yet you want her even closer.
You want to run your hands through her hair, you want to nuzzle your face into her shoulder, you want to feel her hands roaming your body.
You just want her.
Your thoughts are suddenly interrupted by Powder, her question pulling you out of your head. âIt's been a while since we've seen you two together,â she says, her mouth still full of food.
Claggor shoots Powder a look. âPowder-â
âShush, I'm just wondering,â she argues, shrugging casually, âhas she been avoiding you?â
âNo,â you say before anyone can say anything. âWe just... haven't had time to schedule any dates, that's all.â
âFor months? Haven't had time to schedule a single date for months?â
âLife gets busy, yâknow,â you reply, trying to sound nonchalant.
Mylo scoffs at that. âYou two are dating, the least you could do is at least manage one date a month.â
Claggor smacks him over the head. Mylo grumbles and rubs the back of his head, shooting his brother a glare. âWhat? it's true,â he mutters. âWe just kind of... we all miss you.â
Vander gives Mylo a disapproving glare. âWhat Mylo means is, your presence has been sorely missed around here.â
âWe all just... we just want you around more,â Powder puts in her two cents, speaking around a mouthful of food again.
You cast a sidelong glance at Vi. You and her are putting up a pretty good facade so far, but Mylo's question seemed to have put her on the spot a little. She catches your glance, and you give her a look that says, just play along. Vi sighs, her hand squeezing your thigh.
âLook, I-â she glances around the table, meeting everyone's eyes before sighing and putting on the most believable expression. âI know we haven't been as... present as we should have been for the past few months. Work just got really hectic.â
âThat's true,â you back her up with a nod. âI had to travel away for a business trip a few weeks ago, so it's been pretty hard to find time to spend together.â
Vander, Silco, and Powder all nod in understanding. They're aware of the fact that you have a job in a big city, so it's not an unbelievable explanation.
Mylo, however, snorts and crosses his arms. âYou don't have to feed us some lame excuse for not hanging out with us.â
Claggor gives Mylo another smack. âWould you shut up already?â
âOw!â Mylo grumbles as he rubs his head again, shooting Claggor a dirty look.
Vander sighs. âRegardless, it's good to have you here for Christmas this time.â
Everyone nods and agrees. Powder grins at you, Silco shoots you a small almost-smile, and Claggor and Vander both look genuinely pleased to have you here.
All eyes then land on Mylo, and he shrugs again, mumbling, âI guess it is good to have you here.â
âSee, it's a christmas miracle, Mylo isn't being a little prick for once,â Powder teases.
Mylo scowls at her. âHey, I'm never a little prick-â
âBullshit.â
Mylo just grumbles again, his eyes narrowing at Powder. âI just think that-â
âNobody cares what you think,â Powder interrupts again.
That just causes Claggor, Vander, and Silco to laugh. Vi snorts next to you, squeezing your thigh.
The conversation soon changes to talking about old childhood holiday memories.
Mylo tells a story about you and him stealing Silco's secret chocolate stash when you were twelve. Silco scowls at the memory, but there's a hint of a smile at the corner of his mouth.
Powder tells a story about the time she accidentally burned the back of Vander's hair with a roman candle. Vander laughs and shakes his head at the memory.
At some point, Claggor chimes in to tell a story about a time he and Mylo accidentally broke a window during a snowball fight. Even Mylo himself laughs at that one.
There's lighthearted banter, friendly jabs, and just a lot of laughter in between. This, this is what it should have been like from the beginning. It reminds you of the way it used to be when you were all younger, but still has a different air to it. In a way, it's almost better than those old days. Everyone's grown, but there's still that same energy that always connected you all as a family... it just feels fuller.
You don't know if it's just the christmas lights playing tricks on your mind, but you swear you can almost see the faintest tearful sheen in Vander's eyes. He's almost always had a bit of parental pride and love toward all of you, but seeing you all sitting here together, happy... damn, it must bring back a lot of memories for him.
Silco even looks slightly less grumpy than usual, his mouth twisting into a barely visible smile as the rest of the table continues talking. Yeah, this is how christmas should beâŠ
It almost makes you forget that all of this is fake, almost makes you forget why you and Vi aren't together anymore. It's almost like just for tonight, you can pretend like things are back to how they used to be.
But you know this will not last. When everything is said and done, when christmas night is over and you're all saying your goodbyes, you have no doubt in your mind that you and Vi will go your separate ways again.
You glance at her, taking in the sight of her laughing with the rest. Her eyes are bright, her smile is big, and her entire face lights up with joy.Â
You bite the inside of your cheek, forcing your heart to quiet.Â
Vi must notice you looking, because she glances over at you. She's looking at you with that look again. You recognize it so easily.
That look... that damn look she's giving you again. The look that makes your heart stutter against your ribs, the look that makes your stomach twist into knots. It's a look that almost makes you want to lean forward and kiss her.
You almost give into your urges. You almost reach out and push a stray strand of hair out of her face, you almost do something to kiss her, almost.
But you don't, you can't. That would spoil the whole 'still dating' facade, and besides.... you have boundaries.
You give her a little nod, offering a small smile, and you almost swear that you see disappointment flash across her eyes.
She looks like she wants to say something, her hand tightening over your knee again, but she seems to change her mind and just smiles back.
Maybe it's just a figment of your own imagination, you think to yourself. Maybe it was a trick of the light or something.
Claggor reaches over to grab something from the middle of the table, and Silco clears his throat. âHow about you two?â he says it casually, like he's just making small talk, but there's a hint of concern in his voice. âAny... any problems between the two of you lately?â
You and Vi both sit up straighter. âProblems...?â Vi repeats.
Silco just shrugs, playing it casual. âI don't know, I'm just wondering... a lot of couples who have been together for as long as the two of you have.â He trails off, but everyone at the table knows the implications.
Mylo grumbles under his breath. âI swear, if you start talking about how high the divorce rate isââ Claggor elbows Mylo, and he shuts up.
Silco just chuckles. âOh, I'm sure you two can last.â
Powder rolls her eyes. âThese two have been together since forever. You guys were like... practically attached at the hip, from day one.â
âYeah, we were like that, weren't we?â Vi looks back at you.
âYeah,â you say with a casualness you don't feel. âYeah, we were.â
Silco hums. âI remember when you two first started dating.â
âOh, do you remember that?â Vander says, looking at Silco. âI remember the two of them coming to me the day they decided they were going to be official.â
Claggor nods. âYeah, and they were so... so mushy. All 'you're mine' and 'we're never going to break up,â he puts on a mock high-pitched voice, imitating you and Vi
âThat was the worst,â Powder groans, shoving food into her mouth.
Mylo grins and elbows Claggor. âHow many times did you have to stop them from making out all over the bar again?â
âWay too many times.â
âBy the way,â Mylo says. âYou two aren't doing anything for new years, are you?â
You and Vi exchange glances. â..we haven't made plans yet,â you say slowly, trying to think of excuses.
âOh, you should come join us then,â Mylo says, leaning back and stretching his arms. âAll of us are getting hammered down here for new years, you two should come.â
âYeah, it'll be fun!â Powder pipes up, eyes lighting up. âYou guys will come, won't you? promise you'll come.â
You open your mouth, trying to wrack your brain for excuses, but before you can say anything-
âOf course we'll come.â
You turn to look at Vi, and she just gives you a shrug.
Mylo grins. âGood, good! That'll be fun,â he sits up and points a finger at you both. âI swear, the two of you used to be so much fun at parties, it's like you both went boring when you got older.â
âHey, just cause we're getting old doesn't mean we suddenly became party poopers,â Vi says defensively. âWe're still fun.â
Mylo cackles. âAre you now? I never see you two do anything anymore,â he leans back in his seat. âEver since you got that fancy shmancy job, you've been too busy to have any fun.â
âWe know how to have fun, we haveââ you pause, trying to think of the word, âresponsibilities now. responsibilities that a certain someone is too dumb to understand.â
âI understand responsibilities, but I understand the concept that if you don't get wasted while you're young, then you'll wake up at forty, old and boring,â he says, looking at Silco and Vander. âAnd I want to make the most out of my young and reckless years. Meanwhile, you've already turned into an old, boring fart.â
You scowl at that, but Silco interrupts before you can respond. âDon't knock on old farts just yet. Some of us are old and still know how to have fun.â
âYeah,â Vander chimes in, nodding his head. âJust because we're old doesn't mean we don't know how to have a good time.â
Mylo rolls his eyes and waves a hand. âYeah, yeah, you old farts can still have fun. You just don't know how to have real fun anymore.â Mylo then pouts. âI just... I miss how it used to be, you know?â he sighs, resting his chin in his hand. âBefore all that adult crap, when things were easier.â
âEasier,â Powder mutters, poking at the remains of her food. âYeah, when we were broke and always hungry, real easy.â
Mylo reaches over and flicks her arm. âEasy doesn't always mean money, you dumbass.â
Powder scowls and smacks his arm back. âDon't call me a dumbass, you dumbass.â
âThen don't be a dumbass,â Mylo snaps back, smacking her again.
Powder smacks him again, harder. âDon't you dare call me a dumbass again.â
Before they can start another childish argument, Silco's voice cuts in. âEnough you two," he says, and they immediately grumble and fall quiet.
âHonestly, I sometimes wonder how the two of you aren't still in high school,â Vander mutters under his breath.
âThat's an insult to high schoolers, they're more mature than those two,â Claggor jokes, earning him a smack to the head from both Powder and Mylo.
He yells and puts his hands up in surrender, âow ow ow, ok ok! don't hurt me!â
Jinx and Mylo laugh, while Silco shakes his head. âSee what I mean? Children.â
âAnd they both insist they're mature enough to be out in the real world, independent and capable,â Vander says, while Silco chuckles.
âThey're still just as chaotic now as they were in high school,â Silco says dryly. âNothing has changed.â
Powder and Mylo both glare at him. âReally? like you two were that much better in high school,â she grumbles.
Silco raises an eyebrow at that. âWe certainly weren't as immature as some people,â he says pointedly.
âYou guys were probably just as bad as us, you just don't remember."
There's a pause, and Silco and Vander exchange glances before Silco snorts. He tries to bite back a laugh, but it comes out anyway, causing Vander to burst out laughing as well.
âI can't-â Vander wheezes between laughs. âI can't believe... you actuallyâŠâ
Silco doubles over, laughing even harder. After a moment, he manages to gasp out a few words. âOh, if you only... if you only knewâŠâ
Powder and Mylo exchange confused glances, while Claggor tilts his head. âWhat? what happened? what's so funny?â
The laughter finally dies down as Silco composes himself enough to speak. âNothing, it's nothing,â he says, waving a hand.
âAll right, all right,â Vander looks around the table. âI think most of us are done eating. Who wants to help with the dishes?â
There's a collective groan from the rest of the table. No one likes doing dishes.
Powder and Mylo immediately groan out a ânot it,â and Claggor follows up with âYou all know I'm terrible at dishes-â
âDon't look at me either,â Silco grumbles. Vander just sighs and shakes his head.
and that just leaves you and Vi... great, just great.
You're about to argue as well, anything to get out of being stuck in the kitchen with Vi, but she beats you to it. âYeah, we'll do it,â she says, before you can even open your mouth.
âOh, I-â you pause for a moment. You had been fully intending to dodge the chore, but now you can't without looking like an ass and leaving her alone to do dishes.
Vi stands up and picks up the nearest stack of dirty dishes, balancing them on her arms as she turns to you. She shoots you a look, almost like she's daring you to try and weasel out of helping.
You get the hint, shaking your head a little and standing up. This is absolutely the last thing you want to do right now.
You follow her to the kitchen, grabbing a few more dishes along the way.
She holds the kitchen door open for you, and you step into the little kitchen with its small stone countertops and simple appliances. You set the dishes down on the counter near the sink, turning to find Vi already rolling up her sleeves.
She's not looking at you, but when she starts to roll up the left side of her shirt sleeve, you swear you can see her eyes dart over to you for a split second.
You pause, staring at the side of her face. You can't tell if she's... no, you must be imagining things. The light must be playing tricks.
She clears her throat, raising one eyebrow. âWhat, you're not gonna help?â
âNo, no, I am,â you hurriedly say, turning away as you start to roll up your sleeves.
You're not going to look at her. Not at the way her forearm flexes when she reaches down to turn on the water, not at the way she bends over to grab some dish soap, and definitely not at the way her shirt tightens across her shoulders.
Yeah, you're definitely not going to look at her. Not at the way her fingers move when she soaps up the dishes, not the way her biceps flex when she bends her elbow, and especially not at the way her hair falls into her face when she scrubs at a stubborn stain.
Why is she so fit?
You look down at your own hands, watching the water and soap bubble up between your fingers. You start washing another dish, trying your absolute hardest to look anywhere except at her.
The minutes tick by in awkward silence, but eventually, your mind starts to wander. After all, washing dishes is pretty damn boring.
You glance over at her again, out of the corner of your eye, watching the way her shoulder blades shift under her shirt. The fabric of her shirt is stretched taut against her shoulders, and you wonder what she looks like under it if she still has all the same muscles....
Yeah, okay, you really have to stop staring at her.
âCan I ask you a question?â
Well, so much for not looking at her. Your head snaps up at the sound of her voice, and you force yourself to just focus on scrubbing at the glass in your hands.Â
âDepends what the question is,â you grumble, shifting a little.
You expect her to ask you something about your current life or something generic. What happened when you were gone, what life was like where you were?
Instead, she asks something completely left-field.
âDo you ever think about us?â
You tense up, the glass in your hands slipping a little in your grip. You were not expecting that question. Hell no, you were literally not expecting that question.
How are you supposed to answer that? yes? no? sometimes?
What was she even expecting to hear? did she want you to say yes, to say that you always thought about her, that you would've come back to her in a heartbeat if you could've? or did she just want to hear you say no, to hear that you moved on, that you had to move on because it was either that or let yourself fall apart?
âSometimesâ was definitely not the answer you would've given months ago.
Now, though? you would admit that sometimes, after a rough morning or a particularly lonely night, you'd let yourself think about her. You'd remember those nights you spent in her apartment, on her shitty couch, talking her ear off about everything and nothing, the nights where the two of you would sit on the couch and watch tv, her head resting on your shoulder, and you'd wonder if maybe... just maybe..
You wonder if she thinks about that kind of stuff too, if you cross her mind late at night when she's alone. You wonder if she still thinks about the nights where you would stay in bed together, talking for hours after a particularly good round, your head resting on her chest as she played with your hair, or the mornings where you'd wake up and find her making breakfast for you.
Yeah, you thought about her a lot.
But you couldn't say that to her. You can't tell her that you think about it all the time, about how sometimes you can't fall asleep because you miss the feeling of laying in bed with her, about how you always find your hands searching for her in the middle of the night. No, you absolutely cannot tell her that, no matter how badly you wanted to.
âI used to,â you say instead of letting your thoughts wander any farther. âNot anymore.â
You keep scrubbing, even after there's no longer any more dirt on the glass. Just so you have a reason not to look at her, just so you have a shield from the thoughts you know are brewing in her quiet mind.
She's quiet for a moment, and you can feel her looking at you. Looking at you, reading you, trying to figure out if you're telling the truth or not.
After a few moments, she takes a breath like she's going to speak, but then stops herself. It's something you're all too familiar with. She's overthinking something, that much is obvious. She's trying to pick her words carefully, and damn, you just wish she'd spit it out.
The silence feels like it's been going on for a year, but really, it was only around a minute. Your knuckles are turning white from how tightly you're gripping the glass you're washing, and your shoulders are beginning to ache from how tense you are.
âWhat about you?â you murmur. âDo you... do you think about us?â You force yourself to look over at her, and you instantly wish you hadn't.
She's not looking at you now, she's not watching you suspiciously or anything like that. No, instead she's looking down, staring at the soapy water, and avoiding eye contact with you.
She's quiet for a second, her hands pausing in their scrubbing. âYeah,â she finally says, âI do.â
Damn it. Her answer goes straight to your gut and twists deep inside you.
You were absolutely expecting a solid ânoâ, hell, you were even preparing yourself for a cruel âgod, no.â
Anything, anything other than âI do.â
She continues scrubbing at a plate as if she hasn't just turned your world upside down. How are you supposed to react to her answer? do you say something, do you not say something?
âWhy?â the question leaves your lips before you can stop yourself.
âWhy do you think so?â
You don't say anything, you just shrug your shoulders. You genuinely don't know. You'd just blurted out the question without actually knowing what you wanted the answer to be.
Her eyes linger on yours for a few seconds, and you can't quite read them. She looks like she wants to say something, she looks like she wants to reach out and hold you, and you'd bet real money that if circumstances were different, she would've done exactly that.
Instead, she just averts her gaze back to the sink and lets out a sigh. âI don't know... I just do.â
You go back to scrubbing dishes. It's obvious there are a million things that you want to say, that you need to say.
âOh,â is all you say in response, and the word hangs in the air awkwardly.
You're both quiet for a few minutes after that. It's quiet, except for the faint music playing in the background and the sounds of dishes clinking against one another.
A few times, you catch yourself glancing over at her, trying to pick up any hint of what she could be thinking, what she might say next. But, every time, she stubbornly keeps her eyes down on the dishes she's scrubbing. It's frustrating, the way she just won't look at you, and what pisses you off most is the fact that you understand why she won't look at you.
You have a feeling that if she were to look at you, if she were to meet your eyes right now, she'd either burst into tears or shove you into a storage closet and kiss you until your lungs burned.
You don't know which one would be worse.
It's so quiet, so awkward. You're both just scrubbing and scrubbing, refusing to look at the other.
Every time she takes a breath, you look over at her, convinced she's about to speak. But, time and time again, she doesn't, and the only sound to come from her is a shaky exhale.
It's maddening.
The sound of Claggor's voice finally breaks the stifling silence, and you let out a breath you didn't know you'd been holding. He peeks his head into the kitchen, grinning widely. âYo, you two almost done here? Powder is about to get impatient.â
You're thankful for the interruption, and judging by the look on Vi's face, so is she.
âYeah, we're done,â Vi mutters, glancing up from the dish she's been washing for the last ten minutes.
You dry your hands off on a nearby towel, trying to look unaffected. âWe're finished.âÂ
Claggor grins again, âThank God, Powder is about to start biting people.â He laughs, then disappears back into the main room.
âThat sounds like her,â she says with a chuckle, scrubbing her hands off on a towel.
âGuest we should head out there then,â you murmur, trying to get her to actually look at you.
She hesitates for a second, still running the towel over her hands even though they're no longer wet. She looks down for a moment as if she's contemplating something, then finally lifts her head to look at you.
Her jaw is tense like she's forcing herself to stay quiet. After a few seconds, her features soften a little. âYeah.â
You want to ask her what she's thinking, you want to ask her why. Instead, you just push the door of the kitchen open and gesture for her to go first.
â
âNow that we've had an amazing dinner, it's time for the best part of the night.â
Everyone gathers around, now sitting either on the couch or on the floor. Powder and Mylo immediately get squished together on the floor. Powder mutters under her breath, âHey! you're shoving me!â
âOnly because you're taking up too much space.â
Vander smiles from his spot on the couch. âAlright! It's time for secret santa. Everyone remembers who they drew, right?â
A group of nods and hums go around as everyone pulls out the slips of paper that have the names they drew.
Vander clasps his hands together. âGood!â he says as he looks around the room, his smile getting wider. âWho wants to go first?â
A few seconds of silence, then Powderâs hand shoots up. As always, she's the most excited one. âme!â
Vander laughs. âWell, look at that, our little girl is so eager. Okay, you can go first, Pow-Pow.â
Powder smiles and scrambles off the floor, almost tripping over herself as she pulls a present from beneath the Christmas tree. She glances down at the tag and grins.
She then scans the room with a giddy smile, then her eyes land on Silco.
She bounds over to him, practically shoving the present into his hands as she sits down on the floor next to his legs.Â
Silco smiles faintly as he takes the present. âAlright, let's see what you got me, hm?â He's quiet as he carefully unwraps the present, and Powder watches him who barely contains her excitement.
After a moment, the wrapping paper is set aside, and the present is now fully unwrapped. It's just a little box, though Silco is curious as to what's inside.
He glances at Powder as he takes the lid off the box, looking a little wary. Powder just grins at him. âGo on, open it,â she encourages.
He looks back at the box and, with a little nod, reaches in and pulls out the item inside. He holds it in his hands and looks at it curiously, then looks at Powdr with a raised eyebrow.
She's still grinning, and she looks extremely pleased with herself. Mylo glances over to look and snorts out a laugh. âWould you look at that?â
Silco looks at the item in his hands, then looks at Powder again. âYou got meâŠâ he begins, trying to sound unimpressed. â...a little shark plushie?â
Powder nods, her grin getting wider, still very pleased with herself. âYep!â she exclaims, âI got you a little shark plushie. You like it, right?â
Silco glances at the plushie and then at her again, looking vaguely fond. He carefully sets it down on his lap, then smiles a little.
âI adore it.â
Her grin somehow widens even more. She's clearly happy with herself. Silco chuckles a little under his breath, then looks around. âWho's next?â
Claggor shrugs, raising a hand. âI'll go,â he offers, to which Vander nods.
âGo ahead, Claggs,â he says approvingly.
Claggor gets to his feet from his spot on the floor, then moves to the tree. He crouches down and rummages around, looking for the present with the correct name tag.
A minute passes as a few minutes go by. He eventually stands back up, a small present in his hands. He looks around the room, then his eyes land on Mylo, who's now lying down on the floor and looking very bored.
Claggor moves over to him, tossing the present into his lap. Mylo looks up and catches the present, shooting him a glare. âYou couldn't have done that a little nicer?â he complains while sitting up.
Claggor just shrugs and gives him a flat look. âSuck it up,â he tells him bluntly before sitting back down.
Mylo scoffs and begins to unwrap the present, ripping the wrapping paper off carelessly. He tosses the wrapping paper away, then looks down at the present as he tears the box open. He's quiet for a moment, looking at the contents...
..and then he groans, covering his face.
âOh, come the hell on,â he grumbles, though he sounds more whiny than anything else. He glances up from his hands to give Claggor a withering look.
âDude, seriously?â
âWhat?â
Mylo just sighs, shooting the toy in the box with a dismayed look. âReally? a stress ball?â
Claggor shrugs. âI thought it was a good idea,â he says, clearly not bothered by Mylo's unimpressed tone. âAnd you seem to be lacking a bit in the stress management department.â
âWell, excuse me for being a bit stressed when you're being a dick.â
âSee, you need the stress ball. You proved my point right there.â
Mylo just groans and throws his head back. He picks up the stress ball and squeezes it hard. âI hate you.â
Claggor merely grins. âI love you too.â
Mylo mutters something under his breath, too quiet for anyone to hear, then looks up as he addresses the group. âSo, who's up next? I'm sure there's some poor sap itching to go.â
Silco raises a hand. âI'll go next,â he offers.
Everyone glances at him, then nods and gestures for him to go. He gets up off the couch and saunters to the tree. He scans the presents beneath it, moving a few aside to find the one he was looking for.
He finally finds it and smirks to himself, grabbing the present and standing up. His eyes sweep over the group, taking in everyone's expressions. He then turns and walks over to Vander, holding the present out to him.
Vander glances at the present, then at Silco, taking the present and curiously giving it a little shake. âWhat is it?â he asks curiously.
Silco just grins in a vaguely irritating way and sits back down. âJust open it,â he replies, his voice dripping with innocence.
Vander raises an eyebrow but begins to unwrap the present meticulously, occasionally shooting Silco a glance, as if expecting something. He peels away the wrapping paper to reveal a small box, then looks at Silco, his eyes questioning.
Silco simply shrugs and gestures for him to go on. Vander quirks another eyebrow up but opens the box anyway, now a little intrigued.
Then a snort finally escapes him. He's now fighting to hold back laughter.
Mylo sits up suddenly, looking at Vander, then at Silco, curiosity in his eyes. âWhat? What is it?â he asks eagerly.
Vander doesn't answer for a moment. He's still staring into the box, looking like he can't believe what he's seeing.
He then looks up at Silco. âPlease tell me you're joking,â he implores.
Silco's smile widens even more. âI couldn't be more serious,â he replies.
Vander lets out a long, suffering sigh, then digs through the tissue paper and pulls something out of the box.
It's a pair of comically large underwear, one that could practically fit an entire person inside of it.
Vander groans, holding the underwear up and staring at them with slight disgust.
Mylo and Powder both start laughing once they register what the present is. Powder laughs so hard she nearly falls over, clutching her stomach as she howls with laughter.
Vi's eyes widen at the sight of the underwear, her mouth dropping open a little in surprise. As much as it pains her to admit it... she just knows the jokes that Silco is going to start making any minute now.
âŠand she's right.
âYou see, I thought it was a necessary gift.â
âNecessary?â Vander repeats, still holding the underwear up in disbelief.
Silco just nods. âOf course. you're getting old, and as you get older... accidents happen.â
âI'm not that old,â Vander grumbles, though he knows it's probably not the best argument.
Silco smirks, raising a hand and waving it dismissively. âOh, you know what I mean. Things begin to... fail as you age. I simply wanted to make sure you had a spare pair.â
Mylo is now practically rolling on the floor, clutching his sides. âOh, my god, I can't breatheâthis isâthis is gold,â he wheezes. Powder is laughing so hard she's choking, practically coughing her lungs up.
Vander sighs again, looking down at the underwear in his hands. He looks like he wants to throw it into the fire and destroy it right there.
He glances up at Silco, giving him a look that clearly says, 'I will get you back for this'.
Silco leans back against the couch and crosses an ankle over his knee, looking all too pleased with himself. âWhat? You don't like them? I personally thought they were a good choice.â
Vander opens his mouth to reply, but Powder interrupts him.
âOh, god,â Powder chokes out, âyou should try them on. They'd look perfect on you.â
Vander shoots Powder a glare to kill. âNo way in hell,â he mutters firmly, folding his arms and sitting back.
But Powderâs not done. âCome on, just try them on,â she wheezes. âIt really would be a look for you.â
Vander turns his glare to Powder, his expression clearly saying, 'I will murder you if you keep talking.'
âNo,â he replies through gritted teeth.
Even Silco is starting to look amused.
âJust for a second,â she teases, âcome on, just long enough for us to see. We won't even say anything.â
Vander lets out another long, suffering sigh.
He shoots a sneering look at both Silco and Powder. Eventually he lets out an exasperated grumble and stands up, mumbling something under his breath as he heads into the bathroom with the underwear.
Mylo falls back onto the floor, clutching his stomach.
Silco is laughing too, watching as Vander heads to the bathroom to change.
Mylo is dying of laughter, gasping for air in between wheezes. âHoly shit,â he chokes out. âHe's really doing it.â
It takes a few minutes, but eventually the bathroom door swings open and Vander exits, looking like he regrets every decision he's made that led him to this.
His face is as red as a tomato as he stomps back over to them in the gigantic underwear.
Mylo and Powder are losing it again, falling over and rolling on the floor with laughter.
Silco is smiling, trying to stifle a laugh. âOh my,â he says, barely containing his amusement. âThey look even better than I imagined,â he comments.
Vander can hardly look anyone in the eye, still red with embarrassment. âI hate you. I hate you all.â
Claggor looks at Silco and Powder, clearly trying not to laugh. âYou guys are terrible,â he says, a trace of a smile on his face.
Vi can't hold back her laughter anymore, she's grinning from ear to ear. âYou look... perfect,â she comments through a strangled chuckle.
Vander turns his glare on her, still red with embarrassment. âI hate you all,â he repeats, shaking his head.
Powder is still giggling from the floor. âI want pictures,â she wheezes, holding up her phone.
Vander looks like he wants to smack her head off. âAbsolutely not. I forbid it,â he snaps, sounding as serious as someone wearing comically large underwear can.
Powder just pouts, lowering her phone. âOh, come on,â she says with a whine, looking up at Vander with puppy-dog eyes. âJust a few.â
âNo, I'm not having pictures of me in these... embarrassing things circulating the internet.â
âThe internet? Who said anything about the internet?â she replies, a smirk on her face. âI just meant... a few for my own personal, um, research.â
He opens his mouth to say something, but Silco chimes in first. âOh, come on. Humor her. It's the season of giving.â
Vander turns his glare to Silco, his expression almost murderous. âThere's no way in hellââ
âPleeeease?â Powder interrupts, holding out her phone again.
Vander looks like he's about to argue, but Powder is already giving him those damn puppy-dog eyes that he struggles to resist.
He hesitates, then, with a grumble, he sighs. âFine, one picture.â
Powder looks like a kid on Christmas. The instant the word 'picture' leaves Vander's mouth, she leaps to her feet and lifts up her phone.
âStand up straighter.â
Vander obeys, reluctantly straightening up.
âSay cheese,â she grins.
Vander grumbles under his breath, but he cooperates. âCheese,â he mutters, putting on a strained smile.
Powder snaps the picture, then lowers her phone and looks at it with a satisfied smile. âOh yeah, you're getting on the naughty list for this one,â she grins, wiggling the phone a little.
Once the picture-taking is over and Vander changes his clothes back, Silco motions for Powder to settle down.
âAlright, settle down. It's time to continue with the secret Santa,â Silco says, looking at the others.
They all nod in agreement, still snickering but mostly focusing on the present exchange.
âWho wants to go next?â Silco asks, looking around the group.
Mylo looks around, then grins. âMy turn.â
Powder rolls her eyes, knowing that look on his face all too well. âHere we go,â she mutters under her breath, preparing herself for whatever nonsense Mylo is about to come up with.
Mylo smirks, holding up his present. âWell, I drew someone's name... and it was a pretty easy choice.â He then looks around the group with mock innocence. âOh, where's my victim?â
Claggor lets out a defeated sigh. âWho exactly is the unlucky person this year?â
âThere's only one person who I could have possibly chosenâŠâ
âWould you just spit it out before the suspense kills me?â Powder snaps, impatient.
Mylo huffs. âJeez, have some patience,â he grumbles. âAnyway, my secret santa isâŠâ
Vander sighs, looking like he's already regretting this. Claggor puts his head in his hands, bracing himself.
âMy secret santa is, drumroll pleaseâŠâ they reluctantly drum their hands against any surface near them. âMy very special secret Santa isâŠâ
Claggor covers his face with his hands, looking like he's praying.
Mylo grins, looking from face to face, savoring the moment before he does the big reveal.
âMy secret Santa... is Powder!â
âFuck!â she groans, burying her head in her hands.
âAww, what's the matter, Pow?â Mylo grins, holding up the wrapped present.
Powder lets out another groan, glaring up at him. âYou're the worst,â she mutters, looking like she's praying to any god out there to just put her out of her misery already.
Mylo grins, clearly getting a kick out of her misfortune. âCome on, don't be like that. It could be worse, I could have gotten you a box of spiders,â Mylo teases, shaking the present in her direction.
Powder looks like she's seriously considering that as a better option. âYou know what? Give me the spiders. Spiders would be better than whatever it is you got me.â
âNice try. You're not getting out of it that easily,â he says, holding the present just out of her reach. âYou have to open it, come on.â
Powder grumbles in protest, then reluctantly reaches out for the present. She snatches it out of his hands, shooting him a glare. âIf I die from this, I'm going to haunt you for the rest of your life,â she mutters, slowly tearing the wrapping paper.
Then, Powder tears back the last piece of wrapping paper, revealing a plain black box. âWhat the hell is this?â she mutters, looking like she's already fed up with whatever shenanigans Mylo has come up with.
âYou're going to have to open it and see for yourself.â
Powder grumbles, giving Mylo a glare that could freeze hell over. She slowly opens the black box, not sure what to expect.
âPlease tell me this is not what I think it is,â she mutters, looking like she's two seconds away from throwing the entire box at Mylo's head.
The others lean in closer, curiosity getting the better of them.
âYou did not get me what I think you got me.â
âOh, you're going to have to be more specific than that,â he replies, trying to hide his smirk.
Powder glares at him, her jaw clenching. âYou know what I'm talking about,â she snaps, looking like she's contemplating dumping the contents of the box over his head.
Mylo just shrugs, holding up his hands in mock surrender. âI honestly have no idea what you're talking about.âÂ
Vander just rubs his face with one hand, knowing that this situation is about to spiral out of control.
âYou're telling me,â Powder hisses through clenched teeth, âthat you didn't get me exactly what I think you got me?â
âLike I said, you'll have to be a bit more specific,â he responds, looking entirely too smug for his own good.
Powder looks like she's about to explode. âMylo, I swear to-â
Claggor cuts her off, knowing that she's about to blow her top. âCalm down, Powder,â he says, placing a hand on her shoulder.
âI'll calm down when the box goes straight over his head.â
âWhy so angry? I thought you'd be excited.â
âI can't wait to make you eat that box,â she mutters, her hands clenching into fists.
âOh, I'm so scared.â
Vander interjects, trying to diffuse the tension. âThat's enough. No need to start throwing things around.â
âI was just having fun.â
âYeah, have fun with a black eye.â
âEnough,â Silco says, giving both Powder and Mylo stern looks.
Both Mylo and Powder grumble, reluctantly backing down a bit.
âCan we all just get back to opening presents, please?â Vander asks, sounding exasperated.
The others nod in agreement, though Powder still looks like she's not done with Mylo yet. She glares at him one last time before reluctantly returning to her seat.
Mylo just grins, clearly enjoying having gotten the last word in. He takes his own seat next to Claggor, looking very pleased with himself.
The others exchange glances, silently agreeing to not let Powder and Mylo be too close to each other for the rest of the evening.
Silco clears his throat, getting everyone's attention. âNow, who's next?â he asks, looking around the room.
Vander nods, leaning back in his seat. âI'm up next, I guess,â he mutters. He rummages at the gifts under the Christmas tree. After a few moments of searching, Vander finally finds the present he was looking for. He picks it up, holding it in his lap.
âThis one's for you,â he says, handing the present to Claggor.
Claggor takes the present, looking curious. He glances down at it, then looks up at Vander with a soft smile. âThanks,â he says, starting to unwrap it.
Once the wrapping paper is off, Claggor is holding a box of assorted tools. They range from pliers to wrenches to screwdrivers.
âJust like you requested,â Vander says, watching as Claggor starts inspecting the tools.
âWow, these are great. Thanks, dad,â he replies, running a hand over the tools in the box.
Vander smiles, clearly pleased to see that Claggor likes his present. âI thought you'd like them. I saw them at the pawnshop the other day and figured you could use them.â
âI definitely will. These are a huge upgrade compared to what I have now.â
Vander reaches over and pats Claggor on the shoulder. âYou deserve it. You've been working your ass off lately.â
Vander looks around the room, looking for the next person to take their turn. âAlright, who's up next?â he asks, eyeing everyone lazily.
Mylo's head suddenly snaps up, a smirk on his face. âOh goodie, it's Vi's turn.â
âCome on, Vi, your turn,â Silco says, looking a little amused.
âYeah, yeah. Hold your horses,â she mumbles, getting to her feet and making her way over to the christmas tree.
Vi crouches down, rummaging through the presents. After a few moments, she finally finds the present. She grabs it, standing back up. She looks over at you, looking a little bit like she's been caught doing something she's not supposed to do.
She makes her way over to where you're sitting, holding out the present. âHere, this one's for you,â she mutters, looking a little tense.
You take the present from her, looking down at it. It's heavy in your hands, the wrapping paper slightly crinkled from how hard she was holding it. âThanks, Vi,â you say, looking up at her.
âDon't mention it, babe,â she mutters, her voice sounding a bit strained.
Powder and Mylo both let out a chorus of âawwâ when they heard her use the nickname.
âShut up, you two,â she says, glaring at them both.
You start unwrapping the present, tearing off the festive wrapping paper to reveal what's inside.
Once the wrapping paper is off, you're holding a small box. It's plain, made of brown cardboard, and doesn't look like much. But as you look back up at Vi, you can see a hint of nervousness on her face.
She's watching you intently, her expression almost anxious. It's a look you don't often see on her face, and it's a little startling.
Still curious, you glance back down at the box in your hands. You lift off the lid, opening it slowly.
There, nestled in a bed of tissue paper, is a necklace. It's a silver chain with a small silver heart pendant. It looks delicate and beautiful, and judging by the look on Vi's face, she spent a lot of time picking it out.
You slowly reach into the box, lifting the necklace out of the tissue paper. You hold it up, letting the chain dangle from your fingers. It glints in the light, the pendants catching the glow from the Christmas tree lights.
Vi is still watching you intently, her eyes fixed on the necklace. She shifts a little on her feet, looking like she's holding her breath.Â
âDo you like it?â
You look up from the necklace, meeting her gaze. âYeah, I do,â you respond, your voice just a little bit shaky. âIt's beautiful.â
You hold the necklace in your hand, running your thumb over the pendant. Without even thinking, you reach up and clasp the necklace around your neck.
It fits snugly against your skin, the pendant resting on your collarbone.
You look up, catching Vi watching you as you adjust the necklace. âLooks good on you,â she says, her voice lower than usual.
âThanks,â you reply, still running your thumb over the pendant.
Mylo and Powder both let out another chorus of âawwâ clearly touched by the sight.
Vi shoots them another glare, her eyes narrowing. âWould you two shut up, for Christ's sake?â
âOh, come on, sis. It's cuteâ Powder teases.
âAh, young love,â Silco says.Â
Vander chuckles, nodding his head. âI remember my younger days.â
âDon't you mean your younger hookups?â Silco shoots back.
Vander grins, holding his hands up. âGuilty as charged.â
Silco laughs, shaking his head. âSome things never change.â Then, he glances around the room, looking for who's turn it is next. âLasty, who's next?â he asks, looking at everyone present.
You look around, seeing that almost everyone has given out their gift. It's obvious that your turn is next. âI'm up next.â
You get to your feet, making your way over to where the presents are. then you hold the present in your hands, not looking up quite yet. You can feel Vi's eyes on you.
This is it. You take a deep breath and look up, meeting her gaze.Â
You walk over to her, your heart beating a little faster. You feel a little bit nervous, but you try to push it down.
You stop in front of her, holding out the present. âHere you go, babe.âÂ
Vi's expression softens a bit, her eyes darting down to the gift in your hands. She reaches out and grabs it, looking slightly puzzled.
You watch silently as she unwraps the gift.Â
Vi looks at it, her eyebrows raised. âIs this... a sweater?â she asks, a little bewildered. It's clearly hand-knit, with uneven stitching and a clashing color scheme.
âI made it myself,â
âYou made it?â she asks. âLike, with your own two hands?â
âObviously..â
âI mean... it'sâŠâ she starts, her voice trailing off as she tries to find the right words.
âIt's hideous?â you suggest.
She winces a little, looking like she can't deny it. âYeah, kindaâŠâ she mutters.
âHey,â you say, mock-indignant. âI spent a lot of time making that, you know.â
âI can tell.â
âThen, try it on.â
Vi hesitates for a moment, looking at you a little warily. âSeriously?â
âSeriously,â you nudge her. âJust try it on, for me.â
She sighs, clearly realizing there's no way out of this. âFine.â
She pulls it over her head, struggling a bit to get her arms through the sleeves. The fit is a little awkward, and the sweater seems a little too small. But somehow, it kind of makes her look... cute?
She tugs at the sleeves, looking down at herself. âHow do I look?âÂ
You pretend to look her over, like you're seriously considering the question. âI dunno,â you reply. âit's... something.â
âBe serious. I look like an idiot, don't I?â
âDon't be like thatâ you tease, reaching out to straighten the collar of the sweater. âIt's not that bad.â
âNot âthat bad?ââ she repeats. âAre you kidding? I look like a walking christmas tree,â she groans, tugging at the sleeves yet again.
âI think you lookâŠ. fineâ
âThat's the best you've got? 'fine?'â
âWhat do you want me to say?â
âI don't know,â she mutters, sounding slightly petulant. âSomething more than just 'fineââ
âOkay, okay,â you say, holding up your hands. âLet me rephrase that, you lookâŠâ you pause, scratching your chin â...very christmas-yâ
âYou really know how to boost a girl's ego.â
âI didn't realize you needed your ego stroked.â
âI don't,â she protests, a little flustered. âI'm just saying, a little bit more enthusiasm would be appreciated.â
Silco clears his throat, drawing everyone's attention. âAhem, now that the present giving is concludedâŠâ he glances around at the crowd.
Silence falls over the room as everyone waits for Silco to speak. The tick-tock of the grandfather clock is the only sound that can be heard.
Silco glances at the clock, a smile on his face. âIt appears to be midnight,â he says, pausing for emphasis. âWhich meansâŠâ
A chorus of âMerry Christmas!â rises up from the group, everyone sounding festive and cheerful.Â
You look back to Vi, who is still fiddling with the sweater. âMerry Christmas,â you whisper, not wanting the others to hear.
She glances at you, a small smile touching her lips. âMerry Christmas to you too,â she replies, her voice just as quiet as yours.
Awkwardly you glance down at the carpet, unsure of what to say next.Â
âHey,â she says suddenly, her voice drawing your attention. âCan I talk to you for a secondâŠ? In private?â
âSure,â you agree, following her as she leads you away from the group.
She leads you into a small back room, closing the door behind her. The room is dimly lit, with only a few bare light bulbs lining the walls. Aside from a few boxes and some old crates, the room is empty.
She turns to face you, leaning against the wall. She's quiet for a moment, her gaze averted to the floor. you can tell she's trying to find the right words, fiddling with the hem of the sweater again.
âListen,â she begins, finally meeting your eyes. âI know this is weird, and I know things are... difficult right now. ButâŠâ she pauses, letting out a short sigh. âI just want to say one thingâŠâ
âGo on,â you encourage.
âIâŠâ she starts, then falters. Her tongue darts out to wet her lips, nervousness flitting across her features. Her gaze drops to the floor.
âWell, I justâŠâ her fingers fumble at the edge of her sweater. âI just... I miss you.â
Your heart skips a beat as she finally says the words out loud.
You've been wanting her to say that for weeks, months even. After everything that's happened between the two of you, you desperately wanted to hear those very words fall from her lips. But now that she's saying it...
What the hell do you say to that?
You're speechless, stunned into silence by her honesty. You open your mouth, intending to say something, anything. but words seem completely lost to you at this point. You just stand there, staring at her, dumbfounded.
âSay something,â she finally says, her voice tense. âSay anything. You're just staring at me like an idiot.â
âI don't know what to say.â Because, you really don't know what to say. You have so much you want to say, but somehow the words get stuck in your throat.
âSay you hate me. Say you never want to get back together. Just... say something.â
She's waiting. Waiting for something, anything. An opinion, a response. something, anything from you. But what can you say? Do you tell her the truthâthat you've missed her so much you can't even sleep at night? that the last month has felt like a living hell, having no contact with her?
You want to tell her that you hate her for throwing you away just to come back around wanting something from you again, but your tongue feels like cotton.
âSay something⊠yell at me, curse me out, anything!â
But her tone gets under your skin, and suddenly you feel the anger start to build inside of you.Â
Who does she think she is, demanding a response from you? she's the one who tossed you aside without a second thought. You're sick of this. You've done everything for her, given her everything she wanted, and here she is, pushing you for more.
It is too muchâall too much. Without a word, you turn from her, heading toward the door. You can't do this anymore.Â
You hear her call out your name as you shove open the door, but you don't stop. You make your way back, stopping at Vander's side.
âVander, I'm going to head out.â
Vander nods, giving you a knowing look. He can tell something's going on, but he's wise enough not to press the issue.
âAlright, kid,â he says gruffly. âGet some rest, yeah?â
You nod your head, forcing a smile onto your face. âYeah, I'll try,â you mutter, giving him a wave before starting towards the exit.
When you pass by Silco, he gives you a curious look. You catch his gaze and give him a small nod.
Finally, you make your way out the front door. The cold night air hits your face, making you shiver. You take a deep breath, preparing yourself for the walk home.
But then you hear the door swing open behind you, her footsteps hurry after you.
âWait!â her voice calls out. âWait, stop!â
You keep walking, your steps quick. You're trying to get as far away from her as possible to outrun all of the feelings that came rushing back to youâ
âLet me walk you home.â
Her words cut through your thoughts, sharp and unexpected. You falter, your steps slowing down.
You stop walking, turning around to face her. âWhat?â
She's standing there, looking like a kicked puppy. Her shoulders are slumped, her expression sheepish. She can tell you're not happy she's followed you out here, but she looks like she doesn't care.
She lets out a huff, her breath coming out in a white cloud in the cold air. âI just... look, whatever happened in there, whatever happened between us... just let me look out for you. Just let me walk you home. I.. I have to know you're safe.â
âI don't need a babysitter,â you practically growl, your irritation obvious. âI can handle myself.â
Vi flinches at your words, but she doesn't back down. If anything, she squares her shoulders and lifts her chin. âI know you can,â she snaps. âI'm not offering to babysit you. I'm just... I'm just asking to walk you home.â
You glance back at the entrance of their house, the warm lights and sounds spilling out into the cold night air.Â
You turn back to look at her, your voice softer this time. âYou don't have to walk me home. We don't have to keep up the act anymore, I'm going home and... you've got better things to do than worry about me.â
âScrew the act,â she mutters. âI'm walking you home. It's not up for debate.â
You stare at her, baffled by her insistence. âSeriously? What's the point, Vi? We're not together anymore. Why bother?â
Her jaw clenches, her shoulders tensing. You know she hates this. She hates hearing you say it. Her heart is on her sleeve, and you're tearing pieces out of it, right in front of her.
âBecause I care!â she snaps. âMaybe it's hard for you to believe, but I still care about you.â
You shake your head, scoffing at her words. âNo, no, no, you don't get to act like you care now. You're the one who broke up with me. You're the one who walked away and left me.â
âI made a mistake,okay? I was a damn idiot, and I screwed up.â
âA mistake?â you echo, scoffing again. âYou ended everything, and now you want to walk me home? What, you think that makes up for everything? You think itâs that easy? You threw away everything we had like it meant nothing, like all those months we spent together meant nothing.â
Your voice is trembling with anger as you continue. âAnd then what did you do? You went around, throwing yourself at anyone that gave you a second glance, like I never meant anything to you. Yeah, I know all about that. So don't try to act like you actually care when you clearly didn't give two shits.â
She looks away, her jaw clenching. âI was trying to get over you. I was trying to push you out of my head and it hurts like hell. Every night, every morning, it was like there was a hole inside of me, and no matter how hard I tried to fill it, no matter how many times I went out, how many times I tried to forget you, nothing worked. You were stuck in my head, and I hated it.â
She takes a step closer to you. âI know it sounds stupid. I know it doesn't make any sense. I just... I needed something to distract me, something to keep me from thinking about you. Because it hurt too damn much to think about how much I messed things up.â
âYeah, congrats. You did a damn good job at distracting yourself, huh? It sure as hell didn't take you very long to get over me.â
She winces again, the guilt written all over her face. âYou have no idea how many times I wanted to reach out to you. How many times I thought about coming back to you and begging you to take me back.â
âBut you didn't,â you say. âYou didn't reach out to me, you didn't try to fix things. So why should I believe you now? Why should I believe that you're sincere when you didn't care enough to fight for us before?â
She looks down, unable to meet your gaze. âWhat was I supposed to do?â she whispers. âI messed up. I messed things up and I don't know how to fix it. I donât know how to take back what I did, how to make things like they were before I messed up. All I know is that I miss you. I miss you so damn much, and Iâd do anything to have you back.â
You swallow hard, your throat suddenly dry. Everything she's saying, it's everything you've wanted to hear for months. It feels like a dream.
But you canât let yourself fall back into this. Not when youâve worked so hard to move on. Not when youâve spent so many nights crying into your pillow, reminding yourself that she didnât care enough to fix things, to fight for you.
âWhy nowâWhy do you want me back now, after all this time? Why didnât you want me back when it mattered, when I needed you?â
She looks up at you, desperation in her eyes. âBecause I was an idiot! Because I was stupid, and scared, and I thought walking away would make it easier, but it just made it worse. Because I spent every damn night regretting that I let you go and wishing that I could take it all back. I'm sorry. I'm so damn sorry for what I put you through.â
âSorry doesn't fix things,â you say, your voice shaking. âSorry doesn't take away the pain, sorry doesn't undo what you did.â
She nods, a tear slipping down her cheek. âI know saying sorry won't magically fix things, but I am sorry. I'm sorry for hurting you, I'm sorry for walking away, I'm sorry for everything I did wrong. Just... just give me a chance. Give me a chance to make things right.â
She takes another step forward, her eyes pleading. âGive me a chance. Let me prove to you that I love you and that I want to make things right. If I screw up again, you can toss me to the curb and never speak to me again. But please, just give me one more chance.â
âI don't know,â you murmur. âI just... I don't know.â
âI'll do anything. I'll get on my knees every day if I have to. I'll beg on my hands and knees. I'll crawl on my hands and knees. I'll grovel on the ground. Just... please, just give me one chance.â
âI'll think about it. Just...just give me some time to think things over.â
âOkay, okay. I'll give you time or whatever you need. Just please donât shut me out completely.â
Without hesitation, she envelops you in a tight hug. Her arms wrap around your waist, her face burying into your neck. Her body clings to you, every part of her desperate and needy. âI miss you so much,â she mumbles.
You stand awkwardly, unsure of what to do. But then, your body betrays you, your arms slowly wrapping around her.
For the first time in a long while, you're holding her again. Her warmth, her scent, her touchâitâs all so familiar, so painfully familiar. So damn familiar that it hurts.
âI hate you.â
âI don't blame you,â she pulls back a little, her hands coming up to cup your face.
She lifts her hand, brushing a lock of hair away from your face. âI hate you so much,â you repeat, a tear falling down your cheek.
âI deserve that,â she says, her thumbs gently wiping away your tear.
âDamn right you do.â
You have no idea what to do or what to feel. Everything is a mess, and you're drowning in it.
For now, all you could do was hold her tight and bury your face in her shoulder.Â
You hated how good she felt against you and how right it felt to be held by her. You hated the way your heart skipped a beat whenever she whispered in your ear.Â
Damn her for making things so confusing, for making you feel so damn much.
You felt her hand rubbing your back, her fingers tracing circles over your skin. It was a soothing gesture, a silent apology for all the pain she had caused. It only made things worse, making your heart ache even more.
If only things had been different. If only she had been more communicative. If only she had been more sensitive to your feelings. If only she had been there for you when you needed her.
If only she hadnât walked away and left you broken. If only she hadnât hurt you the way she had.
And most of all, if only you had been strong enough to push her away and protect yourself from this mess.
But here you are, standing in the middle of a street wrapped in her arms. You felt like a fool, like a damn idiot, for still wanting her after everything.
You wanted to hate her, you wanted to make her suffer the way you had suffered.
But how could you hate her when she was looking at you like that? how could you hate her when she was holding you like this?
It wasn't fair. It wasn't fair that she still had this kind of effect on you.Â
Her eyes met yours, and you saw everything you had missed, everything you had longed for. and you knew, right then, that you were in damn trouble.
â
In the window, Vander and Silco watched you and Vi from afar, the soft glow of the christmas lights casting shadows over their faces.
Silco takes a drag of his cigarette, the smoke curling around him as he exhales. âYour little plan worked quite well,â he says, looking at Vander with a sly smile.
Vander just shrugs, sipping his drink. âI donât know what you are talking about,â he replies, keeping his expression neutral.
âYou're not fooling anyone.â
Vander hums, taking another sip of his drink. âI don't know what you mean,â he says again, keeping his gaze locked on you and Vi.
Silco let out a puff of smoke, a smirk playing on his lips. âDon't play coy, Vander. You knew damn well what you were doing when you rigged that secret santa.â
âI may have had a little influence,â he admits.
âA little influence? oh, don't downplay it. You wanted them back together, and you knew exactly how to make it happen.â
âI have had a hunch that they still cared about each other,â he says, his voice casual. âAnd plus, I don't want to see Vi moping around for the past months.â
âAnd we couldn't have that, could we? seeing her moping around like a lovestruck puppy.â
Vander nods. âShe was really terrible at hiding it,â he says. âalways pacing around, always looking like she lost a puppy.â
Silco takes another drag of his cigarette, blowing rings into the air. âIt was painful to watch,â he says, shaking his head.
âIt was like watching a kid trying to hide a secret⊠I just hope they figure things out.â
âI agree,â Silco says, his eyes flickering over to you and Vi. âHopefully they can work things out.â
Vander hums in agreement. âOnly time will tell.â
They watch in silence for a moment, seeing how you and Vi are still holding each other.
âI still wouldn't forgive you for that damn underwear you got me.â
âThat was the funniest thing you could have received.â
Vander grumbles, narrowing his eyes at Silco. âI do not find it funny to receive underwear as a gift.â
notes: idk what is happening
#arcane#vi#arcane vi#vi arcane#violet arcane#arcane x reader#arcane x female reader#arcane x you#vi x reader#vi x female reader#vi x you#vi x y/n#vi imagines#violet x reader#I LOVE SILCO AND VANDER#fluff#angst#found family#christmas
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
đđ«đđđđČ đđąđđđ„đ đđąđđ«
Satoru Gojo
Pairing: Satoru Gojo x f!Reader
Summary: Satoru is your best friend's boyfriend, you shouldn't like him.
Warnings: MDNI, Angst, Cheating (on Satoru, not from reader), Smut, Oral Sex (m. receiving), Vaginal Sex, Daddy Kink, Spanking, Fluff, Hair descriptions for reader
*This is another commission for @mew4-ever18, y'all can thank her again! I hope you guys enjoy because it's truly a wild but fun rideđââïž
Discord +18 - Twitter - Ko-Fi
Youâre not sure why you sit with them instead of just being in your room. Theyâre here for your best friend, not you. You have no business being with them. It feels like youâre in high school all over again, sticking out like a sore thumb amongst them.
Every other night youâre fine with them being here, but tonight youâre out of it. Your eyes keep darting to Satoru and Ali, both sitting so close together that you almost feel upset. Ali is your best friendâ Sheâs been by your side for as long as you can remember. Sheâs like a sister⊠Yet you have conflicting feelings.
Whenever you look at her and Satoru together, you feel upset. A feeling that is quickly followed by remorse. You shouldnât like your best friendâs boyfriend; alas, you canât control your feelings. Even if you do act on your feelings (you only have a tiny crush either way, itâs no big deal), he wouldnât reciprocate them. Ali is simply stunningâ Itâs not that youâre ugly, but your whole life youâve watched her get praised for her beauty. She simply stands out while youâre just there. Just like this moment.
âHey, are you okay?â You hear your name from Satoruâs mouth, interrupting you from your trance of thoughts. Ali giggles, whispering something in his ear which makes the man chuckle. You unintentionally roll your eyes before nodding.
âOh my god, guys. I forgot to tell you.â Ali begins, drawing everyoneâs attention. Thereâs a grin on her face as she says, âItâs mine and Satoruâs third month anniversary.â
âWoah, for a moment I thought that you had something important to say.â Suguru, who sits beside you, comments. Ali clicks her tongue, sticking out her middle finger at the man. Suguru chuckles in response.
âItâs important! Satoru is going to propose soon.â She announces, sticking up her left hand. Satoruâs eyes widen, and he scoots away from her on the couch. Though theyâre details that you donât notice. Youâre just staring at Aliâs ring finger, knowing that itâll be adorned by a rock soon enough. You know sheâs very influential, and gets what she wants in the end.
âSheâs joking.â Satoru quickly clarifies but you know that itâs only a matter of time before Ali gets her way. In all of your years of knowing Ali, youâve never seen her get turned down. She isnât serious now, but sheâs dropping hints that she wants it to happen soon; if she doesnât get her way soon, the relationship will come to an end.Â
âI guess.â Ali chuckles before kissing Satoruâs cheek. It makes you take a deep breath and look away once again. You make brief eye contact with Shoko before quickly looking away as an uneasiness takes over you. You hear Ali ask, âIt wonât hurt to think about it, right?â
âYouâre still young, you have a lot of time.â Shoko chimes in, earning a glare from your best friend. That wasnât the input she needed, therefore, Ali looks at you.
âIt wouldnât.â You force the words out of your mouth. You can barely look at Aliâs face. Throughout the day whenever you look at her you just think of last night. You left your room to get some water and heard a rather obscene scene. You are rightfully uncomfortable⊠But youâre also sad.Â
You know you have no right to feel sad about this, but you canât help the feeling. Every time you look at her you just can hear her moan his name over and over again while he groans from pleasure. You froze in place, and heard more than you had to last night. You felt sick, and that memory replaying in your head doesnât help you.
Your breath hitches as you hear all of them laugh. You look around the room, feeling as if it gets smaller by the second. You canât stand it. You stand up from the couch, and awkwardly smile. You look back and forth between your best friend and her boyfriend before you tell them,
âIâm going to lay down. I have a lot to do tomorrow.â
No one says anything, letting you leave the room without a protest. Itâs not like you fit in the group either way. You feel like absolute shit, but itâs not their fault. Your personality just doesnât match with theirs, and thatâs not on them.
You lock yourself in your room and immediately bury your head in a pillow, letting the tears flow. An overwhelming flux of emotions flows through you. You like to think of yourself as confident, brave, and strong but right now youâre simply the worst.Â
You shouldnât like your best friendâs boyfriend and you shouldnât be upset at the fact that you heard them have sex the night before. Aliâs been with you through thick and thin, and this is how youâre repaying her.
Meanwhile, Satoru is staring at your bedroom door before looking back at Ali. He asks, âShouldnât you check up on her? Sheâs acting weird tonight.â
âThatâs just how she is. Sheâs always a little weird.â Ali rolls her eyes, and a slight frown comes on Satoruâs face. Maybe he shouldnât overstep, Ali knows you better than anyone but the comment still feels odd.
âIsnât that rude? Sheâs your best friend.â Satoru reminds her, and she clicks her tongue.
âI didnât mean it like that.â
Satoru is in his motherâs hospital room, watching as the one that gave birth to him sleeps. Suguru sits down next to him, afraid to make conversation since he doesnât want to wake the woman up. Suguru is just there for emotional support.
Satoru doesnât know what happened. He was on his way to visit his girlfriend, and his father suddenly called. His mother was ill, and they were on the way to the hospital. And here he is now⊠Waiting to talk to her. Theyâve been slipping her in and out of the room to run tests on her, and the moments that sheâs in the room she canât stay awake.
Satoru has been spending most of his days at the hospital for the past week. Heâs sick of it, but heâs not leaving his mother aloneâ She wouldnât be alone either way, his father is also practically living in the hospital, but Satoru still wonât leave. He texts Ali to kill time, though the conversations quickly get boring and he has to frequently change the topic.
âIâm going to get something to eat.â Suguru says, standing up from his seat. Heâs been glancing at Satoruâs phone, snooping in a conversation that doesnât concern him whatsoever. A conversation thatâs too boring for him to keep reading, which is a lot to say.
âIâll come with.â Satoru stands up as well, following Suguruâs lead. Satoru cracks his knuckles as they leave the room, commenting, âIâm so bored in there.â
âI saw you talking to Aliââ Suguru quickly bites his tongue when he realizes that heâs admitted to snooping. He canât shut up now, heâs already admitted to his crime, he might as well say whatâs on his mind. Suguru throws his arm over Satoruâs shoulder, slightly leaning on him as they walk to the elevator. âSheâs pretty, bro. Iâll give you that but⊠Sheâs kind of superficial.â
âWhy are you staring at my phone?â Satoru side-eyes his best friend, and Suguru shrugs. Satoru rolls his eyes at the lack of response before quickly defending his girlfriend. âYou know sheâs better in person.â
âSheâs not. She only ever talks about herself, and itâs never something interesting.â Suguru points out, which makes a frown appear on Satoruâs face. That isnât true at allâ At least Satoru hasnât noticed and heâs quick to pick up on stuff. Suguru continues trying to get his point across, âAnd I know she has⊠What, two million followers on Instagram? Like yeah, sheâs pretty but apart from that she has nothing.â
âShe has other qualities.â Satoru says as they both get to the elevator. He presses on the downwards arrow button, and they begin the long wait for either elevator.
âLike what? Please name one.â Suguru responds, and Satoru takes a minute to think about it. The elevator opens, and the men step aside to let the people out before entering the lift. The conversation dies down at that moment since itâs awkward to talk about Aliâs lack of personality when three other people surround them.
When they get to the first floor, Suguru brings up the topic again. Satoruâs annoyed, unwilling to listen at this point, and itâs written all over his face but Suguru does not care, âYou deserve better. Sheâs not the type youâd want to marry.â
âHow would you even know that?â Satoru scoffs, and Suguru rolls his eyes. Suguru knows that Satoru isnât going to actually listen. Satoru is defensive about this, and Suguru canât entirely blame him. Ali is still his girlfriend regardless, Suguru knows that heâd react the same way if Satoru began to bad talk Shoko.
âShe treats her best friend like shit. She treats someone that sheâs known her whole life like shit, and you think thatâs the woman you should marry?â Suguru answers, which makes Satoru roll his eyes.
âLetâs just drop it.â Satoru ends up saying, and Suguru sighs defeatedly.
âYeah. Letâs just eat something.â Suguru agrees. He checks the time and realizes he has to get going soon, âIâm leaving you after, Iâm going to see Shoko.â
After Suguru leaves, Satoru is left to go back upstairs alone. He doesnât mind the solitude, itâs not like he was talking to Suguru either way. Heâll probably ponder on Suguruâs words, and try to make an excuse for his girlfriend. Though if Satoru is being honest⊠He doubts the relationship is going to last long. Heâs turned a one night stand into a regular thingâ But maybe thereâs a future in the relationship. He likes to be optimistic about things, even if itâs a relationship that doesnât have much of a future.
âSatoru!â Heâs met by a voice that catches him off guard. Heâs a little surprised to be met by his girlfriend, but a smile comes to his face as he sees her face. Though the smile fades when he looks over her outfit.
Satoru isnât one to police what his girlfriend wears. Heâs fine with whatever that makes her happy. Heâs not the type to get jealous or control that aspect of her life⊠But he recognizes when an outfit is inappropriate for an occasion.
She wears a red cut out dress, as if sheâs about to go out clubbing. She smiles brightly at him, and Satoru canât help but feel bad. Sheâs a little ditzy sometimes. She doesnât mean any harm.
âWhat are you doing here?â Satoru sounds rather awkward, something that she doesnât seem to notice. Satoru would be more welcoming if she looked a little more decent for the place.Â
âI just want to visit my mother-in-law.â She says which makes Satoru cringe. He wonât correct her, he knows sheâs just joking. He thinks sheâs just joking. She gives him a tight hug, something that a few minutes ago he thought would be comforting; itâs anything but⊠But itâs not her fault.Â
âSheâs sleeping.â Satoru answers as he pulls away. Ali pouts, mimicking a sad expression. It feels like sheâs mimicking considering how she exaggerates it. Noâ Satoru is just overthinking everything after his conversation with Suguru. The dumbass was trying to brainwash Satoru.
âDo you want to go out to dinner then?â She asks, as if itâs the only reason why sheâs here. Satoru shakes his head which makes a slight frown appear on the womanâs face.
âI already ate something at the cafeteria.â Satoru responds.Â
âIâll go get something then. Iâm hungry.â She replies, and Satoru tries not to question it. Did she come here for the sole purpose of stealing Satoruâs attention? No, heâs just letting Suguru get to his head. Though heâd admit that itâs odd for her to show up at the hospital and immediately ask him out to eat.
She bites down her lip before asking Satoru, âDo you want to come with?â
âIâm going to my momâs room. You can come back after youâre finished.â Satoru answers, and she rolls her eyes. Satoru is going to pretend like he didnât catch that weird reaction. Itâs just his mind playing tricks on him. She leaves without a word, letting Satoru walk back to his motherâs room to wait by her side.
Satoru is sure heâs just reading into things as he sits down besides his mother once again. Stupid Suguru got in his head. The idiot has a way to mess with Satoru, it works ninety percent of the time. Though Satoru knows that he canât entirely blame Suguru since the man just mentioned certain behaviors that Satoru himself noticed. Ali is quite a bitch with you, and if Satoru were anyone else, heâd give you the advice to cut her off.
Perhaps youâre just sticking around because youâre roommates with Ali. He doesnât know the extent of your relationship either, heâs barely even scratched the surface so itâs not a matter that he has an opinion on. Ali is rising to fame as an influencer, and sheâs letting the attention get to her head so maybe this is just some new behavior on her end.Â
Satoru begins to question every little thing about Ali in the span of thirty minutes. Maybe she really is superficial like Suguru claimsâ Who is Satoru even trying to convince? Ali is most definitely superficial, heâs known about this since their very first date.
He grabs his phone to distract himself, heâs currently questioning his relationship because of Suguruâs dumb words. He canât let the little shit get to his head, Suguru loves to do this every time Satoru has a girlfriend and it always ends up with Satoru breaking up with his girl.
Satoruâs eyes narrow as he sees a new story from Ali. His thumb hovers over the screen as the man builds up the courage to click on it. Sheâs posing seductively for the camera, and Satoru sighs as he sees the story from a couple of minutes ago. Maybe itâs just a video from a couple of weeks ago; sheâs just posting content to keep her followers engaged.
Satoru taps on the screen, seeing sheâs posted multiple things in the last thirty minutes. Before getting to the hospital and while sheâs clearly in the building. Just five minutes ago she posted a mirror selfie in the hospital bathroom, and Satoru canât help but frown. Sheâs a bit ditzy but she canât be this unaware, right?
It clicks in his head at that moment. Suguru isnât trying to brainwash him, heâs just pointing out whatâs fairly obvious. Ali isnât here to actually check up on Satoruâs mom, sheâs here for another reason. She just wants Satoruâs attention.
He stands up from his chair and walks out of the room. He canât sit there knowing sheâs making a fool out of herself, and in the process, embarrassing him. He has to talk to her, ask for her to leave before she makes a complete and utter fool out of him as well.
Satoru gets to the cafeteria quickly, his eyes searching around the place for his girlfriend. Luckily, he doesnât have to look for too long before his eyes land on her as she poses for a photo. Sheâs treating the hospital cafeteria as a photo studio, he canât look at her for too long without embarrassment filling him inside. His eyes donât wander too far before landing on an all too familiar face.
Satoruâs breath hitches, gulping as he stares back at his father. His fatherâs eyes then fall on Ali. Satoru just should turn around and not acknowledge her at allâ If the situation is embarrassing now, he can only imagine itâs ten times worse if his father finds out that this oblivious woman is Satoruâs girlfriend.
âPookie! Come here!â Ali yells once her eyes fall on Satoru, making it loud enough for everyone to hear. Satoru can still turn around and pretend like he doesnât know her, especially since he sees his fatherâs brow furrows. Yeah⊠Itâs best if Satoru turns around and apologizes later.
âSatoru! Are you ignoring me?!â She calls out as she walks over to the man. Satoru freezes in his spot, making eye contact with his father who shakes his head disappointedly.Â
âAllison, now itâs not the time.â Satoru says through gritted teeth, not being able to even look at her.Â
âWhat? What are you saying?â She sounds offended, and frankly, she should be. Satoru looks ashamed to be near her because he is. He feels all eyes on him since Ali isnât exactly someone that blends into the crowd. Is this what it feels to be self-conscious?Â
Satoru grabs her hand and practically drags her out of the place. She posters him, demanding he tell her whatâs going on the entire time until theyâre finally outside of the building. Satoru lets go and she crosses her arms, huffing and puffing as Satoru runs a hand through his hair.
He canât lose his cool.
âWhy are you here?â He asks, taking a deep breath to ensure he remains calm and collected.Â
âI told youââ She begins only to be quickly interrupted by Satoru.
âWhy are you actually here? Actually. First of all you come here looking likeâ That. You tell me you want to see my mother but immediately ask me to go out and get something together. Instead of coming back up you begin to smugly post on your social media,â Satoru is too frustrated to care about the words that leave his lips. âYouâre posting for your millions of followers while youâre in a hospital. Youâre supposed to be visiting my mother and you look like this.â
âWhatâs wrong with my dress?â Sheâs trying to play dumb, looking down at the attire that is clearly inappropriate for the occasion. Sheâs ignoring everything else, knowing that she can easily win the argument if she only focuses on one detail.
âFor fuckâs sake, Allison. This is a hospital not a club. Youâre here to visit my sick mother, or what? Did you have other plans tonight?â Satoru argues and she scoffs.Â
âExcuse me for trying to be a good girlfriend. For the record, I do want to check up on my future mother-in-law. Next time Iâll just leave you alone.â She tries to sound threatening which makes Satoru roll his eyes. Before he can get another word in, she begins to walk away. Sheâs not going back inside, opting to walk to her car instead.Â
Satoru doesnât care to stop her, instead heâs agreeing with everything Suguru mentioned. Maybe he should reconsider everything about this relationship. But first⊠He has to go back inside and face his father.
As Ali and Satoruâs six month mark comes by, you notice that Satoru comes around less often. Satoru, who would come around every few days, barely shows up every two weeks. You think it started after Ali began to joke about getting engaged, but you know why Satoru is distant. It doesnât take a genius to figure it out.Â
You remember catching her before going out, telling you that sheâs about to go meet Satoru at the hospitalâ Before you could even question her outfit she told you that she was hoping heâd take her out to eat. Itâs shocking that he didnât break up with her right then and there, but you guess that he likes her so much that he canât bring himself to end things.Â
Though as you walk past her bedroom, you hear that some things donât change. No matter how bad she screws things up, this detail will never change. They could be a little less loud though, theyâre not alone. Or they could simply go to Satoruâs apartment since he lives alone. But no, they choose to come here.
You should probably cover your ears as you walk to the kitchen to get some water, but youâre unphased by this. Itâs not the first time it happens, and it certainly wonât be the last. You wonât lie and say that you arenât uncomfortable by the sound of it, and perhaps youâre searching for an apartment to move away soon because of how upsetting it is. But youâre slowly getting used to it.
âOh, fuck! Itâs so good!â She moans and you let out a sigh. She has no consideration for you. Itâs fine, youâll go back to your room and put on some headphones to block it out. But you freeze in your steps when you hear a voice that is not the one of her boyfriend.Â
You feel as if your heart is about to beat out of your chest as you come to the realizationâ But no, youâre not going to get involved. You grab your glass of water and walk back to your bedroom, locking the door.
You plop down on the bed, grabbing your phone to check on your social media. You have a feeling that Ali isnât there with Satoru, and you want to check what heâs doing tonight. Satoru usually posts what heâs doing for the night in the most subtle ways. If he hasnât posted anything, then heâs probably with Ali and you should ignore the whole situation; but youâre quickly proven right when you see Satoru posting with Suguru.Â
The pictures could be from a different night though, but you notice that they were posted just a few minutes ago. Your eyes are wide, hands shaky as you stare at the picture. Regardless if theyâre from nights ago or tonight, Satoru couldnât have posted this while heâs getting busy with Ali.Â
You turn off your phone and close your eyes at the realization that your best friend is cheating on her boyfriend.
You try to convince yourself that the previous night is a misunderstanding. Youâre just getting the situation wrong, Ali would not do that to her boyfriend. But your best friend quickly proves you wrong when you walk out of your bedroom and see a random man in your kitchen, looking most indecent. Heâs covered in love bites, confirming that you werenât wrong in your assumptions
You almost feel like a prude for covering your eyes when you look in his directionâ You would think she would try to hide it the best she could, but she doesnât care. Sheâs letting him walk around freely in your apartment, even though you know sheâs awake.
âAllison.â You knock on her bedroom door, and within a few seconds she opens it. Her sandy blonde hair is neatly kept, letting you know that sheâs been awake for a while. Sheâs had enough time to get ready so sheâs certainly had enough time to kick the random man thatâs in your house out.
âHiâŠâ She bites her lip, looking guilty as ever. Just one swift look at you, and she knows that youâre not happy with her. She grabs your hand and pulls you inside before shutting the door. She doesnât want her loverboy to hear what she has to say.
âAli, what did you do?â Youâre stern, making it clear that this isnât a situation that youâre willing to laugh about. Maybe if Satoru deserved it you could turn a blind eye to this, but you canât. Satoru is a great boyfriend to her.
âIâm sorry.â Tears begin to well up in her eyes as she mutters an apology. An apology that should be to Satoru and not you. âI donât know what came over me⊠I told him I loved him and he justâ Just ignored me.â
âAli, thatâs no reason to betray your boyfriend.â You argue, and she buries her face between her hands. She cries, only making you feel guilty for even questioning her actions. You cross your arms and look away, refusing to feel guilty for her disloyalty.
âPlease donât tell himâ Iâm sorry. Itâll never happen again.â She pleads and you feel a heavy weight settle in your heart. No, you should tell him. Satoru doesnât deserve this.Â
Ali wraps her arms around you, resting her face on your shoulder as she continues to sob. âPlease, youâre the only person I can count on.â
âAliââ You begin, but you cut yourself off. You take a deep breath, before agreeing, âFine. Iâll keep your secret.â
Guilt is eating you alive. The very next day, Satoru comes over and you canât look him in the eye. You ignore him the entire time, and he notices something is up with you, but he wonât question it. If you donât want to talk to him, then itâs your own issue.Â
You feel like the responsibility of confessing to him is on your shoulders. But you donât want to betray your best friend by doing so. Sheâs made her own decisions about her relationship, if you snitch the blame shouldnât fall on you⊠But you still feel like it isnât your position to tell. Youâre not friends with Satoru at all, youâre friends with Ali. You feel like youâd be betraying her, not only because sheâs your best friend but also because you happen to like her boyfriend.Â
Youâre nearly driving yourself insane as you think about it. Ultimately, you decide to stay out of it. Satoru is going to find out in his own way eventually; youâre a firm believer that the truth always comes to light eventually, and in this situation you refuse to be the catalyst. And you certainly donât want to lose your friendship by telling him.
That is until the doorbell rings, a little later than usual on a Tuesday night. Ali isnât home, leaving you alone to welcome the uninvited guest.
âSatoru, what are you doing here?â You question, surprised at his presence. He should know that Ali is at a brand event right now, after all, sheâs gloating about it on any and every social media platform. âAli isnât here right now. She wonât be here in a while.â
âActually, Iâm here to talk to you.â He confesses, and you feel your stomach churn. You feel nauseous as guilt takes over you. Does he know? Is that why heâs here? Heâs most definitely here to question you, and you feel nervous.Â
âOh⊠What is it?â You try to smile to hide the fact that youâre freaking out. But it comes off as disingenuous, and Satoru is not an idiot that wonât notice it. Heâll choose to ignore it though.
âCan I come in?â He asks, and you move to the side, inviting him to the apartment. He steps inside, and looks around the place. Thereâs a different vibe to the apartment when Ali is gone⊠It feels oddly comforting.Â
âDo you want anything to drink?â You offer as you shut the door. But he shakes his head, and you feel oddly relieved by that answer. Heâs not going to be here for a long time, so heâs not going to bring it up.
Before saying anything, he takes a seat on the couch. He looks around the place for another minute, and he notices that you choose to stand instead of taking a seat. You couldnât make it any more obvious. He clears his throat before speaking up, âIs everything okay between us?â
âYeah! Yeah, why wouldnât they be?â Youâre stumbling over words, making your statement sound false. Heâs quick to spot the lie, and a frown comes to his face. You canât keep lying to him, you know.
âWhyââ
âSheâs cheating on you!â You blurt out, and to your surprise, he looks unphased. You feel the need to explain yourself after his lack of reaction, a response from your nerves. âI swore I was going to stay out of it when I heard her with her friend last weekâ I thought it was you two again but then I realized that it wasnât you, and I couldnât look you in the eye after it. I didnât want to say anything because sheâs my friend but youâre a really good guyââ
And as you ramble, you fail to notice that heâs stood up and heâs taken your hands into his. Heâs squeezing your hands to make you calm down as you explain your side of the story. Youâre not guilty in any of this, youâre just too damn good of a friend.
âHey, hey. Iâm not mad at you.â He cuts you off when he realizes youâre on the verge of tears. If heâs being honest, he was expecting something like this to happen with her. Heâs been waiting for the right moment to end things, and luckily he has the best excuse now.
âI shouldâve told you sooner, Iâm sorry.â You still apologize. You feel your face get warm as you realize heâs holding your hands, making you jerk them out of his grasp. âBut please, donât tell her I told you.â
âI promise I wonât.â He responds. âThank you so much for telling me.â
âSatoru, please donât tell her I told you.â You ask of him once again, and he nods in response. And though the weight is lifted off your shoulders, another worry begins to settle in. But you try to convince yourself that youâll be fine. If this marks the end of your friendship with Ali, then so be it. In the end, you did the right thing.
Satoru messages Ali on a Friday night, making sure that youâre out of the apartment before coming over. The message gets Ali excited since she thinks everything is going back to normal, especially since Satoru has been acting weirder than usual. The honeymoon stage is supposed to last longer than six months, but for some reason their relationship is going through a dry spell.Â
Ali begins to get ready for what she expects is going to be a steamy night. She checks the time every five minutes, waiting for Satoru to finally show up. While she promised you that she wouldnât do it again, sheâs not the type to keep a promise; especially when her needs arenât being met.Â
Meanwhile, Satoru decides how heâs going to break the news⊠Should he be gentle? He wonât lie and say that he isnât butthurt about her disloyalty. Heâs been thinking about ending things with her for a while, but it hurts his ego to know that she cheated on him. Maybe he should be harsh with her, after all, cheating is not a mistake one should take lightly. And Satoru is certainly mad at the offense.
Heâs set on making this as quick and easy as possible, so heâll be calm with her. Heâs grown to not care for her, so being angry will just waste his time. Sure, his ego is hurt but not enough to waste minutes of precious time. He takes a deep breath before ringing the doorbell.
âPookie! Iâm so happy that youâre here!â Ali exclaims immediately as she opens the door. She throws her arms over Satoru, hugging him tightly. Satoru does not return the hug, something that she doesnât seem to notice.
They step inside, and Satoru awkwardly places his hands in his pockets. Heâs not unfamiliar with a breakup, but itâs still awkward. Ali walks to the kitchen to get something to drink for him. Something sweet, just how he likes it.
âIâve been thinking about you so much. I miss you.â She begins, and Satoru thinks about how to lay it on gently. She begins to tell him about a brand trip that sheâs been invited to, and all the magnificent details.Â
âHere.â She smiles brightly at him, handing him something to drink. Satoru hesitantly takes it from her hand, swirling the drink in his hand but not daring to bring it up to his lips. She takes a seat on the couch, waiting for him to join her. Satoru remains standing though. âYouâve been so quiet lately.â
âYeahâŠâ Satoru sounds awkward, but he knows that she wonât pick up on it. Satoru walks to the kitchen to put the drink on the counter, heâs not thirsty right now.Â
âIs everything okay?â Ali asks, and Satoru slowly walks back to her. Her eyes keep going back and forth between him and the couch, but Satoru is opting to stand.
âMy friend saw you with another guy in a compromising situation.â He finally admits, making her eyes go wide. A simple look at her, and Satoru knows that sheâs ready to deny the situation. He has no proof, why is he questioning her loyalty?
âIâ I donât know what youâre talking about.â She begins, immediately giving it away that sheâs guilty. Sheâs as pale as a ghost, something that almost earns a chuckle from Satoru in the very tense situation. He forgets about his hurt ego when he sees her reaction.
âDonât lie to me. He said everything I need to know, and I trust him.â Satoru changes a certain detail, one that will take away all suspicions that would surround you. Sheâs taken back by this, and sheâs not sure how to respond. She stands up from her seat, taking a step near the man.
âI only did it because youââ Sheâs getting defensive over her wrongdoings. Sure, she did it but she had a damn good reasonâ At least thatâs what she thinks. âI told you I loved you and youââ
ïżœïżœI canât tell you I love you when I donât.â Satoru cuts her off, and her face gets red from embarrassment. Sheâs still going to hold her head high and defend her actions, even if thereâs no good explanation for her decisions. âI was going to end things with you eventually, but what youâve done is unforgivable. I liked the possibility of us being friends but⊠I donât think I can do that either.â
âSatoru, we can talk about this.â Ali begins when she realizes that Satoru wonât care for any reasoning. Heâs set on ending things. Sheâs stepping toward him, and when sheâs within reach, she grabs his hands. âWe can work things out, letâs not throw everything awayââ
âYou threw everything away. Thereâs no way in hell Iâd get back with you after you cheated.â He interrupts her once again. Itâs just like Suguru said, sheâs very superficial. âYou told me you loved me, yet you went with the first guy you could find because I needed some time. What does that say about your character or your feelings toward me? Do you even care about me?âÂ
âI do! I was justâ Feeling so low. I was tipsy and made a mistake.â She tries to explain her side, and Satoru takes his hands from her grasp. He doesnât want to spend another minute here to hear stupid excuses for horrible actionsâ Horrible actions that hurt his ego but he doesnât care about as much as he should. He was over with the relationship for a while now.
âI donât care for a reason. This is over.â Satoru says, taking a step backwards. âPlease donât make this harder than it has to be. Weâre both mature enough to not make this a bigger deal than it has to be.â
She opens her mouth to speak, but Satoru walks away before she can get a word out. He doesnât care enough to hear what she has in mind, so sheâs forced to swallow her words.
Youâve never seen Ali as devastated as she is now. Sheâs crying on your shoulder, telling you how much she regrets her actions. Itâs good to hear that sheâs learned from her mistakes, but you feel extremely guilty knowing that your best friend is heartbroken because you couldnât keep a secret. Deep down, you know you did the right thing but still feel bad while your best friend is sobbing over her now ex-boyfriend.
âI donât know what Iâm going to doâ He was so perfect.â She sobs, and you hear your heart breaking. You shouldâve just bit your tongue about it.Â
You have conflicting feelings for Satoru, but you were rooting for them. Youâd never wish harm on your best friend, and you didnât tell him with the hopes that theyâd break up. Cheating isnât something that you can keep quiet about, even if itâs a mistake from your best friend.
âYouâll be okay, Ali. He wasnât worth it.â You embrace her, hand rubbing her back to soothe her. You donât believe the words leave your lips, but youâll say just about anything to comfort her. You know her, sheâs more upset about the fact that she got dumped than her so-called love for Satoru.Â
âYouâre such a liar! He was perfect!â She cries, and you canât argue with it. Youâre at a loss of wordsâ Whatâs the next step that you should take? You canât reprimand her and remind her that these are the consequences of her actions. âHeâs blocked me everywhere. Iâve been trying to message him on social media but I canât find his accounts.â
âMaybe you should let this go. Thereâs no way to go back from this.â You try to tell her, but your words fall on deaf ears. You know her, sheâs not listening to anything she doesnât want to hear. Ali wants something, and sheâll get it no matter the cost.Â
Sheâs looking up at you with glossy eyes, desperate to get what she wants. You know the look in her eyes. Sheâs determined to get back with him, and she needs your help. Before she can mutter something out, you speak, âNo. Iâm not getting involved.â
âPleaseâ Please, please, please. I donât know what Iâd do without you.â She pleads, putting her hands together to beg. You look away, not willing to fall for her trap. You feel the guilt of telling Satoru, slowly eat you alive; you know you did the right thing, but why do you feel so bad?
âThereâs plenty of fish in the sea, and youâre a pretty girl. Heâs not all that.â You answer, once again not believing a single word you say. You have to make her drop this absurd idea of getting back with Satoru though, and youâre willing to make up any lie.
She takes her head off your shoulder, dramatically crossing her arms and pouting like a child. You let out a sigh, knowing that this stupid idea of getting back with Satoru is not getting dropped any time soon.
âIf I didnât know any better, Iâd say you like him.â She murmurs, and you feel your face get hot. You donât say anything because youâd surely give away your feelings by uttering a single word.Â
âWeâll talk again when you grow up.â You stand up from the couch, planning to leave her behind to sort out her intense emotions. But just as youâre about to walk away, she speaks up,
âPlease, do this one thing for me and then Iâll leave you alone.â And you look back at her, the desperation in her eyes getting to you. Sheâs in this position because of you. The least you can do is help her out.
An exasperated sigh leaves your lips before you mutter out, âFine.â
Ali has an insane power over you, and itâs clear when she strings you along in her ridiculous plan. Though there is no plan, she just wants you to show up at Satoruâs place and beg. She canât show up anymore since he threatened her with a restraining order (thinking about it, youâre not sure why you agreed to come), so she pushed you to show up.Â
Though you arenât exactly doing what she wants you to do.
You texted Satoru in the morning, asking him if you could meet up to talk. Surprisingly, he agreed. You have no idea how to proceed though. How will you even bring up the topic without getting completely turned down?
Your mind is racing to find the answer as you sit down outside the cafĂ©. Youâre bouncing your leg, feeling your nerves rise as you wait for Satoruâs arrival. Ali is inside, trying to hide as her stupid plan unravels. Youâre like her puppet, and you fail to notice.
âHi.â Youâre startled by a welcoming voice. You look up to find Satoru with a subtle smile on his face. You stand up to greet him, though he assures you it isnât necessary.Â
His eyes look you up and down, and your face gets hot at the mere thought that heâs checking you outâ No, itâs absurd. He wouldnât be into you in any way. Ali is his type, and youâre nothing like her.
âIâm going in. Do you want anything? I heard you also like sweet stuff.â Satoru offers, and youâre about to shake your head since you donât want Satoru spending a single cent on you; but then you remember Ali is also inside.
âIâll get it, what do you want?â You quickly ask and he raises a brow.Â
âItâs fine, I need to walk a little more before stuffing my face.â He replies, and you insist. He lets out a chuckle at your insistence before telling you, âIâll ignore Allison, you donât have to worry about it.â
âOhâ You know about that.â You awkwardly respond, and Satoru nods.
âYou donât think Iâm dumb enough to not know, right? Youâre too good to her, you wouldnât reach out even thoughââ He cuts himself off before finishing his sentence. He doesnât want to embarrass you. âI know youâre here for her.â
âThen why did you come?â You question, earning a shrug for him. Before you can pressure him to give you a proper answer, he walks inside the cafĂ© to get himself a treat. You take a seat once again, and instead of focusing on your initial goal, your mind fills up with questions.Â
Heâs not here because he likes you⊠Right? No. Absolutely not. You quickly shake that thought out of your head. Itâs not that youâre not beautiful, but compared to Ali youâre nothing. Your whole life youâve always come second to her, and this situation is no different. Even if Satoru were to make a move on you, itâd be to get some sort of revenge on Ali.Â
As your mind races and goes through every possible scenario, Satoru comes back with a coffee and two treats. He places a delicious dessert in front of you before sitting down across from you. Your eyes get big at the sight of the sweet dish, your mouth salivating. It sure manages to push away any and all thoughts that were flooding your brain.Â
âWhat is this?â You ask, and he looks like heâs fighting back a smile.
âJust thought you might like it.â He acts unbothered. You lick your lips, about to taste the dessert but you end up holding back. You simply watch him sip on his beverage. Youâre reminded that youâre here to help Ali out.
âHow have you been holding up? Has the breakup been hitting you hard?â You ask, though you know the question is useless. Satoru has never looked better. A great weight has been lifted off his shoulders, and itâs noticeable.Â
âSure, you can say that.â He chuckles, taking the question as a joke. âGive me your proposal. What is she offering?â
âApologies.â Thereâs an unintentional mocking tone in your voice. Satoruâs brows raise as he picks up on it, but he quickly assumes that you donât do it on purpose. âShe really is sorry, Satoru. She regrets her decision, and she really misses you.â
âThatâs good to hear.â He says, and before you can say anything, he speaks up again, âI still donât want anything to do with her. You of all people should know that cheating isnât the only thing that led to this.â
âAli is a good person⊠Sheâs just out of it sometimes.â You defend her, and Satoru laughs. âShe misses you so much, and it hurts to see my best friend in this much pain.â
âYouâre too good for her.â He replies, and you hate to hear those words. Sheâs your best friend, youâre not too good for herâ Youâre just doing everything that a best friend should be doing.
âIâm doing what I should be doing. She loves you, Satoru.â You point out, and he scoffs. She told him that she loves him, but thatâs hard to believe. Satoruâs gotten to know Ali, and he knows that she has a certain way with words. Sheâs not very convincing to Satoru though.
âWhy should you be involved in this? Youâre a great friend, but sheâs not one. If she was, she wouldnât get you involved in this.â Satoru responds, and you sigh. You donât want to begin that conversation, mainly because you know thereâs some truth to his words.Â
âI should get involved because sheâs suffering.â You argue, and Satoru wants to laugh. Suffering, right. Sheâs too self-absorbed to care about someone else.Â
âCanât she just get a new boyfriend? Why does it have to be me?â He asks, and you furrow your brows.Â
âWhat do you mean? Who else would it be?â You question. âYou canât easily fall in and out of love.â
âSheâs not in love with me though. She just likes attention and expensive things, something a lot of other men can offer.â Satoru points out, making you bite your lip. Heâs not entirely wrong but you still choose to defend your best friend.
âShe does love you, Satoru. Sheâs been crying to me about this for so long. She misses you.â You defend her, and Satoru clicks his tongue.
âWill you taste the dessert I got you? I want to see if you like it.â Satoru tries to change the topic, and you puff out a breath. Itâs not going to kill you to taste it, and youâll quickly go back to the subject.
You take a small bite, and your eyes light up as you begin to savor the food in front of you. Satoru is watching your every move, finding your expression amusing. For the second, you completely forget why youâre here.Â
âIs it good?â Satoru asks, and you excitedly nod your head. Itâs good to know that he made the right decision. He watches you take another bite before standing up. The topic of Ali is tired, and he knows that itâs the only type of conversation heâll get from you today. He knew that the whole reason you asked him to meet up was to talk about Ali, but he doesnât regret coming.
âWhere are you going?â You sound funny, your mouth full of food as Satoru grabs his drink. Itâs obvious heâs leaving, but you ask with the slight hope that youâre wrong.Â
âFor the record, I came here because itâs always nice to talk to you.â Satoru tells you, and you raise your eyebrows in confusion. He clears his throat before pointing inside, âWe can meet up again soon, just not with her around.â
âWaitâ! Weâre not done here.â You try to stop him but Satoru turns his back to you and begins to walk away.Â
Unluckily for Ali, youâre not running after him to talk. Heâs made his decision and you arenât willing to interfere in their relationship anymore. And unluckily for you, you know that Ali wonât accept the decision and continue to press you about the matter.Â
Satoru furrows his eyebrows as he sees the long line of the shop. He thought that showing up early would reduce the amount of people in the place, but heâs been proven wrong. He canât help but sigh, knowing that heâll spend at least twenty minutes waiting just to get a treat. But all the time in line is worth it.
Satoru looks around the place, hoping that heâll find somethingâ Even if he stands so far away that he canât make out anything he sees. He freezes when he sees a familiar head of curly brown hair, way ahead in line. He chews on the inside of his cheek for a moment before stepping forward.
âWhich one should I get?â You mutter yourself, mouth watering as your eyes scan all the desserts behind the glass.Â
âThe macaroons look good.â Youâre startled by an all too familiar voice. You put your hand over your heart, feeling as if itâs about to beat out of your chest as you look at him.
âWhat are you doing here?â You ask him, as if itâs impossible for you to end up in the same place. You know he has a sweet tooth as well, it shouldnât be a surprise to find him here. You look back, and see the long line behind you. âOh, youâre using me to cut line, I see.â
âCanât you believe I just wanted to greet you?â Satoru responds, and you chuckle.Â
âItâs fine. You can use me.â You respond, nervously tucking a strand of hair behind your ear. Itâs weird to talk to him without using Ali as an excuse. âIâve been waiting for a while, itâs fine.â
âDid you just get off work?â Satoru asks and you nod. âWhat do you do? Iâm sorry I neverââ
âHurry up! Weâre waiting!â Someone cuts off the conversation, and you feel your face get warm from embarrassment. Satoru glares back at them, as if he has the right. He did cut the line, but he doesnât care.Â
âIâll take two of those.â You tell the worker behind the counter. You donât even look at the food that youâre pointing at, you just want to get out of line. âPick what you want.â
His order is more intricate than yours. Itâs clear that he wouldâve waited an hour if he had to.
âIâll pay.â He insists when you get to the register, and you want to argue with him that you got yourself covered. But he pays before you can even open your mouth.
âThank you.â Youâre forced to thank him when you exit the store. You expect to go your separate ways, after leaving the place but Satoru offers,
âHow about we take a seat? I want to talk to you.âÂ
âOhâ Yeah.â You respond. You bite down your lip before telling him, âIâm a tech analyst, by the way.â
âHuhâ Oh, yeah.â Satoru replies. He stares at your face for a moment before letting out a low laugh. âI wouldâve never guessed.âÂ
âWell now you know.â
Ali calms down a couple of months after her breakup with Satoru. She certainly leaves you alone about the matter which youâre grateful for. Youâre more than willing to help your best friend with any issue, but her relationship with Satoru is a mess youâd rather stay out of.
Knowing Ali, sheâs certainly not given up on Satoru. Sheâs just leaving you out of the mess, and by doing so, sheâs completely forgotten about you. Even though you miss your friend, you certainly donât mind not being involved in her romantic issues.
You know that sheâs looking for ways to get close to Satoru again, not knowing that using you again would actually offer some sort of result this time around. But you wouldnât dare tell her.Â
It wasnât something you planned out, it just happened. Your shared love for sweets led you to the same shop in townâ And you keep meeting up by chance. There aren't many shops in the area like that one. Sure, you can buy a dessert anywhere, but you wonât find the variety and quality anywhere else in town; itâs what attracts you two to the same place.
You met a handful of times by chance, and each time you began to talk. Conversation flowed smoothly each time, which led you to talk more on the phone. Now youâre texting to meet up, agreeing to grab a sweet treat at least once a week. You slightly feel guilty for meeting him behind Aliâs back, but you know that you arenât doing anything wrong.
Youâre simply friends with Satoru. Everything is completely platonic.
âI got this for you.â Satoru puts down a little box on the table, sliding it over to you. Your eyes narrow as you try to decipher whatâs in the box. You wonder what heâs picked for you. While youâve gotten close, you doubt that heâs really noticed your preferences in sweets.Â
âYou didnât have to, thank you.â You immediately respond, opening the box to find your favorite dessert. Your eyes widen, a smile coming to your face as you realize that heâs noticed what your favorite kind of treat is. Itâs sweet to know that heâs noticed. âI really appreciate it, Satoru.â
âIt was no problem.â He smiles back at you. Heâs always buying something for you, making you feel special in a way that heâd never guess. You almost feel guilty for never getting him something in return.
âDo you want a bit?â You offer, but he quickly shakes his head. He got it for you because he knows that you like it, but he isnât particularly fond of the dessert that he got you. You look delighted with his response, making Satoru scoff.
âYou do know the place has more, right? It wouldnât kill you to share either.â He says, and you stick your tongue out at him jokingly. âYou can enjoy your yucky dessert alone, donât worry.â
âYucky? Really?â You respond and he hums in response. âYou sound like a child.â
âI canât find a more fitting word.â He replies which makes you giggle. He can criticize the food all he wants, as long as you donât have to share. Satoru clears his throat before speaking up again, âYou know, I was thinkingââ
âThis is so good.â You unintentionally cut him off as you taste what he got you. You swear youâre in heaven with the first taste. You donât understand how Satoru doesnât like it, but itâs fine, youâre happy as long as you donât have to share. Satoru chuckles at your reaction.
âI really donât understand why you like it so much. Thereâs so many other options.â He says, but you donât pay much attention to what he has to say. And just like that, the courage for what he was going to say is completely gone. âBut if it makes you happy.â
âYou know something? Youâre actually a really picky eater. I never figured you as the type.â You tell him, and Satoru clicks his tongue. You arenât wrong though. âI did cut you off, didnât I? What were you going to say?â
âNothing.â He shakes his head, dismissing the topic. You furrow your brows, getting curious as to what you interrupted.Â
âAre you sure?â You question and he nods in response. The reason youâre here today is because Satoru texted you that he wanted to talk about something. You seriously doubt that the reason heâs here is to simply give you a free dessert. âI donât buy it.â
âYouâre right.â He sighs. He bites his lip, fidgeting his fingers. Heâs feeling nervous, something that rarely comes to him. Satoru has the right to feel confident in every situationâ But heâs not sure how to approach this considering the weird dynamic that you have. He finally spits out, âHow about we go on a date? Would you like that?â
âSatoruââ Youâre caught speechless. You slowly blink, feeling as if your heart is about to beat out of your chest. Did you hear that right? You begin to laugh, as if Satoru just told you some sort of joke. âYou got me.â
âIâm not joking.â Satoru almost sounds offended by your response.
âIâ I canât, Satoru.â You answer, feeling dirty for even saying that. You like himâ Itâs no longer a stupid crush anymore. After spending time with him, and getting to know him better, youâve realized that you like him as a person. Youâre not just attracted to him. You can picture a future with him, although you shouldnât.Â
âWhy?â He asks. He knows you like him, heâs known for a long time. Itâs clear that you two have chemistry. You didnât just say no, you specifically told him that you canât. âIf itâs about Aliââ
âIâm sorry.â You stand up. You walk away, leaving your dessert half eaten.Â
âShouldâve known.â Satoru mutters, quickly followed by a sigh. Itâs clear that you like him, but your loyalty towards Ali is stronger.
âHey⊠What are you doing here?â Satoru opens the door, only to find you completely distressed. Itâs almost midnight, so heâs shocked to find you at his door. You look distressedâ Itâs clear to him that youâve just woken up, given that youâre wearing your glasses instead of your usual contacts. âIf itâs about earlierââ
âWe have to talk.â You cut him off, and Satoru moves to the side to let you in. You take a deep breath before stepping into his apartment. You awkwardly look around the place, wondering why youâre here. Youâre listening to your heart instead of your brain, you should turn around and go back to your best friend.
âWhat do you want to say?â He asks, shutting the door behind him. He steps near you, and you feel your breath get caught up in your chest.Â
âI was thinking about it⊠I do like you, Satoru.â You confess, something that isnât news to Satoru. Heâs known for a while. It was clear that you were trying to hide it, so it wasnât something that concerned him while he was with Ali.
You sigh, âBut Aliâs been my friend since childhood. She loves you. I canât do this to her.â
âPleaseâŠâ Satoru grabs your hand, putting it over his beating heart. You feel your face get warm, looking up at him to make eye contact. âYou shouldnât be unhappy for her.â
âWe make great friends, Satoru. I canât hurt her like this.â You tell him, hating yourself for the words that leave your mouth. If you were anyone else, youâd jump at the opportunity to be with him, but you canât do that to your best friend. âI came here to tell you that. I donât want to ruin our friendship.â
âYou know that weâd go really great together.â He tries to convince you, and you know he isnât wrong. You look into his adoring eyes, feeling your heart skip a beat. âYou canât base your decisions on her feelings.â
You shouldnât. You really shouldnât.
âIâm sorry.â You mutter as your hands go to the back of his neck, bringing him down to meet your lips. Youâre not apologizing to him, that part is clear to him when your soft lips meet his. Youâre listening to your heart and not your mind for once. Though it swells with guilt, the feeling is overshadowed.
Satoru shuts his eyes, giving in to the soft feeling of your lips against his. You pull away, your gaze meeting his adoring eyes for a moment. You shouldnât, yet your lips meet again. It starts sweet, but his wandering hands escalate things. Your tongue enters his mouth as his hands land on your ass.Â
You feel as if your body is burning up as your tongue presses against his. You need him in every explicable way. Your body needs more. Satoru picks you up, and you wrap your legs around his waist. He carries you to his bedroom, gently putting you down on his bed. Are things going too fast? Or has this been brewing up for a while? Either way, things arenât stopping now.
He pulls away, taking off your glasses and putting them down on his nightstand before focusing all his attention on you. He cups your face and lovingly kisses you as your fingers trace down his body and stop at his sweatpants.Â
You escalate things by pulling down his sweatpants, unable to waste any more time. You pull away from the kiss. You look up at him with dark, lust-filled eyes. As he pulls away, you push down his underwear.Â
You shouldnât be surprised by his size, but heâs bigger than average. Your hand wraps around the base and you give it a couple of strokes before your tongue circles around the tip. You start off slow and unsure, but quickly become confident as you hear a soft moan leave Satoruâs lips.
You lick his length before fully wrapping your mouth around it, taking as much as you can get.Â
You bob your head slowly, starting off slow. Itâs not how he usually likes to start off things, but right now he swears heâs in heaven with how your mouth feels around his cock. It feels so perfect around him.Â
Your bobs begin to pick up a bit of speed, and he bites down his lip. He doesnât want to embarrass himself by being too loud, even if it is because youâre making him feel good. He stares down at you, watching as you suck him off with no problem, looking so perfect while youâre preoccupied. He sighs, relieved.Â
You look up at him, wanting his approval. Heâs a little too caught up in his own feelings, too engrossed with how your mouth feels around him. He canât form a sentence to praise you on how good youâre doing.Â
He grabs the back of your head and pushes your head so you gag on his cock. As gentle as he wants to be with you, he canât hold back for too long. Youâre gagging on his dick, tears filling up your eyes and quickly spilling as he makes you take every inch of his dick in your mouth.Â
âFuckâ Fuck-â He moans, watching as a couple of tears leave your eyes. It should be a sin for someone to look so pretty as they begin to cry. He finally lets go of you, allowing you to retake control of the narrative. âYour mouth is too perfect.â
You take his dick out of your mouth, stroking it a couple of times before wrapping your mouth around it again. Satoruâs breath gets caught up in his throat as his release nears.Â
He shuts his eyes, throwing his head back, groaning in pleasure as his come hits the back of your throat. You take his cock out of your mouth and before you can say a word, his lips land on yours again.
Satoru wastes no time in getting you undressed. He makes sure to praise every inch of your body, kissing every corner. He wants you to know just how much he likes you, and how attractive he finds you. There is no better way to tell you than just by kissing every inch of your body.Â
âGet on all fours.â He tells you, and you waste no time. Satoru takes a moment to look at your pretty pussy before spitting on it a couple of times.Â
Satoru aligns his cock with the entrance of your pussy, running the tip through your folds and teasing you. Satoru slowly pushes himself inside of you, and you feel your eyes roll to the back of your head. You loudly moan as his thick cock stretches you out.Â
Satoruâs hands go to your hips, searching for balance before he begins to move. The man canât help but loudly moan as he feels your tight pussy wrap around him. Youâre so perfect, itâs going to drive him insane. He hasnât properly tasted you yet but heâs surely to get obsessed.Â
âItâs so good!â You moan, his cock filling you up just right. You hate to admit that youâve thought about this moment so many times, but you never imagined itâd be this good. Itâs hard to feel guilty when your body feels this amazing.
Your back arches as your head presses against the mattress, muffling any noise that comes from your mouth. Satoru slaps your ass as his eyes watch it jiggle with his every movement. He canât keep his eyes off it.Â
âYouâre so tight.â Satoru tells you through gritted teeth. He holds back on moaning, not wanting to sound too pathetic as he fucks you. Itâs hard when your cunt is so nice and tight around him though.
âItâs so good, daddy.â You moan, stumbling over your words. Satoru can die and go to heaven when he hears you call him daddy. Everything you do is so perfect, he canât believe heâs waited so long to pursue you.
One of your hands goes under and you begin to play with your clit, making you squeeze around his cock. He moans your name out of pure pleasure. Heâs surely going to be thinking about this for days on end. Heâs never felt like this with anyone else.Â
âDaddy, itâs so good!â You stop playing with your clit, your hands gripping the silk sheets underneath as your orgasm takes over your body.
âGood girl. Youâre doing so good.â Satoru breathlessly praises you, knowing that he wonât last much longer. He isnât alone though. Your eyes rolling to the back of your head, orgasm rapidly approaching.Â
Your body finally spasms, reaching your peak. Satoru slaps your ass a couple of times, praising you for being so good and so perfect for finishing around his cock. He keeps telling you how perfect you are, moaning your name. Heâs making you feel like a goddess.
Satoruâs thrusts become unregulated. Itâs hard for him to contain himself, but he doesnât want this moment to end. He doesnât want you to come to your senses yet. He wants to stay like this for a while. Alas, he canât hold himself back forever.Â
He pulls his cock out, coating your ass with his cum. He swears he hasnât seen a prettier sightâ Apart from your face, of course. But your ass being coated with his cum is a close second.
âThat wasââ Satoru plops down on the bed beside you, as you lay on your stomach. Heâs out of breath, and needs a moment. âAmazing.â
âYeah.â You chuckle, staring at him as he looks at the ceiling.Â
Maybe youâll regret it in the morning, but not right now. Right now, you feel euphoric.
Your hand goes to his face, thumb caressing his cheek. He looks back at you so lovingly, and your heart skips a beat.
âWeâre not done yet.â You tell him, and a smile comes to Satoruâs face.
He couldnât agree more.
The sunlight peeks into the room, causing you to open your eyes first thing in the morning. You slowly take in your surroundings, realizing that youâre not back at your place. You feel a heavy arm over your body, cuddling you. It takes you a minute to remember the events of last night before you quickly sit up on the bed.
You feel your face get hot, embarrassment quickly flowing through you. Quickly followed by regret. No, you shouldnât be here. You do like him, otherwise you wouldnât have shown up last night⊠But doing this to your own best friend? You donât know how you could ever face her again after this.
âGo back to sleep.â A sleepy Satoru mutters, and as much as your sore body wants to lay back down, you canât. Youâre pulling the bed sheets off your body and searching for your scattered clothes. Satoru ends up fully waking up when he realizes what youâre doing. Youâre leaving as if this is a one-night-stand.
âPlease donât ever tell anyone that this happened.â You tell him, grabbing your bra from the floor. Satoruâs eyes focus on your assâ Granted, itâs the worst time to focus on your ass, but itâs hard to ignore when it looks so perfect in front of him. Your next words bring him back to reality, âWhat happened last night shouldnât have happened. Iâm sorry.â
âHey.â He calls out your name, making you freeze in your spot. Youâre hesitant to look back at him, but you end up doing it. âYou know you donât regret it.â
âIâ I donât.â You canât lie to him. You try to continue to get dressed to get out of the apartment as fast as possible. Youâre scared that youâre going to commit another mistake if you stay for too long.
âWhy donât you stay?â Satoru asks, and you canât give him an answer. He knows why, but he needs you to say it for you to realize how ridiculous you sound. âYou shouldnât put yourself second. Ali made her own mistakes, and you shouldnât pay for them.â
âSheâs my best friend, Satoru. She loves you.â You respond, and Satoru scoffs. Itâs too early to deal with this. How many times does he have to tell you that she doesnât love him for you to drop the subject. âI know that she doesnât deserve another chance with you, but I canât do this to her.â
âDo what to her? Sheâs going to move on eventually, and youâre just going to be miserable. Youâre passing up on a great relationship for a girl that doesnât care about you enough.â Itâs harsh, but Satoru canât help but tell you the truth. As painful as it is. If he isnât harsh with you, youâll never open your eyes.
âYouâre right.â You end up sighing. You take a seat on the bed again, mind heavy with thoughts.Â
âIf you want this to stop now, we can end it now.â He says, reaching over to grab your hand and give it a gentle squeeze. âJust know that we like each other, and thereâs actually nothing keeping us apart.â
For a long minute, the room is silent. Heâs right, as much as you donât want to admit it. Thereâs no reason for you to not be together. Ali wonât react well, but youâre not going to let her dictate your life.Â
âYouâre right.â You respond, and you watch as his face lights up. âBut please, letâs keep this a secret for now. Until I figure out what to say to Ali.â
âMy lips are sealed.â
Thereâs something up your sleeve, and Ali canât help but notice. She doesnât know when it started, but one day she realized that the place was dirty. Dishes were piling up, the floor needed to be mopped and she didnât have a single article of clean clothes.Â
Even when you found out that she cheated on Satoru, you continued to do everything for her, so she wonders if something is wrong with you⊠The place is filthy, time is running out and she refuses to pick up a single dish. Youâve always taken it as your responsibility to do every chore in the house, you canât just stop now. What could she have possibly done to upset you this time? She tries to talk to you about the subject, but when she knocks on your door, youâre not home.
Thatâs not the only thing though. When you do come home, she notices you have some expensive items. Items that youâd never willingly spend money on, she knows that much about you. The signs are all there: youâre seeing someone.
âHi, babe.â Ali startles you when you get home, a little past midnight. Youâre a bit disheveled, making it clear what you were up to. She stayed up for you, waiting for you on the couch, and it makes you feel uneasy.
âHi, Ali.â You sheepishly smile at her, feeling as if youâve somehow gotten caught. You cover up your tracks damn well, you know that she has no way of knowing that youâre dating Satoru behind her back. âWhatâs up?â
âNothing much.â She responds. You feel your breath get caught up in your chest, waiting for her to say something else. You begin to take small, subtle steps to your room as she makes up her mind. âAre you mad at me?â
âNo⊠Why would I be?â You question, though you know why she asks. Sheâs worried because youâre barely coming around.Â
âYouâre seeing someone then, right?â She asks, standing up from the couch and stepping towards you. You feel your hands get shaky, nerves taking over you.
âNoâ Why do you ask?â You slightly stumble over your words, and you hope that she doesnât notice. You hope that Satoru is right about your best friend when he says that sheâs too self absorbed to care about anyone else but herself.Â
âYouâre here late andâŠâ She looks you up and down, judgment written all over her face. âYou look like that.âÂ
âI just had a rough day.â You claim, trying to play it off. Much to your dismay, she snatches the purse that you hold in your hands. She closely inspects it, trying to check if itâs authentic. You shouldâve known better than to accept Satoruâs very expensive gifts.
âItâs real. You wouldnât spend this much money on a purse.â She points out, and you get increasingly nervous. You snatch the purse back before answering,
âIs it that hard to believe that I would slowly save up for a purse?âÂ
âFine.â She rolls her eyes. Itâs very clear that youâre seeing someone, but you wonât tell. Youâll come around eventually, she just has to give you the cold shoulder for a whileâ Sheâs not too sure if itâll work this time around.Â
She dramatically turns away from you and begins to walk to her room, taking small steps to give you time to speak up. But you donât say anything. On the contrary, you begin to walk to your room as well.
âYouâre the worst.â You stick out your tongue at Satoru, getting mad at the 4+ card that he puts down on the deck. You wish you could easily take defeat, but your boyfriend sure loves to brag about his victories. He drives you insane.
âThe worst? Why? Because Iâm better than you?â Satoru is so smug about it, and youâre filled with rage. You take deep breaths, reminding yourself that this is just a game.Â
âYou suck!â You respond, throwing your cards on the coffee table. Satoru chuckles, watching you stand up and head to the kitchen to get yourself a glass of water, making him follow like a lost puppy.Â
He engulfs you in a hug, filling up your face with kisses. He mutters baseless apologies for his great luck and strategy for the game. Youâre trying to push him away, but heâs too overbearing.Â
âHi, guys.â You hear and your blood runs cold as you hear an all too familiar voice. You finally manage to stop Satoru, who looks unphased by Shokoâs voice. Youâve been caught, yet he doesnât seem to care.
âJeez, have you heard of knocking?â Satoru finally looks at the woman, who holds up the apartment key.Â
âI came here to pick something up. Suguru left his jacket here.â She looks around for the item she came for, not really questioning why Satoru was kissing you.Â
âWeâ We can explain.â You begin, and she furrows her brows in a confused manner as she looks back at you.Â
âWhat is there to explain? Satoru told us that youâre dating.â She answers, and you glare at the man that stands right next to you. He looks just as confused as Shoko by your reaction.
âWas I not supposed to?â He questions, and you cross your arms.
âI told you that this is a secret.â You mutter.Â
âYeah, a secret from Allison. Not my friends.â Satoru reiterates, and you sigh. So his friends know, great. Itâs only a matter of time before your best friend finds out as well. You have to find the right time to break the news to her before she finds out on her own.
âSatoruâŠâ You shake your head disappointedly. You want to show off your relationship as much as possible, so youâre not hiding this because you want to. Youâre doing whatâs best for your relationship for Aliâ As selfish as it is to do this to Satoru.
âIâm sorry, I misunderstood.â He apologizes, as a heavy weight sets on your shoulders. You have to tell her eventually, you canât keep your relationship a secret forever.Â
âI have toââ You begin, but youâre cut off by the sound of your phone ringing. Shoko grabs it from the coffee table and hands it to you, a look of annoyance coming to her face on your part. You feel your heart drop, looking back at your boyfriend. âItâs her.â
âJust pick up the phone. She wonât call you unless itâs an emergency.â Satoru tells you. Heâs noticed that your best friend rarely communicates with you; granted, unless she needs something from you.Â
âHi, Ali.â You answer the phone, stepping away from Satoru because youâre scared that a single breath from him will get you caught. Satoru keeps his gaze on you as you talk to your best friend. âOh, Iâm so sorry. Iâll be right there.â
âWhat happened?â Satoru mouths, but you ignore him as you comfort your best friend. You stay on the line for another minute before hanging up.Â
âA family member of hers died, and she wants me to go with her back to our hometown.â You answer, and Satoru raises his brows. He wonât ask who, itâs too intrusive. Youâre together, but thereâs some things about Ali that you refuse to tell him because you feel like youâre telling too much about your best friend.Â
âOh, Iâm sorry.â Satoru isnât sure how else to respond. You kiss his cheek before walking over to the couch to grab your stuff.
âI have to go. She sounds pretty devastated.â You tell him, and Satoru purses his lips together. The great night that he had planned has been ruined, and for Ali of all people. But he tries to pull his feelings to the side, knowing that thereâs a possibility that youâre affected by all of this. After all, you and Ali grew up together.Â
âDo you need anything? I canââ He begins, only to be interrupted by you.
âI didnât know him well, he was one of Aliâs uncles and I saw him maybe a handful of times.â You reassure him, somehow managing to read his mind. âBut⊠Can I ask something from you?â
âAnything.â He responds.
âPlease refrain from communicating. Right now is not the time to break the news to Ali.âÂ
Satoru is slowly dying inside, knowing that he canât contact you in any way. For two weeks, heâs forced to blankly stare at his phone, hoping that youâll send him a message. It doesnât have to be long, just a sign of life from you.
Heâs told his parents about you. Itâs obvious that he takes this relationship very seriously, and he sees a future with youâ One that he never saw with Ali. Which means heâs miserable knowing that he canât contact you. He counts down the hours till he gets to know that youâre coming back.
Itâs fair to say that heâs overjoyed when you finally call. He wants to pick up the phone immediately, but he doesnât want to seem desperate by picking up within the first ring. He waits a couple of seconds before bringing up the phone to his ear.
âHi, baby. I miss you.â Satoru immediately says, not helping his case of not looking desperate. Thereâs only so much he can do though.
âHi.â Youâre not as affectionate as he is, which lets him know that youâre not alone. He wonders why youâre calling when sheâs nearby but at the same time he couldnât give a damn. As long as he gets to hear your voice, heâs happy. âIâm calling to let you know Iâm back home.â
âWhen can we meet?â He quickly asks, hoping that youâll say tonight. Heâs quickly filled with disappointment when you tell him,
âAre you going to Suguruâs party tomorrow night? How about there?â You suggest. He bites down his lip, holding back a sigh. Itâs better than waiting for days on end.
âYeah⊠Iâll see you then.â He responds, hoping that youâll say something more. But you end up hanging up the phone before he can get another word in.
He still canât help but smile, realizing that heâll finally see you tomorrow.
Satoru bounces his leg anxiously, waiting for you to finally show up at Suguruâs apartment. Youâre lateâ At least a lot of people are showing up before you which is rare. You usually show up early to things, but youâre still not here. Perhaps Satoru is a little earlier than usual today; heâs simply too excited with the fact that heâll finally see you. It feels like an eternity since the last time he saw your face.
He canât wait to hold you or kiss you again, which is why heâs impatient. Heâs slowly becoming needy by your side, and he isnât particularly mad about it.Â
âHeyââ He excitedly greets you, standing up from the couch to hug you but he freezes in his spot when he sees your best friend right behind you. The smile on his face drops, realizing that his plans for tonight have been delayed even further. âHey. I didnât expect to see you here.â
âYeah⊠Me neither.â You try to play it off. You watch as your best friend happily greets your boyfriend, only to be ignored by Satoru.Â
âShoko!â You call out, walking over to her since you donât want to awkwardly be put in the position of being between Satoru and Ali. No matter what you say to her, sheâs still going to do everything in her power to flirt with him. As uncomfortable as it is to know that your best friend is hitting on your boyfriend, you know that youâre doing something wrong by dating him so you wonât intervene.
âHow are you, Satoru? I havenât seen you in a while.â She begins, only for the man to completely ignore her and follow after you. He doesnât bother to hide it, but he knows that she wonât notice. She thinks that youâre beneath her, she doesnât think that heâs following after you.Â
âWhat is she doing here?â He asks you as he approaches you. He interrupts Shoko as she speaks to you, and Shoko crosses her arms, annoyed that sheâs been cut off by Satoru.
âTheyâre best friends, why wouldnât she be here?â Shoko argues, and Satoru clicks his tongue.Â
âI didnât ask you.â Satoru glares at Shoko. Knowing Suguru, he most definitely didnât invite Ali.Â
âSheâs feeling a little down and asked if she could tag along.â You answer, and Satoru hates the fact that youâre such a great friendâ Especially to such an undeserving woman like Ali. Satoru gives you an unintentional but nasty look and you kiss his cheek, âI couldnât say no to herââ
âShe saw that.â Shoko quickly tells you, and you begin to panic only for Shoko to laugh in your face. âI was joking, but man, that look on your face is priceless.â
âShoko!â You yell and she laughs even harder than before. You roll your eyes at her before turning your attention to Satoru,
âI think itâs best if we stay away from each other for the night⊠Iâll come over after the party.â Which makes the man sigh. He got too excited for tonight, only for Ali to ruin it all. âI donât want her to think somethingâs up if weâre attached to the hip tonight. Sheâs still very fragile.â
âFine.â Satoru agrees. As much as he thinks that Ali is undeserving of you, he wonât go against your wishes. Though his night had suddenly turned sour.
Ali has lost track of time. Sheâs been chasing around Satoru the entire night, all to no avail. Itâs like heâs running away from her. But that doesnât seem plausible in her head. Why would Satoru want to run away from her?
She asks around, hoping that one of his friends can pinpoint where Satoru is and lead her to him. She doesnât seem to realize that the majority of the people she talks to are Satoruâs friends, all who know the type of person she is. All of them who luckily keep their mouths shut about you.
âWhere is he?â She questions, going upstairs when she comes to the realization that he isnât anywhere on the first floor. Is he upstairs with somebody else? Surely Satoru hasnât moved on yet⊠Right? No, he wouldnât.
Ali chases after him, hoping to have a conversation with him where she can explain her truth. Her side of things about the very straightforward mistake that she made. She hopes that a couple of tears are going to be able to move him. After all, who can say no to her?Â
She confidently opens a door, only for her eyes to widen when she sees whatâs happening. Her blood runs cold before it begins to boil at the sight. Youâre on top of Satoru. Youâre kissing him. Heâs kissing you back.Â
No, this canât be happening. She pinches herself, checking if what she sees is a dream. But no. Satoru has moved on, and with you of all people. How pathetic. Satoru Gojo can get just about any woman he wants and heâd choose you?
âWhat the fuck?!â She yells, causing you to come to an abrupt stop. Your eyes widen at the sight of your best friend, and you begin to panic. But before you can even get a word out, Ali grabs a handful of your hair and pulls you off Satoru. âYou stupid little bitch.â
âIâm sorry, Iâm sorry.â You cry out as she begins to hit you. Youâre not doing anything to stop her because itâs something that you genuinely believe you deserve. A good friend wouldnât date their best friendâs ex-boyfriend.Â
âAllison, let go of her.â Satoru tries to pull her off you, but heâs unable to unless he uses force. He doesnât want to harm Ali in any way, knowing that itâll upset you. Even when sheâs pulling your hair and scratching you like a cat.Â
âYou call yourself my best friend and this is what you do?! Youâre a stupid homewrecker.â She spits on you, and it drives Satoru over the edge. Heâll deal with the repercussions later but he canât stand to watch it. He forcibly pushes Ali off you, making her back harshly hit the wall.
âAre you okay, baby?â Satoru cups your face, thumb going over the scratch on your cheek. Itâs bleeding. Tears are streaming down your face, completely ignoring what Satoru says as you apologize to your best friend.
âIâm sorry, Ali. I didnât mean for this to happen.â You sob, but sheâs not listening to what you have to say.
A couple of people are gathering around. They heard some commotion, and of course, they had to come around to see. All to add to your embarrassment.Â
âYou stupid bitch!â Ali yells again, trying to reach for you but Satoru doesnât let her. Someone steps in to hold her back, but that doesnât stop the barrage of insults that roll off her tongue.
âIâm so sorry.â You continue, trying to pay no mind to the insults that she spews. Youâre trying to block them out, but they still hurt like hell.
âHey, itâs okay.â Satoru tries to get you to look at him, but you keep your focus on Ali. The woman that youâve betrayed.
Even when sheâs taken out of your line of sight, sheâs the only thing on your mind. No matter what you do, your friendship will never be the same.
You shouldâve known that Ali wouldnât stop at dragging you by the hair and hitting you. The woman that youâve lived with for years is vengeful, and she wouldnât change a thing for you of all people. Though you didnât do anything to change it because you believed you deserved it.
The very next day, Ali had changed the locks to your shared apartment. When you managed to get inside, you noticed all of your clothes and accessories destroyed all over your room. It was fine. You deserved it. Even though Satoru reassured you that you didnât, you still believed she was right to do it.
A week later, your carâs tires were slashed, and two of the windows were broken. To top it off, Whore was keyed on it. You called Satoru about it, complaining that youâd get late to workâ Something that annoyed Satoru. It was clear who the culprit was, yet you refused to do anything about it because it was Ali. You believed you deserved it even though you didnât.Â
Satoru knows that you can stand up for yourself, heâs seen it before, so why canât you do it with Ali? He knows that youâve spent a lifetime together, but thatâs not a good reason for you to let her walk all over you.
But no matter what he says, you wonât do anything to stop her. You apologize for what sheâs done to you. Ali can ruin as many cars as sheâd like, he can easily replace them; however, it pains him to see you suffer because of her.Â
Satoru wonât overstep, not until he receives a call a little after five, and you sound completely distressed.
âIâ I canât do this anymore, Satoru.â You sob, and he quickly becomes alert.Â
âWhat happened? Are you okay? Do I need to pick you up?â He asks, quickly searching for car keys to leave and pick you up. Whatever it is, he knows that itâs tied to Ali.
âIâm covered in eggs. Some of her crazy followers know where I work and theyââ You sob, and Satoru feels his heart break as you explain the situation. He can only hope that you finally open your eyes and realize the type of person Ali is. âI canât do this anymore, Satoru. We should end this here.â
âWaitâ No. Absolutely not. Youâre not letting her win.â Satoru quickly responds as he exits the house. Heâs going somewhereâ Either to your apartment or your workplace to talk to you. No, he should go to the police station to deal with Ali. She needs to be stopped, and itâs clear that youâre not going to take action.
âIâm not letting her win. Iâm tired.â You sound completely defeated. Itâs not easy to deal with constant harassment. âIâve been getting death threats nonstop all week. Iâm genuinely scared for my life now.â
âCome live with me.â He offers, but you doubt that itâll fix anything. âIâll protect you, but please.â
âItâll just drag you down with me, Satoru.â You respond, taking a deep breath to try and calm yourself down. âI donât want you to get affected by her craziness.â
âI love you.â He blurts out. Ali made the same attempt with him once upon a time, but he actually means the words that leave his lips. âI donât mind being affected by her craziness because I love you.â
âIâm sorry, Satoru.â Youâre about to hang up the call before he can change your mind. But he successfully manages to get another word in.
âI promise I will make all of this stop. Just come to me, please.â He sounds like heâs on the verge of tears, and thatâs the last thing you want. You just want all of this to end, you want your best friend back even if sheâs clearly awful, and you want to live in peace. âI will fix it all, even if I have to beg her.â
âI canât. Iâm sorry.â You end up hanging up the phone, leaving Satoru with a broken heart. But as much as you care for himâ You can even say that you love him, but you canât keep doing this. It hasnât even been a month, but your life has been a living hell.Â
You hear some loud laughter from Aliâs room, and you furrow your brows as you hear it. Itâs cackling. It feels as if she knows what happened to you, and itâs causing her joy.Â
You know that you should walk to your room, and ignore her. Youâre apartment hunting, you know that you canât live under the same roof for too much longer. Instead of seeing what sheâs up to, you should lock yourself in your room and figure out a way of how to get out of here.Â
But you canât help but press your ear against the bedroom door to hear what sheâs doing.
âI wouldâve killed to see the look on that bitchâs face. Can you send me the video?â You hear, and you donât have to listen to another word. You know sheâs talking about you. âItâs only a matter of time before she breaks up with him.â
And those words send you over the edge. You clench your fists as your blood begins to boil. Thatâs all she wanted, for you to end things with Satoru, and youâre not going to let her have her way.
You love Satoru, and youâre not going to let her ruin things between the two of you. She might be miserable with her life, but youâre not going to let her drag you down with her.
You grab your phone and donât hesitate before calling Satoru. You begin walking to your bedroom, getting ready to have a long heart-to-heart conversation with him.Â
âSatoruâŠâ You say when he picks up the phone, unsure of how to proceed. An apology is in order but should you tell him that you want to get back together first? Maybe you should ask him to meet up first, having this conversation over a phone call seems improper.
âYouâre calling because you regret it.â He says before you can get another word out. He can read your mind so well, itâs ridiculous sometimes.Â
âI do.â You canât help but awkwardly chuckle. âI love you too, Satoru. Iâm sorry.â
Ali quickly realizes that she isnât untouchable when she messes with your car againâ Not that you would do anything against her. She might be horrible to you, but you still treat her like the little girl that was once upon your best friend. Her error lies in messing around with a car thatâs under Satoruâs name.Â
âI canât believe she did it again.â You comment, still in your pajamas as you look at the damage. Youâre staying in Satoruâs apartment for a while, and you wouldâve sworn that she wouldnât do anything while you were staying with him. But now your car is completely destroyed.
âYou sound unphased.â Satoru says, taking pictures of the damage. âYou shouldnât be used to this.â
âSheâs going to chase me for the rest of my life. Iâm convinced.â You answer. âBy the way, can you drop me offââ
âI got you.â He cuts you off, and you kiss his cheek. You couldnât be luckier. Until he opens his mouth to speak again, âBut after we talk to the cops.â
âSatoruââ
âTheyâre already involved. Iâve been working with some people behind the scenes, and weâre building up a harassment case against her.â Satoru interrupts you, and you feel your heart stop. âItâs going to stop whether you like it or not. That woman wonât leave you alone no matter what.â
âOkayâŠâ You sigh, giving him a subtle nod. You canât stop him. Either way, you know heâs right. She wonât stop unless she faces some serious consequences. âFor how long is sheââ
âSo far three years.â He reads your mind. âIf she pulls something else, we can make it four.â
âThatâs not too bad.â You answer, though you donât believe it. You feel guilty for not stopping him, but heâs right. You know heâs right.
Ali has beaten off more than she can chew, and unluckily for her, Satoru wonât let her get away with it.
You couldnât be happier a year after your friendship with Ali ends. You were so caught up in the past, that you failed to realize that Ali was a negative in your life. Even though you canât help but miss the bond that you had once upon a time, youâre excelling without her.
Satoru made sure that Ali paid for her behavior. He got law enforcement involved and she was penalized with a year in jail, and with a hefty fine that ensures she stays off your back. When she found out, she begged that youâd help her but you refused. You listened to Satoru for once, and left her to deal with the consequences of her actions.Â
Your social life couldnât be better without her. Youâve gotten close to Shoko, and now consider her as your best friendâ And your friendship is so much different than the one you had with Ali. You notice itâs much healthier than whatever you had going on with Ali. Shoko genuinely cares about you, and you feel appreciated by her side.Â
Romantically, things couldnât be better either. Satoru loves you like no other, and he lets it be known. He treats you like his queen, always spoiling you and letting you be right even when youâre so clearly wrong.Â
Though thereâs something wrong with him lately. Heâs been acting odd around you, and you canât help but feel nervous⊠As if youâve done something to upset him. So it comes as a shocker when he invites you on a date out of the blue.
âWhere are we going?â You question him as you look out the window. Heâs singing along to his favorite song as he drives you to your destination. He completely ignores you, which makes you nervous. âSatoru.â
âI told you, itâs a surprise!â He exclaims, and his tone takes some weight off your shoulders. He sounds playful⊠So it canât be too bad, right?
âCanât you give me a hint?â You question, and Satoru shakes his head. Heâs smirking, which annoys you. He has something up his sleeve and itâs written all over his face.
You finally get to your destination, and no matter how much you bug him for an answer, he refuses to give you a response. You furrow your brows when you realize youâre at the beach. Itâs a little late for a beach day, so youâre questioning what youâre doing at the place.
âWhat are we doing here?â You ask him, but he refuses to give you an answer. Instead, he grabs your hand when you exit the car and drags you along. Youâre not letting him get away so easily. âYouâre so quiet today, what are you up to?â
Your eyes narrow as you see an odd scene at the beach. Are those⊠Candlelights? Rose petals? Oh, someone is getting proposed to, thatâs good for them. It makes you wonder when Satoru will do the sameâ Itâs not like youâre expecting it any time soon but seeing that makes you wonder.
Then it hits you. Satoru makes an abrupt stop and gets on one knee. Yes, someone is getting proposed to but itâs not a random stranger. Satoru is proposing to you. Your jaw drops, quickly followed by a gasp of pure disbelief.
âI love you so muchââ He begins his speech and youâre pinching yourself to check if this is reality. Two years ago you wouldnât have imagined that Satoru would be proposing to you of all people. Heâs in love with you.Â
âYes!â You exclaim, even when he isnât close to being done to asking his question. âIâd love to marry you!â
Tears of joy well up in his eyes as he slides the very heavy rock on your finger. It fits just perfectly. Satoru stands up from the ground, kissing you ever so lovingly. After all, you are doing him the grand honor of becoming his wifeâ Allowing him to become your husband.Â
He picks you up from the ground, spinning you around as if you were his prized possession. He tells you over and over again, âI love you, dear. So much.â
âPut me down, Satoru!â You chuckle, and he does as you ask of him. But he doesnât let you go before filling your face with kisses first.
You wouldâve never imagined that youâd end up here with him, but you did. And you couldnât have asked for a better destiny.
#jujutsu kaisen#jjk#jujutsu kaisen x reader#gojou satoru x reader#jujutsu kaisen gojo#satoru gojo#gojo saturo#gojo satoru#jjk gojo#gojo smut#gojo x reader#gojo jjk#jujutsu gojo#gojo satoru smut#gojo x you#jujutsu kaisen satoru#satoru smut#dividers by cafekitsune#satoru angst#gojo angst
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
RIDICULOUS â L.N
in which lando can longer cope with you laughing at the mere idea of being with him, and you realise it wouldnât be that ridiculous. but it may be all too late.
warnings; nswf, smut, unprotected sex, friends to lovers, lando in the friend zone, implied that reader is a year or two older than lando, little bit of angst, choking, soft dom!lando, silly reader, overstimulation i guess, lotta praise, oral, fluff at the end if you squint
lando was infatuated the moment he met you.
it took a while to realise how strongly he felt, considering he met you at arguably the most chaotic time of his life.
his first year in f1, carlos his teammate; meaning you were around every race from the start, to this day.
he wanted his own photographer after a mere few interactions with you, but quickly realised he only cared about photos because you were the one occasionally taking them.
carlos signing for ferrari meant lando was losing two people; his teammate and you. his friend.
heâd jokingly asked you to jump ship, work for him instead. if only you knew how serious he was being.
you never looked at lando the way he looked at you. he was like a friends annoying little brother, one you couldnât help but pity and adore.
he made you laugh, was fun to be around. a change from the personalityâs you would come across in the paddock. it was no shock to you that carlos built a bond with him â as did you.
since joining ferarri you didnât see the brit as much as youâd like, not that carlosâ new teammate was a let down. charles was lovely. you didnât feel invasive taking shots of the pair of them.
but you still kept it touch. occasional group outings, dinners and celebrations. you werenât oblivious to the way he always made time for you. but you were naive to the deeper meanings.
his flirtations were nothing of concern, to you it was a running joke. amongst many of you; you didnât think lando actually wanted anything from you beyond platonic.
he could handle rejection. but being laughed at? he could only cope for so long.
âhe begged me to invite you tonight,â carlosâ words were teasing, directed towards you yet his eyes rested on lando; out for dinner with a few other team members from mclaren carlos hadnât caught up with in a while.
melbourne was one of your favourite races for this very reason, having to get here so early meant you had time to catch up with those in the paddock away from the craziness.
landoâs eyes lifted from the menu he was reading; scoffing immediately, already prepared to jump on the defence â not giving you a chance to speak.
âi was making sure you hadnât forgotten anyone, y/n included.â lando corrected, flashing you a grin in the midst of his explanation, one you mirrored.
âiâd like to think my presence would be a given,â you huffed back at carlos; and lando felt a fool for allowing his heart to jump at the prospect of you also defending him.
âof course it is. just saying, lando was set on making sure youâd be here.â carlos smirked; eyes now on his own menu, pretending as if he wasnât attempting to stir the pot.
âhe misses you,â an engineer spoke up from besides lando, nudging the british driver who could only roll his eyes; not at all unfamiliar with being targeted with such banter. he copped it a lot worse when you were all on the same team.
âmhm, misses me. not carlos.â you grinned; practically bragged â nudging carlos this time; youâd grown a talent it seemed for redirecting the topic of conversation. trying too at least, and the way lando smirked made it clear he appreciated your efforts.
heâd nodded as well, confirming your words. in no way ashamed to admit he missed you more than the spaniard, while it didnât seem like there was any truth to his words with the playful smile on his face; the assumption couldnât be any closer to the truth.
âif you miss her so much you should go out for dinner just the pair of you,â carlos challenged quickly; earning an eye roll from yourself and a small giggle at the idea â oh the shit show that would be, you and lando out for dinner. you could read the headlines now.
lando caught the way you laughed, you however missed the way his eyes snapped to you in the moment. the way his smile faltered, merely from watching you completely dismiss and laugh at the idea of spending just a single dinner with him alone. whatâs so funny about that? could it really be the most absurd idea? no matter how many times you reacted in such a way it always stung.
he recovered almost instantly however, like he always does.
âwouldnât want to hurt your feelings, know you donât like to be left out.â lando mused; earning another laugh from you â one that was music to his ears, hearing you laugh at his jokes was always enough to have him holding his chin a little higher.
âoh iâd be more than happy to see you finally get out of the friend zone.â carlos regretted his words the moment they left his mouth, catching the way landoâs smile fell and jaw tensed â quickly realising his teasing may have gone too far.
your lack of reaction killed lando more than carlosâ words did, the way you barely battered an eyelash â completely unbothered while he sat here trying to not pop a blood vessel. he wanted to defend the relationship or friendship you had, but there wasnât much to defend.
because carlos was right, he was painfully stuck in the friend zone.
âhow much longer till you realise these jokes got old two years ago?â you sounded awfully unbothered as your gaze remained on your menu, only looking up when another engineer spoke up.
âitâs just a joke?â heâd asked in full seriousness, eyes flickering between yourself and lando. he wasnât on carlosâ side of the garage, always working on landoâs side. he barely interacted with you; only heard things through the grapevine.
âobviously.â you spoke as if it wasâŠobvious, and the laugh you let out wouldâve softened the blow of your words had lando not already heard this a thousand times.
âah, ah, ah. donât forget about silverstone.â carlos simply couldnât keep his mouth shut; bringing up the night where everyone was convinced you and lando spent the night together.
which would be valid if you actually had, but you hadnât. you went home together purely because you both were tired. he dropped you at your hotel room, didnât even come inside. somehow no one believed either of you when you squashed their suspicions that âlandoâs wish had finally come true.â
âdonât be ridiculous.â you scoffed, shaking your head ever so slightly. landoâs silence wouldâve been deafening if others werenât jumping in to speak, and maybe you wouldâve noticed his lack of input if you spared him a glance.
he was managing to muster a fake smile, it was almost painful. any amusement he was clinging too had vanished, wanting the conversation to be over with.
âitâs not ridiculous.â carlos huffed; and lando almost wanted to nod in agreement. thank him even. because it wasnât ridiculous, he didnât think so at least. it made sense to him. you made so much sense to him.
âit is.â the nail in the coffin, lando couldnât keep smiling anymore. you sounded oh so certain, all the while the smile hadnât left your face. âcome on now,â you added in exaggeration at carlosâ unconvinced face.
lando wasnât sure what you said next, he didnât want to hear it. he couldnât figure out why hearing all of this was suddenly unbearable, but before he knew it he was not so subtlety excusing himself â something about getting another drink, before standing up and bee lining to the bar.
the abrupt departure didnât halt anyone elseâs movements, conversations continuing and carlos joining in a debate with his cousin and his old mclaren press officer; while your attention got stuck on landoâs full glass ahead of you.
he didnât need another drink.
you watched as he weaved through the crowds, the way he failed to smile at anyone he passed by; the tension clear in his jaw; it almost appeared as if he was scowling.
it was funny, because your first thought was if you offended him. but you couldnât figure out what possibly could have; it was laughable how unaware you were of his feelings.
âiâll be back,â you excused yourself, standing up and following in landoâs directions without any hesitance; a slight frown on your face as you dodged people left and right to get to the bar.
you werenât sure why the prospect of upsetting him upset you so much, but the sudden urgency to check on him was too powerful to ignore.
ârude to not offer a girl a drink you know?â
landoâs eyes only shifted towards you for a mere couple of seconds when you made your presence known. he could count on one hand the amount of times he wished to be alone when you were near, but this was one of them.
he was drained, unable to fake any more smiles or shrug off any more comments. blame it on the jet lag.
âapologises,â he hummed; not offering you another glance which had your suspicions confirmed, your furrowed brow showing concern not that he could see. his blue eyes were focused ahead on the busy bartender.
âyou good?â you internally cringed as the words left your lips, unable to figure out a way to address the sudden mood without sounding overbearing or overstepping.
you watched as his shoulders tensed; as his eyes strategically continued to avoid you, only making the pit in your stomach feel deeper, as if it could swallow you whole.
âpeachy.â his sarcasm was clear, and while it would usually be a relief it wasnât laced with the usual humour. it was blunt, dismissive â and if you had any doubts left about being the reason for him running off, they were now squashed.
âdid i say somethingâ did carlos say something?â the questions stumbled out of your lips in concern, biting down on the inside of your cheek. âiâve tried to tell him to lay off with the jokes, itâs stupid i know.â you began to ramble.
lando finally let his gaze land on you, and the sight of your sympathetic eyes and worried frown had him feeling guilty. which was ridiculous, but suddenly he felt an urge to reassure you he was fine. that you hadnât said anything.
but you had.
âitâs not the jokes,â lando cut you off; hands running over his head, even letting out a laugh at how pathetic he sounded. he was going to continue, explain it further; but he stopped himself.
he couldnât. it was a can of worms that must remain shut.
you stood in silence for a moment, under the impression heâd keep speaking. but he didnât. leaving you with no explanation; just further confusion.
âno?â you hummed; eyebrows raising. âbecause i totally get if it is. itâs ridiculous how they keep going onââ you were rambling again, trying to make the situation better. attempting to ensure he felt heard, that he could speak to you about what was bothering him.
so oblivious to the fact you were just digging yourself a deeper hole.
there was that word again; ridiculous.
âis it? is it really that ridiculous?â lando couldnât stop the question from flying out of his mouth; only now turning to properly face you; in time to catch the dumbfounded look on your face from his question.
it took a few moments to try understand what he meant, coming up short as you stared at him clueless, lips parting to try come up with something to say but falling short.
âis what?â you mumbled, suddenly all confidence was gone. almost scared to hear the answer; purely because you recognised the doubt and regret illustrating his face.
but lando had nothing else to lose, youâve rejected him in front of everyone else without realising. whatâs once more?
âus. dinner us two, having gone home together in silverstone. this?â lando sighed out like it was obvious, hands waving between the pair of you.
because to him it was so obvious. the amount of times heâs almost asked you to join him for a meal, just the pair of you.
maybe if he had youâd see what he saw.
silverstone meant so much to him, having expected nothing from you but he thought about the taxi ride back to the hotel more than heâd like to admit. he couldâve sworn youâd been flirting with him that night.
he even thought it wouldâve been the start of something.
optimism was a curse however, because stupidly lando thought perhaps after finally expressing his feelings that maybe youâd reveal your hidden reciprocation. that maybe you were scared like him.
but instead all he could see was shock. and confusion. and fuck, was that sympathy?
âwhat?â it was a weak response, but all you could muster. you were attempting to find any other explanation for his words, to figure out what he could be implying.
lando had to laugh, shaking his head as he faced the bar again; hands running over his face as you quickly realised he was being fully serious.
âitâs notâ weâve neverâ i mean it would be weird.â word vomit, you didnât know what you were saying; usually so careful with your words you knew the moment lando looked at you in shock and offence youâd be haunted by that very sentence. ânot weirdâ but,â you attempted to fix your mistake, eyes screwing shut.
another laugh from him beat you to it however.
âridiculous. i got it,â lando spoke through a breath, sounding incredibly defeated which had your stomach dropping.
you struggled to find words to assure him, still attempting to process what heâd just told you. you hadnât ever looked at him in that way. he was always just⊠lando.
âlandoâŠâ you trailed off with a frown, only now starting to realise the position you both were now in.
the awkward tension was growing quickly and youâd never despised something so quickly. you refused to let this be the bitter end to your friendship.
âitâs fine. just drop it.â lando huffed, standing up straight; eyes finding yours once more. he didnât want you to feel bad, heâd accepted long ago that his chances of you feeling the same were slim.
you canât apologise for how you feel.
âno we should talk about it,â you disagreed, so much concern and care in your eyes it almost made him sick. he didnât need that from you. and the last thing he wanted to do was talk about how heâd spent years pining over you.
heâd kept it secret for a reason, to avoid this.
âiâll pass,â lando hummed; the half smile he mustered up did little to comfort you as he licked his bottom lip and glanced around the room. âiâm gonna head up,â he cleared his throat.
youâd gone to express your dismay with such thing, but he was walking off before you could get another word out; left alone at the bar dumbfounded and suddenly in need of a drink.
it would be quite sad to admit that one revelation could change your whole weekend. but it did.
youâve never had trouble sleeping, in fact the jet lag usually knocked you out. yet youâd spent the best of your time in melbourne thinking through every word lando said. looking back on every damn interaction the two of you shared.
you felt like an idiot. because suddenly it made a lot of sense, what you failed to realise in the moment fell together piece by piece.
an insight into his intentions for the effort heâd put into the friendship over the last couple years was eye opening, and while you were unsure as to how you hadnât assumed such thing sooner, you found yourself asking the question how it made you feel.
youâd be lying if you didnât have a few moments of giddiness as you recounted certain times. how he drove you home from pre-season testing one time because you didnât feel well. how he always got you flowers for your birthday.
suddenly your mind was consumed with the thought of lando every waking second. from the moment you entered the paddock on thursday you were looking for him. which didnât make sense considering you had plans to avoid him.
you didnât want to make things worse than they were. but for some reason he was the only thing on your mind, to the point it was becoming an issue as you tried to go about your work.
not once in your career had you been pulled up on anything, so when carlos questioned if you were okay friday afternoon â claiming you had been slacking, you knew you were fucked.
thereâs no way you felt the same. surely not.
you had to stand by what you said. itâd be weird?
he was lando. annoying lando who couldnât grow a speck of facial hair and flinched at the sight of fish.
except saturday, when you finally laid eyes on the driver again, it was cruel slap in the face of reality when you realised that was almost 5 years ago. youâd both changed. lando had changed.
you almost spiralled when you found yourself admiring the driver. had his mclaren top always been so tight around his biceps? had his skin always been so sun kissed? not to mention the way his curls sat atop his head.
you suddenly felt insane. youâd never looked at him in that light, never thought what if. but his confession had you a mess of thoughts, oneâs you had to run away from. causing you to spend the rest of the weekend hidden away in ferrariâs hospitality.
you could only hide for so long, carlos had won â which was enough to get your mind off of the british driver for a whole 4 minutes until they were up on the podium together.
work was your priority however, but you couldnât help but notice just how nicely lando photographs. you only ever focused on carlos, considering he paid your wage. but as you took shots and shots of the pair interacting before and after the podium from afar you couldnât help but note how lando was practically glowing.
your head was a mess, and as you now stood in a random club in melbourne, you had no idea what your next move was.
you couldnât exactly deny going out to celebrate when carlos had won. so your next wish was that lando simply wouldnât be in attendance.
but he was, and your eyes hadnât left him all night.
still having not spoken for days, you couldnât shake the urge to congratulate him. yet for some reason you were scared, you didnât trust yourself. fearing youâd say something youâd regret. which was a foreign feeling. lando was usually the easiest person for you to talk too.
ïżŒhowever you could only stand in the corner with a drink as your only company for so long. a sudden wave of confidence washing over you, or more so desperation to stop being so childish, causing you to down your drink before setting off towards the british driver.
it was when you were only a few metres from him that you realised you should probably have a game plan, and if he hadnât locked eyes with you there was a high chance you wouldâve backed out. turned around and walked away.
instead you were left to improvise.
âgood job today,â you smiled widely when you got into ear shot; unable to shake the tightness in your chest, feeling suddenly out of breath as if you had sprinted over here.
lando appeared much more relaxed than he had last time you spoke. which made sense. heâd put it on the podium, why wouldnât he be in a good mood?
âthank you,â the driver grinned, unable to be stumped when he was still running high off adrenaline. plus, he figured you would pretend the other evening never happened. which he would happily take.
your script ended there however. you had no idea what to say. or where to look, since when was eye contact with lando hard?
âimpressive from carlos,â lando managed to fill the silence, and you could feel the relief at the fact heâd saved you from creating an awkward silence.
âyeah, yeah i know. very proud of him. iâll never complain about pain again.â you spoke through a dry laugh; one he mirrored, your lips pursing as you attempted to think of something, anything, to fix the mess you found you guys in.
to apologise for your rudeness? to explain your mindset? to just talk. you needed to talk to him, for your own sanity.
âlook i just wantedââ you finally built the courage up to speak, but were interrupted as a blonde woman slid next to landoâs side, handing him a drink while doing so.
it shouldnât have shut you up so quickly, but it did â eyebrows raising as you attempted to figure out how to respond to the image in front of you. one youâd never seen before actually.
âline was long,â the girl hummed in explanation, and you only just caught landoâs sorry eyes as his attention turned to the girl next to him.
he would be lying if he said he didnât appreciate the lifeline that was the blonde heâd just met 20 minutes ago. he did not need to hear your reasonings as to why you should just remain friends, not tonight.
âiâll um, iâll talk to you later.â there was no way youâd try get your words out again, not when you barely spoke up the first time. yet for some reason, youâd hoped lando had insisted you could speak now.
instead left to watch as he nodded and offered you a small smile; practically sending you off on your way.
embarrassment was the one word to describe how you felt as you made your way to the nearest booth, attempting to hide away and let the darkness swallow you whole.
apart of you felt you should be grateful, maybe being interrupted was a saving grace. god knows what you were about to say, you definitely didnât. but right now you found yourself in the same position as you were 5 minutes ago.
it felt selfish. lando had practically admitted to having feelings for you, thatâs what you gathered at least, and youâd been unaware for years.
youâd been slightly uncertain in your feelings for five days and you felt as if you were losing your mind. you had no right for an explanation really, but you needed something. attempting to decipher everything to do with the main man of mclaren was giving you a headache.
although your vision became a bit clearer as you sat and watched him interact with the girl whoâd placed the drink in his hands.
it suddenly made sense why you hadnât seen him like this before. his attention was always on you, his efforts and time focused towards you if you were in arms reach.
which you couldnât help but feel grateful for as you sat and watched your new personal hell.
you didnât want to label it as jealousy. because that would be ridiculous, but it was beginning to be hard to watch the way lando whispered in her ear and grinned widely as he earned a laugh or two from the girl.
were you mad at the sight or mad at your own reaction? you werenât sure. it felt wrong, to feel so strongly when only a few days ago youâd laughed in his face about the prospect of being with him.
what was it they said about you only want what you canât have?
âit should be illegal for you to be sitting here moping after iâve won.â carlosâ voice snapped you from your thoughts, being met with the driver who slid into the booth opposite you, a sheepish smile forming on your features.
âiâm not moping.â you huffed, leaning back in your seat â attempting to look and feel relaxed, allow your tense shoulders to loosen, glancing back to lando once more before your attention was on the driver ahead of you.
âyou have been all week.â carlos disagreed, eyebrow raising as you frowned; not having a reply because he was right. and suddenly you felt horrible.
âiâm sorryâ thatâs the last thing you need with the couple weeks youâve had,â you sighed, head falling into your hands. it was as if you suddenly couldnât do anything right.
you missed the way carlos smiled, having looked at the direct reason of your problems moments prior.
âdonât apologise.â carlos dismissed, assuring you it was fine; and when you peaked up through your hands, the smile he was flashing you was enough to put your mind at ease. âiâm assuming lando said something.â
there it was. lando. again. back in your head. as if you ever got him out.
you only sighed, head falling back this time as you now stared at the ceiling. of course carlos knew.
âyou knew?â you huffed out, it clear you already knew the answer.
âeveryone does.â carlos chuckled, and you wish you too could take amusement from the situation. how comforting, this whole time youâve either appeared as an idiot or the biggest bitch.
âwhy wouldnât you tell me?â you practically whined, looking back at the driver once more; watching as he put his hands up in defence and innocence.
âi thought you knew.â carlos claimed, sounding so honest you couldnât question him â nor blame him. you shouldnât have needed someone to spell it out for you. plus, youâre not sure what you wouldâve done if you did know.
because it wasnât like you were handling the current situation very well.
you had no answer, just left him to watch as you sat wallowing in self pity. you shouldâve never chased him to the bar.
âheâll be fine. look at him, moving on already,â carlos attempt to comfort you was more like a punch to the stomach â because you had to stop yourself from glaring at him. had to stop yourself from spitting out how that wasnât what you wanted.
you didnât want that at all, and that thought was suffocating. you were in no place to come to terms with your feelings, but right now they seemed to be demanding to make themselves known.
âi need air.â you huffed as you stood up, thankful that you had taken notice of the smokers exit not too far from you.
the crisp air felt like a soothing blanket, hitting your skin the moment you got outside. the balcony was empty and finally you felt as if you could breathe; allowing your arms to rest against the railing as the music became muffled and the sound of melbourneâs night life filled your ears.
it felt stupid, staring across the city skyline as if it would answer your questions. maybe the stars could align and write out a solution for you, tell you what to do.
but with every passing second you didnât find any clarity or idea on what to do, how to feel. you shouldnât want him. you havenât wanted him before. it isnât fair to suddenly feel so drawn to him after unknowingly rejecting him for so long.
but it was the reality. youâd been exposed to the idea of lando wanting you; and with every passing moment it became clear to you it wasnât weird. it sounded fucking incredible.
the music suddenly filled your ears again, moments later becoming muffled as you became aware someone had joined you outside. it wasnât till they spoke that you tensed up.
âitâs cold out here,â his voice was instantly recognisable, you didnât need to look at him to know it was him.
âtoo hot in there.â you hummed simply in reply, feeling his presence next to you as he joined you in observing the city skyline; although you could feel his eyes burning into the side of your head.
falling into a comfortable silence was the last thing you expected, both too scared to speak up and face the inevitable. if you could stay like this forever you would. it was the first few moments of peace youâd known all week.
âwe can pretend the other night never happened. i donât want things to be weird.â lando spoke, words so soft as if youâd break. as if he needed to be careful with you.
his whole demeanour had you frowning, turning to face him. he shouldnât be fixing this mess, nor prioritising your feelings over his. not when both of you had neglected his for so long.
you parted your lips to disagree, to tell him that was the last thing you wanted. you wanted to talk about it. itâs all you needed to do.
but quickly you realised that was contradicting your initial thoughts.
âif thatâs what you want,â you spoke through a breath; unable to understand how you still couldnât find the right thing to say when this very conversation has been the only thing on your mind all week.
it was landoâs turn to stay quiet, you watched as he thought through what to say; practically seeing his mind tick.
âi just want to know why itâs so ridiculous to you.â lando practically blurted the question out, as if he was almost afraid he wouldnât say it ever if he didnât now. itâd been weighing on his mind, it killed him that he had no explanation as to why you were so against the idea of him in anyway that branched further than platonic.
and while you wanted to give him an answer, you didnât have one.
âi donât know.â you answered truthfully. âi never looked at you that way lando iâŠâ you trailed off, eyes getting lost in his when you realised just how close he was. your admiration these past couple days from afar was one thing; but up close was a whole new ball park. âyou were like this little kid, i donât know,â you struggled to articulate your thoughts.
âyeah five years ago,â landoâs response was quick and blunt; even with the chuckle that escaped under his breath, it didnât lessen the intensity in his eyes that were now pouring into yours. it was as if heâd been wanting to say such thing for years. he was challenging you.
youâd gulped at his words, because he was right and youâd only come to terms with such thing these past few days.
âyeah.â you mumbled in agreement, suddenly feeling small under his gaze; it was all so new. youâd been in this position with lando countless of times, why did you suddenly feel as if every nerve inside of you was being set alight? why did you feel as if you couldnât dare look away from his eyes.
you could spot the moment lando realised the change in your behaviour, the way his eyes flickered across your face; his lips parting ever so slightly as he took a breath.
he recognised the look on your face, purely because itâs how he would always look at you.
âit fucking sucked you know? having to sit there while you laugh at the idea of spending the night with me. even just going on a date with me.â lando hummed, voice barely above the whisper because with the minimal distance he didnât need to speak any louder. although if he spoke any quieter youâd be worried you wouldnât hear him over the sound of your rapid heartbeat.
you didnât know what to say, head tilting aside ever so slightly as you watched him take a step closer; dangerously close now yet for some reason you found yourself leaning further towards his frame â and the moment you let your eyes flicker to his lips you knew you were done for.
âmâ sorry,â you mumbled; eyes pouring into his once more as if that would ensure he knew you meant it, but he didnât want nor need an apology. but god would he love an opportunity to change your mind.
it was as if you could act without thinking again the moment his hand cupped your cheek, lips pressed onto yours in a rush that had your hand moving to find a grip in his shirt.
you didnât know how to describe it, but suddenly everything made sense as your lips moved together in perfect sync.
the moment almost came crumbling down however when lando pulled away only a few moments later, heavy breaths as his hand remained on your cheek; eyes looking down at you as if you were gods greatest gift to earth.
but as much as this felt like heaven, lando knew he couldnât risk this just being a one time thing. he refused to get a taste of you just to be starved again.
âif you donâtââ lando barely got his words out, you had him read; could see the doubt beginning to creep in. as much as he hated being vulnerable it was almost self perseveration.
thankfully however you didnât give him much time to worry, shaking your head before tugging him closer to you â reconnecting your lips with such certainty lando had no room to fear or doubt you.
it was all he needed, the lid was off and he finally could act on his wants â hands moving to grip your waist as he trapped you between himself and the railing, lips moving against yours without a care in the world that anyone could walk out and see.
it was as if the kiss was the answer to all your questions, suddenly it all made sense. lando made sense; you felt stupid, how had you denied yourself of such thing for so long?
your hands were tangled in his hair, his were clutching your sides for dear life â large hands pawing at your waist then your hips, having to stop himself from getting too greedy and travelling any further.
so caught up in him you quickly realised you needed to breathe, pulling away momentarily; yet you had no time to recover as lando only busied himself with peppering kisses on your jaw.
naturally you tilted your head back, a sigh of content escaping you as you invited him to explore more of you. and lando was not going to ignore such thing, soft kisses now pressed to the skin of your neck.
suddenly you were incredibly aware of the closeness, the way his body was pressed against yours; the cold railing behind you doing little to cool your hot skin; his knee pressing between your thighs having your eyes fluttering shut.
heaven was the only way to describe it.
but really you were on the smokers balcony of a crowded melbourne club, a reality that hit the pair of you as the door swung open and laughter and chatter was suddenly heard.
your eyes flickered to the group who appeared, lando regrettably lifting his head and glancing over his shoulder. the group was unbothered by your presence, you werenât sure the pair of you were even noticed.
landoâs grip had tightened on your waist ever so slightly, as if you could slip away from him like the moment had.
âwe should get out of here,â you spoke through heavy breaths as your eyes met his, watching as his lit up with both relief and eagerness. he only nodded, taking a step backwards as his hands ran over his now crinkled shirt.
the pair of you may had gotten yourselves together in those few seconds, but as you worked your way through the crowded club towards the exit, it was quite clear what had occurred.
the elevator ride only caused swollen lips and messy hair, and you struggled to keep your hands off of him once in the back of a taxi â kissing him was addictive, thatâs the only thing you could think of right now.
the silence wasnât awkward as you stumbled into his hotel room; only the sounds of quiet laughter as he struggled to find his room key. small curses escaping his mouth as he failed to move in the urgency he was currently feeling.
it was messy the way you both discarded your shoes and belongings, a few words and mumbles exchanged before he was tugging you into his chest again â lips once more reconnected.
the space allowed you to wrap your arms around his neck this time, body practically melting into his hold. you wanted to apologise again, explain your thoughts over the last few days, how your change of heart had occurred.
you werenât even sure it was a change of heart; more so just now thinking about new possibilities.
but lando seemed to be the thing that could put those thoughts at bay, finally your mind was silent â all senses consumed with the man in front of you.
you werenât sure which wall heâd backed you against but you didnât care; welcoming the familiar feeling of his lips on your neck once more â taking the few seconds of your brain not being foggy to tug on the end of his shirt before trying to push it up his body.
he got the memo, ridding himself of his shirt and you could feel your breath get caught in your throat at the sight of his toned torso.
âwhat do you want?â landoâs question was matched with an intensity that almost had you squirming, his knee pushing between your thighs once more as you peered up at him.
you were suddenly lost for words, unsure how to vocalise what you wanted.
him. just him. anything he had to offer.
the feeling of his finger running up the side of your leg gave you plenty of ideas; but you were too flustered to articulate such thing.
the sight of you dumbfounded had him letting out a breathy chuckle, eyebrows raising in expectance â yet somehow it just had you squeezing your legs together.
âanything.â you mumbled, cheeks a tint of pink as he only smirked at your answer; you hadnât realised how desperate you sounded. you werenât sure youâve ever sounded so needy.
âgotta be more specific pretty,â his grin told you he was revelling in your flustered state. how could he not? his mind was running wild with plans to have you a needy mess all for him.
the term of endearment was new, a boundary that had never been crossed in your friendship; yet it sounded so natural. what wasnât natural was the way your heart seemed to flutter at the compliment.
âwant me to touch you?â lando was almost mocking you as his hand moved to push your hair back out of your face, cupping the side of your head while doing so to ensure your eyes stayed trained on him â and the mere act had you falling further into submission.
it was pathetic, you were somehow able to identify such thing â standing here with parted lips and wide eyes, having nodded at his words almost too eagerly. you needed to control yourself, at least for now; heâd barely touched you yet.
âwhat do you want?â your words were no where near as confident as his, but you werenât complaining; the confidence suited him, it only had you wanting him more.
you watched as his shoulders lifted in a slight shrug, attempting to keep your mind off his finger that was dangerously close to the hem of your skirt.
âwant to ruin you so youâll only ever think of me if another man touches you.â lando was honest with his answer, you hadnât expected such words to escape his mouth. such bluntness, what sounded like a promise had your knees feeling weak â the idea sounding perfect to you.
but he wasnât finished.
âwant you to cum on my fingers.â he added quietly, your legs spreading ever so slightly as his hand finally ventured under your skirt. âthen my tongue,â he practically chimed; head ducking down to your neck now, his hot breath fanning your skin.
thinking was only getting harder, his words were turning your mind into a puddle, much like the state of your undergarments.
âthen my cock.â he concluded before paying extra attention to the skin on your neck, kissing intently as you let out a shaky breath.
attempting to process such words from him was difficult, but you were quick to figure out it sounded incredible to you.
âhm?â his hum was a taunt, head lifting to look at you once more, watching as you nodded quickly.
âplease,â you practically whimpered, god youâd get on your knees and beg. lando almost groaned from the word leaving your lips alone, the way you were looking up at him with doe eyes had a grin forming on his face, one you mirrored for a brief moment.
the man couldnât believe his eyes, a sight heâd dream of too many times was in front of him in the flesh and he wanted nothing more but to make sure you too would never forget these moments.
his lips returning to yours almost had you failing to notice the way his hand slipped under your skirt, finding your soaked panties with ease. he groaned into your mouth as he realised how wet you were, your only reply a slight tug on his curls.
light and teasing touches were only tolerable for so long, you could deal with his fingers dancing around your clothed folds while his lips stayed on yours â but when he pulled away your breaths became irregular, clinging to every ounce of patience you had.
you were about to whine when his hand pushed your panties to the side, slipping a digit inside of you without warning was enough to have you choking out a moan â hand flying to grip his bicep to ensure your legs wouldnât give out on you.
lando was watching you as if you were gods gift to the earth, thumb settling on your clit naturally that within seconds of him getting to work your eyes were fluttering shut â head falling back against the wall.
âyouâre soaked baby,â his words were barely audible; too in awe of you, but you still managed to catch them as you nodded ever so slightly.
âfor you,â you breathed out â not that it needed clarifying, but the reassurance had the driver smirking proudly, even rewarding you as suddenly a second finger slipped inside of you.
for him. lando would never had thought that would ever be possible. if he wasnât so focused on getting you off heâd be replaying those words in his mind again, and again.
suddenly it was becoming hard to keep quiet, strings of moans and whimpers escaping you in succession, causing landoâs pants to feel incredibly tight. but that was the last thing on his mind, holding you against the wall with the only goal of having you come undone in his grasp.
his name sounded heavenly as you moaned it, so much so lando thought no one else should ever speak it again â nothing would compare to that.
âlook at me.â landoâs demand was so calm you almost missed it, eyes still fluttered shut as your thighs squeezed around his hand. despite hearing him you couldnât act, control of your body slipping away ever so quickly with the way his thumb was circling your sensitive bud.
landoâs breathy laugh wasnât enough to capture your attention either, his touch was all your mind could focus on. so it was when his free large hand trailed up your body to wrap around your neck that your eyes fluttered open.
his eyes were inquisitive, clearly attempting to gage a reaction to the action which had your lips parting despite having no pressure applied. however it was the way you clenched around his fingers that told him enough.
the slight squeeze of your neck was enough to draw a moan out of you, and lando could only hum in content. you were fucking perfect.
it was quickly becoming overwhelming, pleasure suddenly building so quickly â eyes pouring into his as you struggled to form words.
âclose,â was all you managed out; landoâs nod was in sync with his curled fingers â your nails digging into his skin as he brushed the spot that had your legs almost giving out.
you were holding onto him for dear life, moans growing louder and whinier as your vision started to become starry despite having your eyes open.
âlet go baby,â his words were enough to push you over the edge, releasing onto his fingers as you practically panted his name like it was a prayer.
lando had concluded a long time ago that he couldnât fall for you more than he already had; but as he watched you come undone, he realised heâd been wrong. your beauty truly knew no ends â and he was only now more eager to watch your face contort in pleasure again and again.
admiration filled your own eyes as they opened once more to peer up at him, flushed cheeks and a sheepish smile spreading on your face as you attempted to catch your breath.
âyouâre incredible,â lando couldnât stop the praise from escaping him, and watching the way your smile grew had him feeling no regret either; no shame like he usually would when a compliment perhaps too sentimental slipped passed his guard.
however this time it was reciprocated, you could see the meaning behind it â not dismissing it as a friendly comment, instead it had your already flushed cheeks reddening further.
âyou are.â you spoke like it was obvious, even letting out a small giggle â sounding somewhat out of breath but such thing was granted. your arms moved to wrap around his neck again, both to ensure he stayed close and because your only strength was in your arms.
your legs already felt like jelly.
heâd read the situation with ease, because suddenly his hands were hooked under your thighs â halting you up as your legs instinctively wrapped around his torso.
your skirt was bunched at your hips, ruined panties almost shameful. your hands spread out against his toned back, unable to help yourself from feeling as much of his flexed muscles as possible.
messy kisses were exchanged as he moved you through the hotel room, lips lazily moving against each other before your back was hitting his plush mattress.
the sight above you rendered you speechless, no shame in your eyes raking over his frame as he stood at the foot of the bed â you quickly felt overdressed.
your own hands found the hem of your shirt, peeling it off your body, no bra meaning your upper body was exposed to the brit.
you could visibly see him gulp, his eyes dancing over your half naked frame as he took a few deep breaths; tongue flicking over his bottom lip. the man even shook his head in disbelief, unable to help himself when you invitingly leant back on your elbows.
he was on top of you within moments, situating between your spread legs as his head found the exposed skin of your chest, open mouth kisses pressed to your neck, slowly making their way to your breasts.
âyouâre fucking beautiful.â heâd practically grumbled, your fingers finding his curls once more you could only whimper as his teeth tugged on your skin momentarily.
âwant to make you feel good,â you whispered, unable to ignore his hard on pressing into your hip â the feeling had you squirming, keen to feel more of him.
heâd shushed you however, not being derailed as his kisses moved to your stomach now, your head hitting the pillow as you tried to control your breathing â left to stare up at the ceiling momentarily.
âi feel amazing,â lando spoke matter of factly, his hands spreading over your thighs as he parted them to his liking â your eyes flickering down, not expecting to meet his blue ones.
he looked like he was ready to devour you, it made your core practically ache â offered no relief as your legs could only squeeze against his hold.
he was quick in removing your skirt, and your panties â having you bare for him before he was hooking your legs over his shoulders. but his urgency seemed to still there, kisses pressed to your inner thighs instead of your glistening cunt.
âlando,â youâd whined, using all your strength to ensure you could keep your eyes on him, a pretty sight that was rendering you impatient. âplease,â the plea left you in desperation.
you could still feel his breath on your thighs, not where you needed him, and when you heard him chuckle lowly your eyes had to press shut to keep your composure.
âoh baby,â he dragged out; cooing so sweetly your eyes narrowed when they met his again. âneedy little thing,â he commented; quirking an eyebrow your way and you couldnât argue, only pout.
he wasnât wrong, much to your surprise. youâd never found yourself in such position, needing and craving someone so badly. depending on someone else for pleasure was practically foreign.
ânot gonna make you beg,â lando ended your torture, if you could even call it that, mouth connecting with your cunt and your jaw dropped as his tongue quickly found your clit.
you were already sensitive, back arching immediately as you moaned out softly â hands flying to find his curls again.
pure ecstasy was the only way to describe the feeling, his tongue working so perfectly that you were fighting to not press your thighs against his head â body moving with every action, his hand moving to press down on your hips and keep you in place.
your eyes caught his own for a mere few moments, seeing him look up at you however had your own eyes rolling back; too sensitive to stay cool with the onslaught of pleasure.
he was everywhere, consuming every one of your senses â tugging on his curls your only outlet as you moaned and shook.
you werenât ever sure youâd be able to cum from head alone, but you were about to find out â pathetically close already, stomach tightening having barely recovered from your first orgasm.
you forced yourself to gaze down at him again, wanting to see his head between your thighs â watch the way his arms flexed as he held you in place with ease.
his tongue was flicking between your folds, then paying attention to your clit; never missing a beat, it flood over you suddenly.
you could no longer hear the sounds you were making as you came again, back arching off the bed once more â seeing stars, lando sure to catch the sight as you came undone for him again.
it was a blur the next few moments, not present as lando shifted your legs off of his shoulders and back onto his knees, but once you realised the sight in front of you it didnât take long for you to push yourself up the bed so you were sitting up.
âyou good?â landoâs voice was soft now, ensuring you were okay; not oblivious to your tired body. you nodded however, a lazy smile spreading on your lips in reassurance, hooded eyes taking him all in. you just wanted to feel all of him.
âperfect,â you breathed, leaning forward to connect your lips without another word. it was greedy, a few moments of no contact and you were drawn to him again. you just wanted more and more, and the way landoâs hands flied to your waist showed it was truly reciprocated.
you pushed him slightly to sit down, switching positions so he was resting against the headboard now â it didnât take much force, he was letting you guide him, hands delicately roaming your fatigued frame.
climbing into his lap your hands made quick work of his pants, unzipping them and moving all material out of the way to finally free his hardened cock.
lando moaned into your mouth the moment your hand wrapped around his length, pumping a few times was the relief heâd been ignoring since you entered the hotel room.
he struggled to kiss back for a mere moment, causing your eyes to flutter open, lips curving upwards at the sight of his face contorted in pleasure.
fuck you could get used to that image.
âcome on baby,â lando rasped out as his hands found a home on your hips â guiding them upwards ever so slightly. âfuck yourself on my cock yeah?â there was a slight smugness in his tone; the type that had you falling into submission once more, despite him vocalising your plans.
your arms moved to hold onto his shoulders, enough to help steady you as you guided your hips on top of his, lowering yourself down onto his cock.
the pair of you gasped in sync, your forehead resting against his as you took him all in at once, jaw going slack from the stretch.
you stilled, needing time to adjust to his size â and lando had no complaints, the feeling of you wrapped around him having him content.
âyou feel fucking incredible,â the driver rasped, lips brushing against yours as he spoke; and you could only whimper at first, a few deep breaths escaping you.
âso big,â you mumbled; having to swallow intently before mustering the energy to begin moving â eyes pouring into his as you began to ride him.
the closeness and intimacy would usually scare you; heck, it would normally terrify him. yet somehow it felt right, as if this wasnât the first time between the pair of you.
your nails dug into his skin once more as you shifted up and down, landoâs hands only on your skin to ensure he had a hold on you â letting you set the pace as he watched, jaw tense and eyes adoring.
âfuck lando,â you whined when heâd bottom out once more, hitting a spot so deep inside of you that your toes were curling â the sound of his own grunts and moans only adding to the pleasure.
âdoing so good for me gorgeous,â his praise only encouraged you, words so delicate. you sped up as much as you could, not too fast but with more urgency than before; as much as your sore body would allow.
it wasnât long before you started to tire, your moans grew whinier but you didnât need to say anything â a choked moan escaping your throat when his hips suddenly thrusted up to meet your movements.
you hadnât thought you could feel more full but you were wrong, and lando didnât relent as he started fucking up into you.
you were like a doll in his hands, as he started to practically move you up and down his cock; his own hips continuing to thrust up you couldnât keep up, eyes screwing shut as your mouth fell agape.
âfuck lando fuck,â you were practically chanting; a string of curses and his name; it all felt too good. fucking perfect, you couldnât comprehend any of it.
âtake it baby.â he grunted, and you nodded so quickly as if youâd ever disappoint him, fingers reaching to his back and nails dragging across the skin â his thrusts harsh, not slow but not too quick that you wouldnât have time to feel every inch of him.
your head was thrown back, exposing your bare chest further to him â which lando made the most of for the time being, lips ducking down and attaching to one of your nipples for a few moments.
but as your sounds got louder he needed to be able to see your face clearly, hand moving up your back and tangling in your hair to force you to look at him.
âopen your eyes princess,â he practically demanded, and at this point youâd do anything he said without question; eyes fluttering open to look at him.
his stamina was impressive, not surprising, still bouncing you on his cock as if it was nothing â but the way his breaths got shaky and his hooded eyes revealed he was feeling the pleasure like you were.
âwhoâs making you feel this good?â landoâs question escaped him without much thought; he just needed to hear you say it. wanted to revel in the fact he had you in such a state. your praise and reassurance held such a high value to him.
âyou, lando, you,â you whined out in response â and you felt his hand move back to your hip, needing to use your own strength now to keep your head upright. âfeels so good,â you told him â squeezing him as you did so.
heâd groaned at the feeling, almost having cum on the spot; thankfully he didnât, because he needed to see you fall apart one more time.
âwant to cum again yeah? that you want?â his mouth seemed to know no ends, the taunting only making your stomach grow tighter as you nodded to the best of your ability.
his breaths were heavy now, hands travelling to your ass as he used that as his grip of your body instead.
âwanna hear you say it,â lando grumbled â head ducking into the exposed skin of your neck, more kisses pressed onto your skin and the thought of marks being there from the amount of attention heâd paid to it was the last thing on either of your minds.
you were struggling now, too fucked out to process his words as quickly as heâd like â so much so a harsher thrust upwards had you aware you needed to answer him, yet you already forgot what he said.
âtoo fucked out to form words baby?â lando teased now that he knew he had your attention; and he chuckled once more when you shook your head quickly. âwant to hear you say it.â he repeated, eyes piercing yours.
âwannaâ cum again,â your words were laced with desperation, needing to take a breath between sentences as his cock spread you open. âplease let me cum,â
the british driverâs hum of satisfaction turned into a moan of pleasure at your plea, sounding and looking so pretty for him, it was clear youâd done enough as you felt his hand snake down between your bodies to your clit.
your vision went white practically immediately, almost yelping from how sensitive you were; thrown over the edge with little warm as you came on his dick â practically screaming his name as you did so.
lando came inside you merely a few seconds later, jaw slack from the sight of you and the way your walls squeezed him once more â only now was his thrusts sloppy as you both rode out your highs.
you were practically limp in his lap, forehead pressed against his shoulder as his own head rested against the headboard; heavy and irregular breaths filling the silence.
his hand moved to your head, fingers running through the strands of your hair comfortingly, the action causing you to hum in appreciation.
both of you were content with the silence, purely because neither of you knew exactly what to say. what to do. this was unexpected, to say the least.
you sat up straight after a couple minutes however, eyes meeting his ones; noticing the lack of intensity and confidence they held prior.
he was studying you as well, attempting to not spiral into a âwhat now.â
this meant a lot to him, he wouldnât put that on you â that wouldnât be fair. but you already had a good idea.
âi was wrong.â you finally managed to say what had been on the tip of your tongue, offering a small smile as his eyebrows raised in question.
he didnât fully understand.
âabout this. us. not making sense. being ridiculous.â you clarified, and the realisation washed over his features. you could feel him tense up slightly beneath you â shaking his head quickly.
âwe donât have to talk about it right now,â he assured in certainty. he didnât want you to feel obligated to protect his feelings because you slept together.
which you appreciated, it was cute. he was thoughtful â which shouldnât be a surprise.
âiâm not promising anything,â you clarified, dismissing him this time; you didnât feel obligated at all. you werenât saying youâd be his girlfriend and expected flowers when you woke up, but you needed him to know you no longer stood by what you said. you were also relieved to be able to articulate your thoughts. âbut i was wrong.â you hummed.
a lazy smile spread on his features at that, acting like a catalyst for your own. a mumble of an okay and laughter was exchanged, before his lips were on yours again; a gentle kiss this time.
one you could certainly get used too.
ââ
a/n: 615 days later and iâve finally finished another fic. hope yâall r still there đđ
incredibly sorry for my inactivity and special shout out to everyone who has continued to support me despite the radio silence??? i love u
anyways i donât love this but the fact i had the motivation to see it through was enough. hoping itâll ease me back into writing and getting back up to standard, so apologises that itâs a little rusty đ«¶đŒđ«¶đŒ
what hasnât changed is that itâs currently unedited and the ending is rushed hehe
as always feedback is always very much appreciated love u all mwahhh xoxo
#f1 smut#f1 x reader#f1 imagine#x reader#f1#lando norris angst#lando norris smut#lando norris x reader#lando norris fic#lando norris one shot#f1 angst#f1 one shot#lando norris#lando norris imagine
4K notes
·
View notes
Note
can i mc reader and sylus where mc ends up in hospital after a mission gone wrong and sylus shows up but she wants him to leave in case someone sees him there
Careless
Pairing - Sylus x f!MC
Summary - You landed yourself in the hospital overnight after a mix up at HQ had you fighting too many Wandererâs alone. Youâre already bummed about being stuck at Akso, so the feeling of dread when Sylus turns up unexpectedly only adds to your unease.
Word Count - 2.3k
Warnings - Set in a hospital. Angst and fluff.
The incessant beeping of medical machinery echoing throughout the ward was getting to your sore head.
Akso Hospital was rammed full of casualties and emergencies, seeing as it was a Friday night. You felt a bit out of place amongst the partygoers and adventurous folk who had taken their fun a little too far.
In your opinion, you didnât really need to be here. The eggplant coloured bruise on the right side of your forehead definitely looked a lot worse than it felt, but the doctors werenât buying your claims that you werenât in any pain.
Likely because you were wincing when youâd said it.
A night under their watch was what the doctor ordered, and it wasnât up for discussion. You were just relieved that Doctor Zayne was working away for a week. Heâd have checked you in indefinitely and scheduled an hour long lecture on why you needed to be more careful.
A mix up at HQ had the system only requesting that you attend a spontaneous Wanderer attack in Linkon Library. Just one had been reported, but seven of the ruthless bastards had accosted you the minute you stepped foot in the evacuated building.
Confident that you could handle them, you didnât bother calling in for more Hunters. As it turned out, that confidence was misplaced, and the last thing you remembered before blacking out was a loud screeching sound. You had no idea what it was, but it hadnât been important in your unconscious state.
When you eventually awoke in the hospital, Jenna had been hanging over you, immediately giving you the third degree for continuing alone. You shouldâve known that the alert for only your assistance had been a mistake in the system, and you shouldâve insisted that someone accompany you no matter what it had said.
She made sure to drill that into your head more than once.
Admittedly, you were glad to see the back of her once she had finally left. Your head was starting to throb with the volume of her voice, and all you wanted was the bliss of being unconscious again.
It was late now, and you were exhausted. Sleep was looking to be impossible tonight, however. There were several other patients on the same ward, all admitted with varying ailments. The injured man opposite you had done nothing but stare coldly from the moment he was wheeled in in a full leg cast.
You tried to speak to him. You offered him a polite smile, which was met with a sneer. Whatever his problem with you was, it was beginning to get on your nerves.
You just wanted to go home.
âMiss,â a softly spoken nurse greeted as she approached your bed. âThereâs a visitor here to see you.â
You frowned, wondering if you heard her correctly over the hustle and bustle of the ward. It was well past visiting hours, and you couldnât think of anyone other than your colleagues who knew that you were even at the hospital.
The man with the broken leg frowned, too. âWhat? She gets special treatment because sheâs a so-called hero? I should get visiting rights, too!â
âWould you like me to let him in?â The nurse asked, ignoring the grumbling patient.
Him. That didnât exactly narrow things down.
âUhh,â you faltered, a little unsure. You didnât want to cause any issues with the other patients. âAre you sure?â
The nurse nodded and smiled, though it looked a bit forced. It almost seemed like she was desperate for you to say yes to your mystery visitor.
âOkay,â you finally agreed.Â
The look of relief on her face was not lost on you. She quickly hurried away to retrieve whoever came to see you, leaving you to endure the displeasure from the man opposite.
âI used to be a mailman, you know? If it werenât for me, people wouldnât have had their mail. Do I get special treatment, though? No, of course not. You Hunters get all the glory and adoration. And Iâll tell you another thingââ
âYouâve told her plenty.â
Prominent footsteps sounded from the doorway, the atmosphere immediately becoming heavy and tense. You almost choked on absolutely nothing at the sight of him.
Sylus.
Your eyes flared, heart hammering against your ribcage like a drum. He couldnât be here. The risk was far too great.
âI wasnât talking to you,â the grumpy man sneered back, looking him up and down, ââŠvampire.â
It was a colourful insult, and one that made your unwelcome companion chuckle. âIf youâll excuse us,â he began, the swirling red vines of his Evol appearing to drag the manâs cubicle curtain to a close at a leisurely pace. âMailman.â
To your relief, there was no backlash from the irritated patient across the room. Although that did make you wonder if he wasnât retaliating by his own choice, or if Sylus had silenced him somehow. The latter wouldnât have surprised you.
âWhat on earth are you doing here?!â you hissed quietly. âYou canât be here, Sylus.â
Crimson eyes didnât meet yours, his cold gaze set only on the bandages around your head as he approached your bedside, closing your curtain behind him. He didnât quite look like himself. His hands were balled into fists at his sides, green and blue veins prominently making an appearance.
âIâll think twice before taking advice from a woman who was very recently knocked unconscious amidst a 7v1 Wanderer fight,â he rebuked monotonously.Â
You scoffed. âIâm fine, if thatâs why you came. Feel free to go back toââ
âFine?â His face quickly turned from emotionless to severely unamused as he cut you off sharply. âThatâs quite the contradiction, sweetie.â
You raised an eyebrow barely high enough for him to see your questioning expression. The gesture hurt, which wasnât helping your case. âTo what?â
He dragged a plastic chair towards your bed before sitting down, his ankles crossed in front of him. You couldnât really read his demeanour. He almost seemed cross with you.
âTo what I saw from Mephisto,â he responded tightly.
Mephisto.Â
That explained the screeching you heard before you slipped into unconsciousness. âAnd what exactly was Mephisto doing there?â
Sylus merely shrugged, offering nothing verbal in response. The lackadaisy gesture did nothing but piss you off. Youâve told him countless times to stop sending Mephisto out to keep tabs on you, and each time it seemed to fall on deaf ears.Â
He clearly was not pleased with you, but you werenât stupid. He was here because you had concerned him. Sylus was a busy man, especially at this time of night. He wouldnât have come just to berate you with words that couldâve been put into a text message.
Not that you knew where your phone was.
The atmosphere between you both fell into silence, only the sounds of medical machinery filling in the lack of conversation. You didnât really know what to say to him, and he wasnât typically the type to lose his words. But it was clear to see that he didnât know what to say, either.
After a long moment, he cleared his throat, his hands flexing in his lap. âI told you those guns of yours were pathetic.â
âThereâs nothing wrong with my guns,â you mumbled with a roll of your eyes.
âSo itâs a skill issue?â
You glared harshly at him, flinching noticeably as you did. You werenât sure what was bothering you more, the pain in your head or the mood that Sylus was so clearly in.Â
His features softened ever so slightly as he recognised your pain. Still, that didnât stop him from being an asshole. âItâs one or the other, kitten.â
You felt your cheeks heat up. If there was one thing you didnât want Sylus to think of you as, it was weak. You werenât sure why you cared so much, but you did.
âI suppose my guns are a little on the outdated side,â you murmured begrudgingly.
He smirked, his hands finally relaxing a little in his lap. The awkward atmosphere was slowly fading, which you were grateful for. You didnât want to pry into his mind and make things worse again.
You buried your head a little further into the pillow beneath your sore head, letting your eyes fall shut for a moment. Fatigue was starting to settle in your body, almost dragging you into a swift sleep before your chilly hand was captured in a warm embrace.
Your eyes shot open again, finding Sylus out of his seat and leaning over you. His eyes were a bit wider than usual. âHave they checked you for a concussion?âÂ
âYeah,â you told him gently. The close proximity had you flustered. âIâm a little concussed, but Iâm allowed to sleep.â
His brows drew together slightly as he studied you. Youâve both had these strange little moments before, when his mask slips away just enough to see his true feelings.
âIâll be fine,â you whispered in reassurance. âYou should go, Sylus.â
He shook his head, his hand tightening slightly over yours. It looked like an effort, but he managed to smirk at you again. âTrying to get rid of me already?â
Beneath that facade of humour, he was a little bit wounded. You wouldnât point it out, but you could see it. He was a stubborn bastard who wasnât going to let you push him away, but he also didnât like that you were trying to push him away.
It wasnât as if you wanted him to go. Your relationship with him wasâŠcomplicated.
Complicated in the sense that you werenât in a relationship, but he had a habit of establishing a level of intimacy between you both that you werenât blind to. Good morning and goodnight texts, constant invites to events as his plus one with no other reason than to be beside him, and random gifts left on your doorstep so often that your elderly neighbour recently asked if you were âgetting some.â
A relationship with him would be very difficult to maintain. You both come from entirely different worlds that just could not merge. No matter how much you desired him, you had to maintain your composure.
âIâm not trying to get rid of you,â you sighed. âI just donât like how careless youâre being by showing up here. Some people do worry, you know.â
He slowly lowered his loom over you so that his nose was just inches away from yours. You couldnât help but swallow, feeling his steady breath on your lips as he spoke. It was intimidating and yet so intimate that you didnât know whether to cower or cut him off with a kiss you never knew you wanted.Â
âYou donât think Iâm worried about you?â he drawled in a rather serious manner.
âThatâs not what Iââ
âDo you not realise how it looked through Mephistoâs eyes when you were walloped a great distance across a library and crumpled to the floor like a lifeless body.â His teeth were gritted in his mouth, the word âbodyâ coming out tightly like his tongue was rejecting the word. âYouâre not the only person who is worried here. Do not brand me incapable of such feelings.â
Your mouth went a little dry, tears threatening to invade your eyes. It wasnât that you didnât believe in his worry, and you hadnât meant for it to come across that way.
âI just donât want you to risk your freedom for me,â you whispered shakily.
He lifted his hand from where it was holding him up beside your free hand, carefully moving some strands of your hair that had fallen over your bandages.Â
âIâd risk it all for you.â
He had never said such a thing to you in all the time youâd been acquainted. You knew that he would carry out every need you might have of him. You knew that he would listen to you sit and ramble on and on about anything, never interrupting you. You knew that he cared about you.
But you were still in the dark when it came to the extent of that care.
âTell me whatâs on your mind,â he murmured.
Thankfully, you caught yourself before you were about to shake your sore head. âJustâŠtrying to figure you out.â
A smile slowly spread across his lips. A real smile. It was enough to make your heart flutter, embarrassingly made noticeable by the heart rate monitor you were hooked up to.
âIt would require a lot of brainpower to do that, sweetie. Maybe lose the concussion first,â he said in his typically sarcastic tone.
You managed your own small smile, which blossomed into a chuckle. This was the side of Sylus that had you coming back to him whenever he asked for your company.
His real side.
He kept his hand atop your head, avoiding the bandages completely. His thumb swiped gently over the parting of your hair, pulling you off to sleep again. You were pretty sure that he was doing it on purpose to force you into rest, but you were in no position to argue with him. You were officially exhausted.
âWould you really like me to leave, kitten?â he asked in a soft whisper as your eyes fluttered.
The very thought of him leaving made you a little upset. Despite your attempts at convincing the doctors you were fine, you damn well were not. You needed his comfort, and he needed to know that you were safe and on the road to a speedy recovery.
âNo,â you whispered, succumbing to the soothing strokes on your scalp.
A soft brush of his lips was the last thing you felt before you finally drifted off, feeling secure enough to do so with his company.
âGood,â heâd whispered back before you fully clocked out. âIâll always be careless so long as I get to you.â
A/N - Long time no fic post. I apologise, life has been crazy. I havenât proof read this cause honestly Iâm just too tired so Iâll read over it in the morning and edit any mistakes. Hope youâre all doing well! đ€
#love and deepspace#sylus#lads sylus#l&ds sylus#lnds sylus#sylus x you#sylus x reader#sylus x mc#sylus angst#sylus fluff#love and deepspace sylus#sylus love and deepspace#love and deepspace mc#lads mc#sylus fanfiction#sylus fanfic#love and deepspace fanfiction#lads fanfic#love and deepspace imagine#Lnds#lads
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
An Encore of Betrayal
Summary: The devil with no sin nor memory and he who has held them all for centuries.
Word Count: 21.8k (get cozy)
Tags: Neuvillette x Fem!Reader, Slow burn, Slow fic, SMUT, NSFW, Historical AU, Fantasy AU?, Reincarnation AU, cursed!neuvillette, dragon!neuvillette, reincarnated!Reader, human!reader, Fluff, a lot of fluff, Melusines doing their best to play cupid, ex-lovers to lovers, slight enemies to lovers? ANGST, he's trying his best, dragon x human dynamics, Monsterfucking (two... I have no defense), cunnilingus(long tongue), marking, size kink? breeding kink, heat, overstimulation, hate sex? kinda?, slightly unhealthy dynamics (past life), dubcon, trust issues, immortal x mortal, slightly possessive!neuvillette, slightly yandere!neuvillette, TW: mild mention of blood, TW: descriptions of drowning, sin, and sacrifice. TW: Trauma from betrayal, themes of resentment, Infertility.
Author's Note: Wanted to try out a historical fantasy from Neuvillette's pov. I struggle with fantastical settings, so overlook any world-building confusion. Mihoyo won't give me his real name, and it's eating away at my sanity. Enjoy!
Somewhere deep beneath the waves, away from the omnipotent watch of false divinity, lies a village. A bustling home carved into an outcast cove nestled under the cover of suppressive tides.
One littered with tiny houses surrounding an impressive estate modeled much like the ones seen in those novels abandoned from capsized ships.Â
Would you believe that such a place exists?Â
Decorated with curious trinkets which sunk beneath the surface which had forsaken them, kept in this cove for so long that it was challenging to remember the azure hues.Â
Ornaments decorating the expanse of this once lonesome cave, almost enough to conceal its true origin: A prison.
A fool sentenced to this penitentiary masquerading as a home, now affectionately named âMerusea Villageâ.Â
Within that attentively built estate, a looming figure stood in front of a wall lined with neatly organized novels, lilac eyes running along the titles printed along each spine.Â
A collection saved from watery abandonment after falling overboard by the curious hands of Melusines. Amassed throughout the years until the shelves of this humble library were without vacancy.Â
Stopping a finger on a spine, he decided on the novel to pass the ever-plenty time bestowed upon him. Heâs aware that each book amongst these shelves has been thumbed through by him.
But with enough years, the recollection of the contents contained within each one tends to become foggy.Â
It's fate that the novel selected in his hands just so happens to be a collection of tales.
Humans have many strange behaviors, one might even call them traditions. One particular tradition mortals seem to indulge in often is that of storytelling.Â
Lilac eyes browse through the pages, refreshing himself on the tale held within its faded covers.Â
----------
There once was a lovely kingdom amidst lush pastures and fertile lands where the townspeople sang and danced under the bright sunlight.
But one day the sun disappeared, concealed behind ashen clouds that cried a lonesome hymn, plaguing the unfortunate kingdom with rain.
The origin of the rain stemmed from the lonesomeness of a great dragon of water.
Thus, to stop the rain, the king sent out a princess to the dragon, declaring that the kingdom gates wouldnât welcome her back if rain fell from the sky. She was sent off in a white gown.Â
Down below a flooded loch, the princess was offered to the weeping dragon. Looking up the princess saw the sorrowful pools in the beastâs eyes.Â
âHydro Dragon, oh Hydro Dragon, why do you cry?â She asked.
Intrigued by the bravery of the young princess, the dragon answered: âBecause I am lonely, I have no brethren left.â
Feeling pity the princess responded: âHydro Dragon, oh Hydro Dragon, donât cry. I will be lonely with you.âÂ
So the princess befriended a lonesome dragon under the hymn of softening rain, with his loneliness soothed, the sun peeked back out from ashen clouds. But one day, pitiful tears fell from her eyes and the princess wept so bitterly.Â
The dragon could not bear seeing those tears stain her cheeks. He offered her pearls, jewels, and gold. Yet those bitter tears still fell, tainting the pristine water.Â
âBeloved princess, why do you cry so bitterly?â He implored.Â
âI long to go home, I miss my kingdom,â she revealed.Â
But she could not go home, for if she stepped foot away from the riverside the lonesome rain would start again. The colossal dragon could not leave the loch, but he could not bear seeing those bitter tears.
So he relented, telling the princess a secret. A secret all dragons buried deep within: His true name.Â
âIf you speak my name, my true name, then I can grant you one wish. But be careful, for there can only be one wish.â The dragon whispered.Â
âDo you wish to return to your kingdom, beloved princess?â He asked.Â
The princess was silent for a long while, weighing the choices in her hand. She longed to return home, but she also longed to be by the side of her kind dragon.Â
Confident in her decision, she beckons the great dragon closer, until her lips could reach the side of his large head where his ear lay. After whispering his name, she tells the beast her wish.Â
âI wish for you to become my prince, so we can return to the kingdom together, that way you wonât ever be lonely again.â
A clever wish he grants with a nod. Scales and claws shedding away until a handsome prince stood in front of her. Thus, hand in hand they returned from the loch to the warm welcome of the kingdom.Â
And they lived happily ever after.Â
----------
Ah, so it was that tale.Â
Judging from the age of the novel, he guesses it must be a rendition of a rendition.
Words and events twisted, embellished, and simplified. Until it became nothing more than a mere fable told to entertain the wandering minds of children.Â
A beloved tale of a maiden who got a dragon to give up his grand authority, stopping the flood of vengeance from drowning Fontaine.
This is what the origin of his damnation has turned into. The tales of the heroineâs feats sung and written throughout the narrative of time, passing from one generationâs lips to anotherâs ears.Â
However, he supposes this is expected of humans. Itâs their tradition of storytelling, after all, mending a fallacy into a tale palatable to their conscious.
Or perhaps, these embellishments were added to compensate for the hollows caused by the frailty of mortal memory.Â
Patching over the holes with flowery words to distract readers from inaccuracies that were only compounded upon from the last.Â
Fontainians who came to believe in it, must not have known the dragon all that well, considering that they thought the proud dragon would bow to the whims of a meek human.
Placing a secret so simply in her hands at the mere sight of tears.
Did Fontainians not realize that the land they reside on once belonged solely to dragons? How preposterous it is that a sovereign couldnât set foot upon his own land. Or did they forget why he couldnât?Â
What a naive ending, did mortals truly believe that blood and water could dwell together without consequences? That simply wishing the dragon to become a human could resolve all troubles?
To overwrite everything with a âhappily ever afterâ which never happened?
Regardless of his reservations toward such fables, the Melusines always seem eager to gather around for such stories. The towering figure lacked the conviction to deny such requests.Â
From down the hall approaching closer came the pitter-patter of steps, he turned his tall frame toward the direction of the sound just as a few familiar faces revealed themselves from the library entrance.Â
âMonsieur Neuvillette! Come quickly! A human! A human appeared!â A group of Melusines tugs on the fabric of his slacks while pointing toward the phenomenon.Â
A mortal in this domain? A cavern hidden deep under the land and waters where the warmth of the sun couldnât grace. How did such a being find their way into this sanctum? Itâd be best that he alleviates their worries.Â
âPlease lead the way.â Neuvillette closes the novel, returning it to the confines of its shelf.Â
His swift movements in time with the melusinesâ frantic patter as they made their way out from his estate.
Soon the tops of the Melusinesâ cozy homes of Merusea Village came into view, as did the murmuring of a distraught crowd.Â
âExcuse me.â His steps made their presence known, their heads perked up to look at him before parting a path for Neuvillette.Â
Upon the maroon pasture of Merusea Village was a blanket of silk and woven lace, snowy fabric surrounding the still figure of a human.
Treading closer Neuvillette kneels down while reaching out a hand, weaving his fingers under the fabric which obscures the mortalâs face.Â
âWe found her while gathering offerings from the waters ⊠Is sheâŠâ The anxious murmuring quiets to await his verdict.Â
âShe has a pulse,â he reveals, fingertips detecting wisps of warmth along cold skin.Â
It was faint, but his attentive eyes caught onto the slow movement of her chest. The snowy fabric had greedily drunk up the essence of the sea. Cursing her to sink deeper below the tides.Â
To leave a mortal in such a state would be too cruel of a fate.Â
Neuvillette moves his hand to support her covered head as his other arm gathers the damp fabric under her legs.
Carefully, he stands back to his full height, cradling her limp body in his hold. An audience of fretful gazes follow his motions.
âDo not fret, she only requires some rest and a change of clothing, Iâll take her to my abode. Could you gather some cloth to dry down her body?â Neuvilletteâs melodic voice just barely above a whisper, so as not to stir the figure in his arms.
His expression softens to offer the compassionate creatures some reassurance. With firm nods the Melusines scatter, determination alight in their bright irises as they sought the necessary items to care for their newfound guest.Â
The dampness of the heavy fabric seeps into his own attire as Neuvillette turns the knob to grant him entry into his abode.Â
Quietly ambling through the spacious halls, the master bedroom came into view. Neuvillette lays the limp form upon his sheets, ensuring that her head rests slowly upon the soft pillows.Â
Just as her figure sinks into the mattress, a chorus of metallic clinks catches his attention. Glancing down her body his lilac eyes discover the origin.
A pair of silver shackles encased around her ankles, the unforgiving metal digging into defenseless flesh.Â
Gingerly, he takes one ankle into his grasp to better observe the shackles.
This time he couldnât fight against the deep frown as it debuted upon his lips. His eyes hone on how tightly those heavy chains were bound along the flesh.Â
Soon the unforgiving metal crashes down to the floor, he soothes the freed skin with his thumb while checking for any other possible wounds.Â
Lilac eyes travel up to her face for any sign of discomfort, only to be reminded that her face was concealed behind a shroud of lace.Â
How uncomfortable it must be to have a cold piece of fabric to cover oneâs face. Neuvillette places her ankle back onto the bed.
His large hands took hold of the damp veil to lift it from her resting frame, revealing to his draconic eyes for the first time their face.Â
The veil stays suspended in the air as his hands cease all motion. Hardened gaze tracing over her features, the curve of her cheeks, the slope of her nose, and the structure of her face.
Repeated details he had long seared into his consciousness.Â
Within those mortal tales, thereâs a wide variety of beasts and fearsome creatures. Dragons were depicted as such omnipotent beasts. But thereâs a monster all other beast falls secondary to, the devil.Â
They didnât possess the sharpest talons nor the largest fangs. No, what made them so horrifying is that they dawned the most enchanting faces.Â
Heâs staring at it right now. The face of the devil who deceived him.Â
Those gods must be laughing at him right now. Those false idols, with their capricious fate and whims, who once mustâve shook hands with you to carry out their schemes all those years ago.Â
The scheme which imprisons him here in this humiliating form of the mortal creatures those false idols loved so much.Â
Yes, a devil, that must be what you are. For how did a meek mortal trick a dragon who once held the full authority of the tides?
His chest expands with a deep breath before a long exhale leaves him. Ah, yes that must be why this white gown has appeared before him again. He removes the senseless scrap of lace, checking once more for signs of discomfort before he turns his body away.Â
Finding himself outside the threshold of his bedroom as he closes the door behind him. He should wait here for the Melusines to arrive with a change of clothes and towels.Â
Itâd buy him enough time to steadily return the tempestuous loch to a subdued ripple in a pond. His chest expands once more with a deep inhale.Â
A second cruel rendition unfolding once more in the narrative of time. Â
The crisp turn of a page resounds through the room. Lilac eyes glanced up from the text every so often to watch the steady rises and falls of your chest from his vantage point of a wooden chair pulled up to the bedside.Â
Heavy lashes still shut just as they were the day your drenched figure was pulled from the tides by merciful hands.Â
The journey to wisdom is lined with mistakes, mistakes providing teachings one must ingrain into their very being if they donât wish to repeat such blunders again.
Just as how a burn seared into skin is a forever reminder that fire indeed burns indiscriminately.Â
A scar ingrained deep within him cries out for Neuvillette to withdraw from the fire which scorned him so long ago.Â
Alas, itâs duty which has sat him down beside your sleeping form. Youâre the first guest this cove has seen in a long time, thus bringing you under the responsibility of the host, Neuvillette himself.Â
A stir brings his stoic gaze back away from his thoughts. Your chest rises with a long inhale as leaden lashes flutter open.
The cadence of your breaths begins to rise as more of your senses return to you. Fatigue evident in each slow drag of breath.Â
âAh, I see youâve awoken.â Neuvillette observes.Â
Your muscles momentarily forget their fatigue as your head snaps toward the owner of the deep voice. Eyes now wide and alert.Â
âMy apologies, it wasnât my intention to startle you.â He casts a glance toward the steaming bowl on the nightstand.Â
He could feel the weight of your stare travels up his figure. Do you perhaps remember him? Can you recall his lush snowy locks streaked with azure? Irises that held an all too familiar hue, a multitude of lilac shades much like a field of lavenders.
Does this âyouâ remember the dragon you fooled?Â
âW-who are you?...â Your gaze was too cowardly to meet his.
Ah, have the cycle of death and rebirth washed those sins and memories?
The tonality of your trembling voice filled with puzzlement instead of recognition. He shouldâve expected this much.
This you is nothing more than a stranger who shares the face of a devil.Â
âWhere am I?â Another question leaves those lips in the absence of a response.Â
Just give him a moment, allow him to pacify the surging torrent within so their bitterness doesnât seep into his words.Â
âYouâre in our village!â A cheery voice joins the conversation.Â
Two pairs of eyes land upon a short figure with a pair of pastel horns. You blink once, then twice, then slowly thrice. Inquisitive eyes stared right back at you.Â
âW-what⊠are you?â Instinct commanding your body to retract deeper into the sheets.Â
A sharp cough halts your actions, drawing your attention back to the man as he lowers his hand down from his lips.Â
âSheâs a Melusine, they prefer to be addressed using she/her pronouns,â he elucidates, an ever so subtle chastise in his tone.Â
âOhâŠâ You advert your gaze again, shame creeping onto your cheeks from your unintentional discourtesy.Â
A few breaths of silence follow, he observes you studying everything but the two figures just beside the bed.
Your fingers soothing over the soft cotton nightgown against your skin, a change from that restrictive and ornate dress.Â
âWe, Melusines, helped you change out of that wet dress. Big sister Sedene said youâd get sick if we left you in that.âÂ
It looks like your diverted gaze wasnât as subtle as you originally thought. Sheepishly you extend your gratitude.Â
âThank youâŠâ Your words draw out, a brow quirked as your stare remained on her short form.Â
âKiara!â She points to herself with a mitten hand.Â
âThank you, Kiara.â You finish.Â
Her mittened hand then gestures to the towering man beside her.Â
âThis is Monsieur Neuvillette! Heâs the one who carried you here,â she announces.Â
âT-thank you, Monsieur Neuvillette.â You could only gather the courage to glance at the wall behind him.Â
âJust Neuvillette is fine,â his tone melodic and calm. âAre you able to sit up?â
Nodding your head, you attempt to fight through the fatigue of your muscles. Neuvillette and Kirara offer their assistance, his firm hands guiding your body up as Kirara adjusts the pillows to support your back.Â
Once you were situated, he reached for the bowl placed down earlier. A light clink sounds out from a spoon clattering about the porcelain dish. You glance at the contents, noting the clear amber broth.Â
âThis should be kind on your stomach while providing you with some much-needed hydration and nutrients.â He holds out the soup.Â
A quivering hand attempts to reach up for the bowl, only for muscles to lose to fatigue as your arm limply falls back down to your side. Your strength has yet to return.Â
Another clink from the spoon resounds in the room as it gets taken into the grasp of an attentive hand. He holds out a spoonful of the warm soup, but your lips remain shut as a skeptical gaze meets his.Â
âPlease forgive this inconvenience, but itâs best that you eat something to regain your strength.â The spoon remains unmoving in his hand.Â
Thereâs a rumbling stir within him. A voice snarls into his ear, interrogating him as to why his hand is feeding the very devil who once bit it.Â
âIf you donât eat you wonât get better.â Kiaraâs eyes are riddled with concern as she observes your sealed lips.Â
That was his rebuttal to that snarl.
The Melusines simply donât wish to see a human in such a pitiful state. Blissful in their ignorance of events that conspired long before their birth.Â
 Dignity overpowered by the guilt of seeing such pure eyes marred with worry.Â
Soon your lips part, accepting the spoonful of broth delicately offered by him. After he observes you swallowing the first sip, Neuvillette holds out another spoonful. You part your lips again.
Neuvillette overrides the clamorous warnings of his instincts with the duty of being a âgood hostâ, bringing another sip to your delicate lips.
Â
With a regular diet of warm broth with servings of Bulle Fruit on the side, you were soon able to pick up the spoon yourself. The fatigue that plagued your bones finally leaves, allowing you to support your body off the mattress which had your shape imprinted into it.Â
The Melusines, seemingly born infatuated with humanity, would often gather about your bed.
They were curious about you just as you were about them. To them, youâre the creature from those fairytales heâs read them.Â
In exchange for your recollections of warm Summer days and descriptions of lush lilac fields swaying in a gentle breeze, they reveal more about this village.
About how the estate you were currently residing in was refurbished by their own-mittened hands, taking inspiration from the various books depicting what human abodes looked like.Â
The beds, drapes, and even rugs are all arranged by them to create a lovely abode. A drastic change to the worn and rampaged shell it once was before their meddling.
Perhaps if he never filled their naive minds with those tales, they wouldnât be enamored with you and humanity.Â
Or maybe itâs the vibrance of your smile that drew their naive souls closer. A warmth like a flickering candlelight beckoning a moth closer.
What are the odds that the hands of fate stayed so faithful to the details of a heroine from so long ago?Â
From your image to your bewitching mannerisms, and alluring voice, theyâre all identical replicas. You and the âdevilâ from that tale.Â
Wisdom from a lesson learned long ago, he must not repeat the same mistake. He must not be enchanted by the same flame which scorned him. He must ensure a breadth between you and him, just as those tiresome voices call for.Â
However, Neuvillette understands he has a responsibility as a host. Thus, he regularly checked on your condition, then when you were well enough to stretch your legs he accompanied you on strolls. Maintaining a respectable distance away.Â
He guided you through the marble halls of the estate, showing the library and bath which were yours to access whenever you wanted.
Rooms illuminated with the muted glow of luminescence gems and pearls. Water sourced from a hidden freshwater spring.Â
Impassive eyes observe yours as you look in awe at the facilities and commendations hidden deep under the tides. Were they comparable to the ones youâve encountered back on the surface?Â
This estate, these wide stone halls, those pearls and jewels once scattered about, were all made just to please the bitter tears of a mortal. Perhaps his first attempt was too subpar to quell the longing to return to the sunlight.Â
But gauging from the glimmer reflecting off your eyes, it seems the Melusines attempt was satisfactory at least.Â
Todayâs stroll took you outside of the estate, Neuvillette accompanying you about a routine walk, watching from behind as your eyes scan the dim realm.
The lanterns lining the path of Melusine's home grace the maroon pastures and rocky walls in place of the faint wisps of sunlight offered by the depths of the sea.Â
Very much expected for a village beneath the waves and earth. Were you reminiscing about the warm grace of the sun you felt up there?
Itâs not fair to compare the vast sky of the surface to their cavern hidden away from the eyes of the mortals, perhaps even the divine themselves.Â
âMonsieur Neuvillette?â You began todayâs attempt at a conversation.Â
âYes?â He hums in acknowledgment.Â
He keeps sentences brief, but informative. Counters to your attempts at conversation.Â
âIâm aware this might sound strange, but is there a dragon down here?â Turning back to face him.
His strides stop as a lull of silence falls over the both of you. The weight of his unshaken gaze upon your shoulders caused them to tense up.
Your hands find each other for comfort under his oppressive stare as he awaits the reason behind this odd inquiry.Â
âW-well you see, Fontaine has been having awful weather for years now. Saltwater ruining crops and persistent heavy rain, itâs because the Hydro Dragon is crying from his loneliness. I was selected and offered as his bride, to stop the rain, thatâs what The Oratrice instructed,â you babble out.Â
âSoâŠdo you know where he is?â Sheepishly you glance up.Â
The lilac hues of his eyes connect with yours as his lips remain unmoving. Staring into your eyes as he contemplates what you have just revealed to him. Your hands fumble together as you await his response.
âSo humans are still telling that local legendâŠâ He sighs.Â
He has to rein it back. The torrent which threatens to brew within him. Deep breaths to remind himself about the nature of mortals.Â
Humans are fickle and meek creatures who constantly yearn for something divine to worship, a figurehead to guide them in the turbulence of life.
When faced with hardship and destitution, they believe such concepts to be punishment from above.Â
Thus, they invent traditions to appease those false idols. Going to great lengths in attempts to pacify those unseen forces, even if it meant sacrificing one of their own.Â
Perhaps this was the trait of mortals that made them so favored by the usurpers, their naive devotion feeding into the greed of selfish gods.
Maybe thatâs why those false idols uprooted the land that belonged to dragons.Â
âI wonder just how far that fable has spread by now,â he sighs again.
His lashes flutter shut in exasperation as a huff leaves him. It was a moment before they flutter back open to hone in on you. Thereâs no use in keeping his identity from you any longer.Â
âDo I seem lonely in your eyes?â Baritone voice steady and low.Â
No sounds fall from your agape lips as your eyes reexamine his features, this time shamelessly ogling the peculiar details youâve brushed off previously.
Do you notice it now? How his ears were a bit too pointed, or those two particular cerulean strands of âhairâ poking out from his snowy locks.Â
As you study the specifics of his eyes, do you now comprehend the sharp dark pupils that cut through the multitude of lilac shades? Much like a shadow cutting through a field of lavenders.Â
âYouâre the Hydro Dragon,â you deduce.Â
He nods in confirmation. Only causing your eyes to scan over him again as your mind reels back from this revelation.Â
In those stories youâve read back on the surface, how did they depict him? As a towering scaled beast with fangs and claws? Are you wondering why heâs not matching that description?Â
âIâm aware that my current shape might not convey such a presence, â he answers your unspoken question.Â
He fights for his lips to remain stoic, not allowing the weight of a frown to pull them down. You donât know, you donât need to know, he reminds himself.Â
A detail excluded from the pages of that tale, the âprincessâ would only ever look at him, would only ever smile at him when a dragon took on this shape. A form which mirrors humans.Â
In fact, she was so fond of this human shell of his that she cursed him to dwell within it for the rest of eternity.Â
Neuvillette takes another deep breath, quelling the stir once more. You look like you had more questions.Â
âSo⊠does that mean the need for a bride is fictitious?â You clutch your hands tighter.Â
Some years ago, the Melusines were born from spilled blood. A new generation of successors of the brethren he once forsaken. Making this prison much less lonesome, voiding the accuracy of the sentence in that tale.Â
If that was the case, then why did the waters still rage? Why did the pittering of rain drown out all bird songs and tumults of perplexed citizens? Is there a way he could simplify the details missed by storytellers for generations?Â
After that âhappily ever afterâ, a dragon cursed his devil just as she cursed him.Â
No, such expositions would be an unfair burden upon your shoulders.Â
âItâs not fictitious.â Turning to gaze out at the depths of the underground realm, he takes a breath before continuing.Â
âThe land which your nation, Fontaine, resides on is stolen land,â he reveals. âMore accurately all of what you know as âTeyvatâ was stolen from the dragons, my fellow brethren.âÂ
The furrow in your brows deepens as you listen on.Â
âMy brethren were banished to the depths for the sake of humanity. A dragonâs rage isnât something that can be easily quelled.â He glances back at you.Â
âA union between a dragon and a human, a show of peace between the two species. Even if the origins of this ritual have been embellished heavily, it serves the same purpose to pacify the ancient dragonâs rage,â he concludes.Â
Neuvillette wonders if this tale was enough to satisfy your inquiry, if his attempt at the human practice was enough to simplify the events muddled and twisted by time.
Impassive eyes scan over your expression, not missing the glimmer ever so bright within.Â
âSo⊠has the rain stopped?â Your hands almost clasped together in prayer.Â
He nods, the shine growing ever so luminous in those blameless irises, one he couldnât resist the enchantment of. That all too familiar look in your eyes.Â
âThatâs good.â A slow smile made its appearance upon plush lips.
Ah. He remembers what that look was called, voices of recollection pulling him away from the edge. Just before he fell into bewitchment once more.
That look wasnât relief, nor was it salvation. It's duty. He takes a slow and deep inhale.Â
Just as it was all those years ago, the narrative of this tale did not stray away from the plot. He must be more careful.Â
Thereâs been a still lull engulfing the atmosphere down in a hidden cavern. So still in fact that walks amongst maroon patches of grass have stopped. Your body was well enough to explore the corners of the state without assistance.Â
No reason for him to remain by your side throughout the day, and no reason for you to shadow him.Â
Neuvillette and you keeping mostly to oneâs self. It was just the natural progression of things. After all, the ritual had been completed and the tides had receded. Youâve served your duty once more.Â
A foreign aroma was wafting through the estate, strange enough for Neuvillette to leave the library to investigate the origins of this aroma.
Steps slowing as the clacker of pots and pans becomes more distinct. The entrance of the estate kitchen comes into view, and he peers in to see a few familiar faces.Â
âOh? Monsieur!â Rhemia notices his presence.Â
An assortment of vegetables, spices, and even some meats from fresh catches were spread about the table as a pan sizzling over a crackling fire.
Ingredients gathered from offering dropped down below the tides. The recent influx could be attributed to how the hymn of the rain has ceased.Â
âHello, Monsieur Neuvillette.â Your smile greets him.Â
Ah, heâs found the explanation behind the foreign aroma and why the variety spread of ingredients was being utilized in a kitchen that was once mainly created just to match those diagrams drawn in novels.Â
âI hope you donât mind my use of the kitchen, I wanted something other thanâŠConsomme Purete.â Wiping your hands with a rag.Â
Yes, Consomme Purete.
It was the dish served when you had first woken up, a light but nutritious soup that was kind on your stomach. It had the right amount of hydration balanced with nutrients to sustain oneself, a perfect dish.
The only dish cooked in this kitchen, that was until today.Â
Removing a pan from the heat, you carefully transfer the contents onto a plate then place the pan back on the wood stove.
The rich aroma caused an audience of bright-eyed stares from the Melusines to center upon the steaming plate. Their tails make their excitement clear as they gaze upon a dish theyâve never seen before.Â
Was this a new passion of this life?... Or was it just one he never got the chance to witness?
Was this the devil before the role of a bride was forced upon her? A devil heâs never known, for all he saw was her performance to stop the deafening rain all those years ago.
His attention was brought back as the chime of cutlery against porcelain was heard, cooked veggies stabbed between the teeth of a fork.
Cupping a hand under the fork, your body leans down to the Melusineâs height, feeding them a bite of the fragrant dish. The wags of their tails increase in cadence as they chew.Â
âThis is Tasses Ragout, tasty isnât it?â The corners of your lips curl as you watch their little heads nod eagerly.Â
The suspicion melts from his gaze as he observes to the delight in their expressions, a few mitten hands tugging at the skirt of your gown for a bite. A giggle bubbles from your throat.
A scene mirroring that of a mother trying to appease the appetites of her ravenous young.Â
Soon your eyes connect and he straightens his posture. Brushing away the nonsensical musing, lilac hue advert away momentarily to recompose themselves before returning.Â
âWould you like a taste?â A fork offered in his direction, beckoning closer to take a bite.Â
Thereâs a myth heâs read about, of a forbidden apple held out by the tempter of all tempters, an apple so red and lustrous it made any mouth salivate.Â
âThank you for the offer, however, Iâve already had my lunch.â He refrains.Â
A bite from that forbidden fruit was the genesis of disgrace and banishment. A betrayal of commandments once promised. Neuvillette wonât be deceived again.Â
--------------------------------------------------------------
âMonsieur! Monsieur! Come look!âÂ
Mittened hands grasping upon his coat and gloved hands as a circle of Melusines guides him through the winding halls, anticipation amping their voices.Â
Thereâs a chorus of giggles resounding through the halls, a joyous clamor of pattering steps against the marble floors.
The estate has been lively ever since your arrival in that white dress, a liveness which reaches his pointed ears even from behind closed doors.Â
Regardless, he allows himself to be towed by their skipping steps. Leading him to a room he recognizes as a space where many fabrics and gowns were collected and stored.
Garments made with the intent to be sold to Fontainians, but their crates were capsized over by the ravenous tides. Saved from watery abandonment by curious hands.Â
While this form of his could wear a few of those garments, the Melusines had statures much too short for pools of fabric to not drag along the ground. Thus, that collection of fabrics found themselves collecting dust.Â
Their steps abruptly stop just at the threshold of the door, mittened hands pressed up against their lips signaling for him to remain silent.
Soon their sights glance into the room as he follows, lilac eyes opening ever so slightly wider as they process the scene in front of him.Â
Evening gowns crafted by skilled tailors to be sold to Fontanian ladies, you had the right frame for those garments as well.
A trail of lustrous sapphire silk gathered behind your figure. The artistic stitching and pleating draping the silk around each curve of your body as if you were the only person meant to wear it.Â
A few Melusines fussing about the silk train, ever so curious of humanity, they mustâve requested for you to dawn the gown.
Just as they often had requested for him to dawn those fickle suits and coats for their enjoyment.
It seems you bent to their childish whims just as he does.Â
âHow do you like it?â You ask your audience, twirling about in front of a mirror.Â
Itâs different from those hardier dresses for when you wandered about the village and estate, in comparison this dress was much less practical.Â
âItâs beautiful, Madame!â Their round eyes were enamored.
âIâm glad, who knew you had such an aesthetic eye.â Your expression softens.Â
Bending down to Caroleâs height, you scooped her up. Cradling her as your forehead touches her horns gently.
âThank you for such a lovely dress.â Placing tender pats along her head, careful to not disturb her horns and hair.Â
Carole leans into your touch as your smile widens. Twirling once more with her in your arms, giggles ringing throughout the room.
Until your head peeked up, finally aware of the silent spectator just behind the door frame.Â
âOh, hello Neuvillette,â you greet him with a smile he doesnât return.
A tense lull creeps in, and a chill begins to mix with the quiet atmosphere. Lilac eyes pass over your form as Carole remains sat in your arms.
âMonsieur! Isnât Madame pretty? Look!â Cheery and oblivious voices chime returning the warmth to the air.Â
Mitten hands release your skirt as they skitter toward his towering figure. Pride shines in their beaming smiles, awaiting validation of their handy work.
Steadfast eyes lowering themselves to the level of their short statures until the sharp edges gradually dissipate.Â
âA fine effort indeed.â A gloved hand extends to rest atop their heads.Â
Patting their heads tenderly as they closed their eyes in contentmentÂ
A warmth in those lilac hues, endearment no word could ever encapsulate fully.Â
âAre they your daughters?â Your head slants to the side.
His body stills, strictness reinstated in those violet irises just as they met yours. Studying that look within your polite smile, one which didnât seem to reach your eyes.Â
Gloved hand ceasing all movement, his concentration now elsewhere. That expression ghosting your face, what does it mean?Â
âMy apologies, was it too impudent of a question?â Your gaze adverts away, searching for reprieve in this heavy hush.
A deep breath as he formulates his response.Â
âI donât share blood with them if thatâs what youâre inquiring. However, they are the successors of my brethren.âÂ
âOh, I see,â you hum.Â
 Neuvillette returns to patting their heads, while you readjust your hold on Carole. Subtly bouncing her, while turning back to face the standing mirror.
Casting a glance, he could discern the softness returning to that polite smile. Yet, the dragon has yet to unravel that luster in your irises.Â
An audience of bright eyes switches between the Monsieur and Madame.Â
--------------------------------------------------------------
âBring these to her, you should greet the Madame!â Tiny hands push against Neuvilletteâs back.Â
The traitorous clicks of his shoes against marble expose his approach.
Your head peers up from the book resting upon your lap, in the midst of reading a tale aloud to an audience.Â
Just in time to catch the tall figure of Neuvillette emerging into the library at the behest of the Melusines.Â
Lilac eyes meet yours ever so briefly before his gaze averts elsewhere. Gloved hand adjusting a bundle hidden a broad back, brings the other hand up to clear his throat.Â
âThe Melusines found these when retrieving some offerings from the water, I believe youâll enjoy them.â He presents their trinket.Â
A simple collection of dainty petals clustered together, pastel hues contrast against vivid virescent leaves. A quaint ribbon tied around the stems holding the bunch together held out in front of your face.
The recipient stares in round-eyed astonishment at the fragrant blooms before a smile melts into your lips.Â
âThank you.â You accept the bouquet from his hand.Â
Admiring the rustic arrangement and the saccharine aroma as the Melusines sat around you leaned in closer to catch a whiff too.Â
âThese are called Pluie Lotus up on the surface, they smell nice right?â Giggling lightly as you held the bouquet closer to their noses.Â
Grin ever present upon your lips as your soft eyes watch their marvel of such simple weeds. A bloom foreign to this realm abandoned by the sunlight.Â
Thereâs subtle slack in his posture, a budding smile just about to unfold just as your head peers back up. Every fiber in Neuvilletteâs being tenses, goosebumps slithering up his nape.Â
Frozen there only able to witness your eyes study back and forth the hues of his irises and the periwinkle color tinting the fragile petals.
He watches an epiphany light up in your widened eyes as the bouquet was lifted higher, turning back to face him.Â
Donât. Donât say the words he knows are hanging off the tip of that honeyed tongue.Â
âThey are the same lovely color as your eyes, Neuvillette.â You beam at him, the corners of your eyes crinkling from the stretch of your lips.Â
His posture returns to its rigid and upright state, a hand hidden from view balls up into a fist.
A sharpness threatening to break through leather confines and into his palm, as if they were attempting to grapple the surging torrent stirred up within himself.Â
Why? Why was this line from a script being recited word for every damn word? All said with that saccharine smile plastered over those wicked lips?Â
Indecipherable eyes narrow ever so slightly before he catches himself. Reining in the torrent just before it seethed out.
He clears his throat again to swallow back the bitterness.Â
âDo excuse me, please return to your reading session,â he utters his parting.Â
Promptly turning to return to his secludedness, stepping past the Melusines gathered by his side.
Swift strides through the empty halls leaving you to your peace and him to his peace, just as it shouldâve been. Much to the pouts of a disappointed audience.Â
However, he didnât have the mind to contemplate their discontent. Not when these rabid bellows drown out every other thought in their rancor.
Like a sea starved for vengeance, ravenous to settle a debt against those vile gods and their beloved creations.Â
A brass knob was abruptly twisted, hinges squealing in surprise as at the force as Neuvillette shuts it behind himself.
Ragged breathes resounding through the reprieve of his bedroom. Away from innocent bystanders and the devil who showed her face again after all these centuries for an encore. Â
Has he not been humiliated enough? He tugs at his cravat, freeing himself from the fickle decoration constricted about his neck in this already imprisoning body.
A form which binded him no matter how violently talons and fangs clawed and chewed, unable to leave a singular dent upon this damn curse.Â
This was humiliating enough, bound to this cove that separated him from the sea which cries for their sovereign.
He once believed this penitentiary was obscured away from the peeking eyes of capricious gods. Perhaps, heâs wrong.Â
Why is this fantasy being played out right in front of his eyes now after all these years?
To have you by his side, to have you reside in the home he craved out and inlaid pearls into, to see you smile and cradle young against your bodice. Itâs insulting.Â
Because this was all he ever wanted. This was all he had ever wanted.Â
The lonesome dragon only ever yearned for a maidenâs endearment. He once believed she adored him back just the same.Â
Because while she lay within his arms under silken covers, her bare skin pressed against his mortal shape, her enchanting eyes always regarded him with such tenderness as her delicate hand stroked his cheek.Â
A glimmer he once believed was love. Â
The tale written along the parchment implied that the âprincessâ loved the dragon. However, that was inaccurate. She never did.Â
For if she loved him, then she wouldnât have deceived him.
She wouldnât have ever whispered his secret to the townâs folk. Those foul creatures who then used his secret, which was once reserved solely for âyouâ.
Why? That simple question taunted him for decades as he rotted in this mocking solitude.
Why did âyouâ yearn for the sun more than him? Was his love not enough to replace the warmth of a star? Was the home he made not enough when compared to the extravagance of humanity?Â
Or was it because blood and water, no matter how much they intertwine and mix, could never produce wine?Â
If⊠if the Melusines had been born just a few centuries earlier, then would you have been satisfied by his side? An answer he could already discern.
 Because after his decades of solitude within these deridingly hushed walls, he finally accepted the truth.Â
 She loved her people, they took up all the space of her heart, leaving no room for a prideful leviathan.
What a clever plan it all was, to distract a sovereign from his duty, cleansing stolen land with a flood of vengeance, by sending a maiden.
A woman so bewitching, so enchanting, and so lovely, that a proud dragon couldnât resist bending to her whims. Spilling the secret hidden deep within him into her ear.Â
Abandoning his true form to be confined in the shape she favored the most. Then lured up to the surface, suspicions obstructed by the dazzlement of a false welcome from the nation of Fontaine.Â
Unaware until the scorching knife was already lodged in his back. Using the secret he had only ever told you, those meek creatures of the usurpers wished:
âFor the rest of oneâs life, one shall never leave this cave deep beneath the tidesâ.Â
What a clever ploy, a masterly crafted master plan. Did that Oratrice bestow it upon mortals? Or was it your own little scheme? A devil in human skin who mustâve been enlisted by the god themselves.Â
 That day when he was chained by that loch, you didnât even bother to grace him with your presence.
You cruel, cruel devil whose heart only had room for her fellow citizens of Fontaine, whose eyes only ever glimmered with duty.Â
Neuvillette had finally comprehended the truth, he had made peace with the disgrace he brought upon himself.Â
So why did those vile false gods dangle you back in his face? They had already taken fragments of his authority.
Was his torment entertaining to them?Â
Lungs shaking with unsteady breaths, he could feel the pricks of scales dotted along his skin only for this body to swiftly reject it. A turmoil of draconic influence constrained by a mortal curse.Â
Like a beast kept in a cage much too small for it. If Neuvillette wishes for this agitation to cease, he must cease the stirred emotions.Â
 Emotions donât settle quickly once agitated like sand attempting to settle at the bottom of violent tides. He paces his shuddery inhales, biding in the solitude of his room until the storm dissipates.Â
To avoid the placid lake within him from thrashing violently to the woes from the throb of a wound which has yet to scar over, Neuvillette found it best to avoid your presence.Â
The lanterns outside the Melusineâs homes had long gone out as they followed their routine bedtime.
The expanse of the cavern dimmed to near blackness, the small creatures all tucked away soundly in their beds. A hushed ambiance provides a suitable environment for reflection.Â
His steps flatten the grass underneath as they accompany his strides with their rustling.
The absence of light had never bothered him, itâs within his nature to detest it. Any beast would withdraw away from the mere image of fire.Â
The rustle of the grass halts, a wispy aroma of smoke wafts towards him. It doesnât take long to identify the origin. Only a small flicker broke through the shadows, candlewick fostering only a weak flame.
But it was enough to fend the shadows away from your frame.Â
The flameâs light caught on each subtle ripple of the pond you were kneeling over.
The seemingly unremarkable pool served as the sole entrance and exit to Merusea Village. Where the Melusines traveled through to gather food, fresh water, and trinkets swallowed up by the waves.Â
Cold waters catch the bitter droplets of your pained eyes in the reflection of the ripples upon the surface, the distorted silhouette of a weeping devil.Â
An unspoken gospel revealed to draconic pupils.Â
Under the rich aromas wafting from the kitchen, behind the diligently tailored gowns, and hidden in the cadence of your voice as you read tales aloud, laid the yearning for the rays of a bright star.Â
Youâre human, a creature fleeting and meek by nature. Blood yearns to be with blood just as every drop of rain yearns to return to a cloud.Â
A sharp rustle of grass under a heavy step jolts your hunched-over posture straight, head whipping around to face the uninvited audience.
Once those weeping eyes recognize the brooding figure in front of them, your face adverts away from his direction. Shame evident upon your expression.Â
A concerned hand reaches out only to retract away, contrition marring his shut lips as Neuvillette diverts his eyes too.
Fire burns indiscriminately, even the dancing flame of a candle can sear its mark upon skin. Neuvillette knows this all too well, for the lesion he received from embracing that flame once still festers even after all these years. Â
However, lilac eyes pan back towards the orange glow illuminating your melancholic face. Warm hues contrast against the wet trails down your cheeks. Thereâs an ache more agonizing than a festering wound.Â
His steps advanced closer until he was knelt down by your slump frame. A benevolent touch lands upon your shoulder. Guiding you away from the taunting waters and into his arms, hiding your face in his broad shoulder.Â
 Offering you a semblance of warmth in a coven shunned from the grace of gentle sunlight.
With your face away from his gaze, the cacophony of your sobs returns, digging your fingers into the folds of his dress shirt.
Echoed back mockingly by the cold cavern walls.
Perhaps a foolish dragon has yet to learn his lesson, still lured in that the brilliant light of a flame.Â
A gentle hand traces up along your back, softly brushing your hair away to reveal the skin of your nape to his sharp pupils.
Honed in upon untainted skin, the courts of rebirth may have removed the proof of your damnation, but not the hex itself.Â
Or maybe, a foolish dragon feels some responsibility for being the one to curse you to this fate.Â
A mark once imprinted upon your nape by a lonesome dragon, a heavy oath sworn to you engrained into the very fabric of your soul amidst the first rendition.
One which then became the cursed chains that sunk you under the unforgiving waters.
Itâs said that love is heavy, a weight greater than the density of water. A heaviness which could sink anything and everyone under salty tides.Â
A heaviness originating from this accursed prison where a disgraced being resided.
Even as the earth above welcomed new generations as they said goodbye to bygone times.Â
The solitude of a fool turning into ravenous waves which seeped into soil until its appetite was satiated by the return of its beloved treasure.
Itâs his fault that the tides stole you from the sunlight.Â
The courts of rebirth had already forgiven you of this burden, not a single memory remaining of that tale.
What right does he have to place it back upon you? Thereâs no point in punishing one for a sin that had been cleansed by the tides of time.
You didnât deserve to be held away from the warmth of a benevolent sun.
To have been dragged down below to these depths. To have been stolen away from the warmth of the sun by the command of fickles gods and ancient grudges.
Itâs much too severe of a sentence for you, someone who didnât deserve to repent for a sin that wasnât truly yours.Â
Is it okay for his hands to wipe away your tears when this cursed dragon was the cause of your agony?
Even if itâs wrong, Neuvillette holds you closer. Even if he didnât have the right, he pressed your face in his shoulder. Allowing the vehemence of your tears to scorch his skin as you buried your cries into him.Â
Glancing at the pool you had been leaning over, he watches as the ripples of the surface taunt you and him the same.
Two beings whose bodies couldnât embrace the tides. Two cursed beings whoâve been trapped in repeated play.Â
âIt seems youâre bound to this prison as well.â He scorns those gods and ancient grudges, but he scorns himself the most.
Confined behind a human face and a human body, a traitor whoâs lost his birthright over the waters who couldnât welcome him.
How can a cursed dragon quell those choking sobs of yours? How can he atone for his selfish sin?
Neuvillette takes a deep breath just your tears continue to soak his skin. Steeling his resolve, he meditates on the one resolution he can offer you.Â
âFontainians still tell a tale about a princess who wished a dragon to become a prince, yes?â He begins.Â
After a pause filled with hiccups and shaky breaths, you nod your head as an answer.Â
âIt was when she spoke the dragonâs true name that he granted her one wish,â he recounts the tale, feeling the trembles of your shoulders.Â
âThat part of the story isnât fictitious,â he reveals.
Voices from the depths of his rationality whisper for him to stop, to expand no more upon this secret of his brethren. Clamorous warnings to a traitor to not repeat his past transgressions.Â
However, he obeys no edict from the heavens or origins. Not when an unjust punishment caused such heart-wrenching sobs.Â
âNames hold great significance to dragons. So much so, to whoever learns their true name, a wish can be granted.âÂ
Slowly, your tear-stained face pulls away from his crinkled dress shirt. Finally meeting his lilac gaze. He notes the bewilderment which surrounds his reflection in your eyes.Â
âIs⊠your name not âNeuvilletteâ?â You inquire.Â
âItâs a surname bestowed upon me by the mortals of the land.âÂ
âThen⊠What is your name?â A glimmer of optimism ever so subtly debuts in your eyes.Â
He could not tell you. No matter how beautifully that light shines, this was one ordinance he couldnât ignore. All he could do was glance away as he shakes his head. Unable to bear the sight of that light extinguishing.Â
âThat is what you must find for yourself.âÂ
Perhaps this is his defiance of the plot which has been unraveling for so long. His attempt to step off that circular path, searching for a different end.Â
The silent audience of fate watching on with bemusement to where this rendition will lead.Â
âOh?â
âOh?â
What a peculiar occurrence, Neuvillette was just about to exit his study when he found himself just a breathâs width away from you. Instinctively, he takes a step back behind the threshold of the doorway.
Passive eyes studying your form, you mustâve been standing there for a while. A hand held up intending to knock on the oak door returns to your side as you stare at the floor.Â
âIs there something you need assistance with?â He continues to study you.Â
Lilac eyes observe as your fingers clasp together, a common habit of mortals when nervous, if he recalls the contents of a book correctly. Another minute passes before you take a deep breath.Â
âIs your name Guillaume?â You peer up.Â
Ah, so this is what you wished to inquire about.
The secret revealed to you that day beside an exit neither he nor you could cross. Guillaume, a name befitting of nobility. But unfortunately, not for a dragon.Â
He responds with a shake of his head, expression stiffening as he watches the corners of your lips drop ever so slightly.Â
âOhâŠâ
It seems his existence brings nothing but a frown upon those soft lips, Neuvillette felt itâs best to retreat from your sight.Â
This attempt was evidence of your determination to return to the embrace of a warm star.
It wouldnât be right for him to interfere, despite those vile voice whispers murmuring from the depth of his mind. It wouldnât be fair to you.Â
Itâs best to maintain this distance between his hand and yours, for your sake and his.Â
Which begs the question, why were you still standing here in front of him?Â
âIs that all you wished to inquire?â Neuvillette hopes the Melusines will lift your spirits after he withdraws.Â
âActuallyâŠâ You began. âI made some soup and if you havenât had lunch yet, would you like to try some?âÂ
Although his stoic face might not reflect it, heâs positively baffled. Were âyouâ always this enthusiastic about food?
The devil he knew before would view the freshest catches and clearest waters offered by a dragon with blasĂ© reactions.Â
You used to recoil away from the fishes and meats he held out to you, they were only ever touched once he charred them over a fire.Â
Then again the kitchen back then was much more barren than the present, cabinets now decorated with bottles of fragrant spices and herbs.Â
Was it just a difference in palate? To reject such an invitation would be to squander a precious opportunity for investigation.Â
âThe pleasure would be all mine.â He matches your strides as the two of you traverse toward the kitchen.Â
Settling down in a chair at a wooden table, Neuvillette watches as you ladle some soup into a bowl. Following your form as you set the bowl down in front of him. A pleasant aroma accompanies the steam emitting from the bowl.Â
âItâs Fontainian Onion Soup.â You hand a spoon over.Â
âThank you.â He takes the utensil and scoops a hearty serving of the rich soup.
A distinct flavor of caramelized onions and the creaminess of cheese. The broth had been thickened with a bit of flour and the cheese added to the heavy mouth feel.Â
This dish certainly expresses the flavor preferences of humans⊠but could such a thick broth really be considered soup?Â
âDo you like it?â Your head tilts to the side as he feels your inquisitiveness.Â
Dabbing a napkin over his lips, he clears his throat.Â
âA fine dish indeed. Although increasing the liquid content and reducing the amount of fat could improve it,â he advises.Â
A hush falls over the kitchen, nothing but the occasional crackle of a fire filling the space.Â
âOh⊠Iâll keep that in mind.â Your voice was restraining something.Â
As you turn away, Neuvillette catches the subtle shakes of your shoulders.Â
Ah, has he caused offense? He recalls how cooking and food preferences amongst humans tend to be a sore spot for most, some books going as far as to claim critics as attacks on oneâs pride.Â
You had taken time out of your day to prepare a bowl for him, and he gave senseless comments in return.Â
âAh, but itâs delicious regardless, thank you.â He has to remedy this situation.Â
The shakes of your shoulders increase, as a hand covers your lips.Â
âThank you, Monsieur.â Your lips seem to be trying to stifle something.Â
After finishing your sentence, your lips pressed tighter together. He could see the corners twitching as they tried their best to remain neutral.
Before he could get another word in, you excused yourself. Leaving him in front of the warm soup.Â
In that moment, Neuvillette vows to himself that even if you were to hand him a piece of charcoal heâll swallow it without a single complaint.Â
--------------------------------------------------------------
âIs your name Ădouard?âÂ
Your voice causes him to turn his attention away from the pages of a book this quiet evening.
You stood just off to the side of the bookshelf where he was browsing, a candle illuminating the curiosity held in your eyes. Presenting a name likely discovered from those very same shelves.
Dirges ring from the corners of his mind, warning him not to allow the light to approach so close.
However, where is a shadow supposed to withdraw to when the light seeks him?
Just as how the tide couldnât run away from the shore for long. Steadfast and constant attempts to unravel the secrets held by the ebbs and flows.Â
Alas, he shakes his head again today, steeling his nerves as he catches the slight drop in your shoulders. Louis, Ătienne, ThĂ©odore, and all those previous guesses, are names of heroes in Fontainian tales and epics.Â
Popularized to the point many boys were named after them, but no parent would ever want to name their child after a dragon, a beast.
He doubts the pages of history have ever recorded his name.Â
Your disheartened gaze couldnât meet his, choosing to stare into the space beside him. He couldnât fault you for that.
All your efforts of combing through old novels to search for obscured monikers just to be undone by a shake of a head.
Heâs not sure how much longer he can endure being the origin of your melancholy.
âThereâs a tear in your coatâŠâÂ
Your voice brings him out of his thoughts, he glances at the spot your eyes were honed on and spots the aforementioned tear.Â
âAh, I see. My apologies for being in such an unsightly state, â he sighs. Lilac eyes ran along the jagged seams.Â
He should go find a replacement from his wardrobe, but you still looked like you had something to say.Â
âI can fix it if youâd like,â you offer.Â
Itâs just a garment, a piece of cloth that fell off some merchantâs ship and found itself in the walls of a cove. There were plenty of other garments that suffered the same fate, picked up by pairs of curious mittened hands.Â
To replace this robe would be simple, but he notes the concealed eagerness in the fidget of your fingers. It must be rather dull for you down here for the past year, to the point you resorted to repairing old fabrics for enrichment.Â
Regrettably, Neuvillette admits heâs not the best host. Heâs got no talent for small talk nor does he know how to entertain you, thus he left it up to the Melusines. However, he could at least do this much as a host.Â
âThank you, Iâd be grateful if you do.âÂ
His steps in time with yours through the halls as an old storage room comes into view. Still filled with collections of folded gowns and coats.
As he observes the room, you guide him to a pair of wooden chairs, a box filled with needles and threads beside one. You place the candle down on a nearby table.
âIâll take your coat.â Holding out your hands.Â
Following your request, he slips the robe off his shoulders, leaving him in a dress shirt and slacks.
Attentively you take the garment, settling down in a seat as your hand searches through the box. After your rummaging stopped, you glance back at him.Â
âIt wonât take long, please have a seat.â Gesturing toward the other chair.Â
Lilac eyes scanned the aged seat, the door was just beyond it, it wouldnât take much of an excuse for him to walk past the wooden threshold.
However, he pans back to your anticipatory gaze still awaiting. It wouldnât be polite to deny such a simple gesture.Â
Thus, he heeds your request, ambling toward the empty seat, he begins to settle down just as a rip resonates through the air.
His body halts all movement just as yours did, toward pairs of eyes trained on the sleeve that had been caught on the edge of a wooden table.Â
The fibers of his shirt entangled with the jagged edges causing his sleeve to rip. Neuvillette truly has yet to acclimate to such fickle inconveniences.Â
âPfft!-â Quickly your hand covers your mouth.Â
Lips pressed together as they tried their best to stifle the sounds threatening to leak out. Your shoulders shaking from the effort, just as they did that day in the kitchen.
Although his expression remains the same, heâs quite dumbfounded.
Unable to contain the sounds any longer, you erupt into a fit of giggles as he continues to stare. The bright chimes of your laughter fill the room, a melodic tune he had longed to hear for so long.Â
âS-sorry, I just didnât expect you to⊠be so clumsy.â Giggles fragment your sentence along with a brief pause to collect yourself.Â
Clumsy. Yes, he remembers that word, an adjective you used to describe a dragon whenever he took on the shape you favored so much.
Of course, even a great beast like a dragon would totter and stumble when in such a foreign body.Â
Although he has been in this body for many, many years now, yet, Neuvillette hasnât acclimated to these fickle mortal attires.
If these garments werenât pushed into his hands by the Melusines and their bright-eyed stares, heâd prefer to not dawn them.Â
Neuvillette shuts his eyes. His lungs intake a deep breath, stifling the sway of these trivial inconveniences before they cause any ripples.
Once heâs certain there was no jagged edge to his stare, lilac hues peek back upon your figure.Â
By now those fits of giggles had faded into a tranquil lull, your content face focused on the stitches. Body relaxed against the back of the chair, weaving the needle through the sides of the tear.
Subconsciously, his frame begins to mimic yours, rigid muscles melting against the wooden support.Â
Lavender hues follow the disappearance of a sliver point, then catch its emergence from the fabric.
The torn and frayed edges draw closer and closer together by the coaxes of the thread, each stitch attentively placed by your graceful hands.Â
âNeuvillette?â Your serene voice interlaces with the placid interlude.Â
He hums an answer.Â
âThat night by the entrance⊠you said âYou're bound to this cove as wellâ.â The pace of the needle slows.Â
âWhy did you say that?â You finish your question.Â
Observant, a characteristic of yours heâs always deemed quite commendable. Ever so keen on the nuances of his sentences.Â
The piercing stare of draconic eyes weighs on your shoulders, despite that the cadence of the needle didnât falter. A ripple makes its appearance within a placid pool.Â
âDo you really wish to know?â He warns.Â
You hum resolutely. A bitter taste creeps its way up his tongue, the recollection of the string of words which damned him here.Â
Instinct advises him to swallow them back, to conceal his shame from your awaiting ears. However, answering the call of your curiosity should be enough of a repayment for repairing a coat.Â
âFor the rest of oneâs life, one shall never leave this cave deep beneath the tides. That is the curse set upon this body,â he reveals.Â
The needle stops.
âA curse?âŠâ you stammer out.Â
Under your breath, Neuvillette hears you recount the disclosed secret. Repeating it to yourself as if to decipher the syntax, to find some answers to his condemnation.
The answer was sitting just in front of him.Â
ââŠFor the rest of oneâs life⊠well, how long do dragons live?âÂ
To mortals, itâs time who is the reaper of their existence. From the moment a newborn sounds their first cry to the final draw of air on their deathbeds, it was the hands of a clock who ruled over them.
But such hands could not touch a being such as him.Â
âThe life of a dragon begins and ends in the Fontemer Sea, born from it, made from it, and shall return to it to be born again.â He wonders if mortals could grasp such a concept.Â
âOhâŠâ Your tone grew more somber.Â
Judging from your tonality, you mustâve pieced the allusions together.
To be contained within these stone walls with only a pool of seawater he could not touch as the opening, is to bestow upon him immortality he never asked for.
For the Hydro Dragon could not return to the Fontemer Sea.Â
Even if dragons had long lives, it didnât mean the humiliation of immortality. The true cruelty of this seemingly kind curse.Â
âWhy?â Your voice just barely above a whisper.Â
Why was he cursed? Why is he in this sham of a mortal body? Why did he reveal the secrets of his brethren? All of this at the trifling sight of bitter tears.Â
âBecause the people of Fontaine found my name and they wished for it.âÂ
Why did he give you his name? And why did you then give it away? There are many questions left unanswered by that tale.Â
Why did a proud dragon bow to the whims of a mere mortal in that fairytale?
A creature as potent as a dragon should never bow, not to the ordinances of false gods, not to the turbulence of fate, and not to a mere mortal.Â
 Why did a maiden wish for a dragon to become a human like them? Water is an adaptable element, able to take on any shape it pleases. However, it yearns to always return to its natural shape.Â
Perhaps, his ânaturalâ form appalled the devil too much. So much so, she used that one wish to confine him in the form she favored most.
More confoundingly, why did Neuvillette allow such a request? A creature favored by the usurpers dared to wish a dragon to abandon his heritage, to cross over the threshold of humanity just for their sake.
Why would a dragon ever bow to a mortalâs request?
The commandments of a false god and the howling thrashes of wind canât make a proud dragon bow, but the weight of love might be enough for a prideful beast to lower his head towards a mortal.Â
A traitor to his own fallen brethren is much too dignified of a title for Neuvillette. No, itâd be better to call him for what he is: A Fool.Â
What a spectacle it was that day, even those fickle gods peered down just to watch. A fool who lost his form and authority was imprisoned beneath the tides.
A stir shakes that pool, whirling and writhing, the billows of bitterness mounting.Â
â⊠could it be wished away?â Your voice beckons his thoughts to return to the present.Â
Unlike how it was written in those tales, a curse canât be âbrokenâ. Not by a kiss, and not by clasping oneâs hands together in prayer.Â
âNot even a miracle could make a curse vanish, a curse only ever goes away once its clauses have been fulfilled.âÂ
Until the stars burn out, until the sky caves in on itself, or until the oceans of this uprooted world dry up, he shall remain here. The retribution a traitor deserves.Â
He shall remain in this sham of a body, unable to become the form he desired the most in the next life heâll never reach.
Not a human, not a dragon, just an atrocity somewhere in-between. This must be what humans call âpurgatoryâ. Â
âI seeâŠâ Your attention never leaves the half-stitched garment sprawled upon your lap.Â
A heavy silence fills the space between you and him once more. To conclude a conversation on such a doleful note would be a disgrace.Â
However, what is he to say? What words can salvage this situation? Neuvillette has no talent for small talk, he doesnât have the same mortal heart as yours to provide you with any solstice.Â
Amidst his contemplation, a soft hum resounds through the quietude, and the melodic rhythm of a lullaby begins. It seems that you took matters into your own hands, ending the doleful silence at your own discretion.
Once more his back reclines into the wooden chair, pointed ears indulge themselves in a nostalgic tune.
Itâs strange, that rippling pool is swaying back to equilibrium. The surface returns to its placid rest as tension melts from his muscles.Â
Unaware of the hushed pitter-patter of a curious audience, drawn in by the gentle song as their bright eyes peer ever from the cover of the door frame.Â
--------------------------------------------------------------
âMadame! Look I got more Pluie Lotuses!â Kiaraâs little steps rush across the marble floor.Â
Getting up on the tips of her feet to show the bundle of fresh blooms, salty water still dripping from their petals, as her bangs stick flush to her face still damp from the sea. Her pink tail swaying behind her.
Your body turns in her direction just in time with Neuvillette.Â
âKiaraâŠâ A subtle layer of disapproval emerges from lilac hues.
âRemember to dry off before entering the estate, the floors can become quite dangerous when wet.âÂ
âButâŠâ the flowers lower. âI wanted to show Madame the lotusesâŠâÂ
Thereâs a drop in her tail and horns and a sharp sting to his chest. Her sisters were gathered around in a circle, a story having just concluded, he could feel their stares upon him. Adding to the sharpness of guilt.Â
âMy apologies, Kiara, I only meant to warn you.âÂ
She nods her head silently, tail still dragging on the floor. Ah, just what should he do? A frown begins to weigh down his face.Â
âThank you, theyâre wonderful, Kiara.â Your gentle chime breaks through the stalemate.Â
You take the bouquet from her mittened hands, placing them atop a counter, in exchange you offer her a towel.Â
âBut Neuvillette is right, itâs not good to run through the halls right after you returned from the waters. Itâs dangerous, okay?â Your voice as gentle as the towel rubbed over her hair and horns.Â
A content smile returns to her round cheeks as she diligently nods, promising that sheâll be more careful next time. Tail lifting up from the floor as the fluffy towel wipes away the ocean droplets.Â
Once fully dried, she joins her sisters. The Melusines cast shifting glances toward one another until one finally steps out from the crowd.Â
âMadameâŠâ Carole calls out softly, tugging a few times the hem of your long dress.Â
âHm?â Giving her your full attention, a towel set aside.Â
âI overheard you inquiring about names with Monsieur in the library once, could you beâŠâ Her eyes downcasted.Â
Oh. This time it was Neuvillette and you who exchanged glances, eyes both reflecting the same dread.
They werenât supposed to know. They werenât supposed to hear those slapdash guesses.Â
He never meant for them to find out. Always careful to never discuss such matters in their earshot.
For how could he bear to tell them that their cozy village was actually a prison?Â
His mind was unable to conjure up an excuse, tongue unwilling to speak it. They werenât supposed to find out. Oh, what shall he do now?Â
âCould you be expecting?âÂ
Huh?
Two pairs of eyes widened with bewilderment, mind stunned into silence and lips just as confused.
Somehow theyâve huddled even closer than before, encircling you and him with their bright eyes and tails swaying with anticipation.Â
âWill there be a new addition to the village?âÂ
âHow long do we have to wait?âÂ
âAre we getting a brother or sister?âÂ
Their chatter and probes homogenized into a jumbled symphony his flustered conscious just couldnât distinguish. Trying to reel his senses back from this unexpected turn of events. Neuvillette clears his throat.Â
âNo,â he coughs out.Â
A collective âawâ resounds through the air, their tails and horns drooping down at the announcement. Guilt pierced its nail through his chest once more. However, he couldnât lie to their bright eyes.Â
âN-not, yet.â You add to his statement.Â
A wave of inquisitiveâohâ ripples through the crowd. Tails picked up from the ground as the glimmer in their eyes returned.
A sweet lie sprinkled over the truth neither of you dare tell, that blood and water canât make wine.Â
âThen, do you want a little prince or little princess?â Carole chirps.Â
You remain silent, only gazing down at their faces as they stare back.
A lilac stare was also focused upon you, his curiosity awakening at this question as well. He watches you take a slow breath before leaning down.Â
âIâd like to have a daughter, sweet and kind like all of you.â Your hand strokes her soft trestles.Â
Her head nuzzles into your palm as giggles fill the air. Only draconic eyes study the small smile upon your lips, dipped in bittersweetness.Â
Did you have a lover back on the surface in this life? Perhaps someone who was promised to you. A real prince this time.Â
Did you have dreams of basking in the grace of the sun, cradling a bundle as a pair of tiny fingers encase around your own?
Was this the hard-earned happy ending you yearned for?
âMonsieurâŠâ Mamaere tugs on his slacks.Â
Neuvillette reigns his thoughts back from their escapade, he angles his head down.Â
âWhere does a baby come from?âÂ
The smile on your lips stiffen just as Neuvilletteâs body does.
If thereâs a god whoâs peering into this cavern deep below the land and sea, must they send such dilemmas his way?
How does one navigate through this treacherous domain?
âOh dear! I just remembered.â Your hands clap together.
âThereâs a few ribbons and clips in the fabric room, do you girls mind getting them? So we can braid Monsieurâs hair?âÂ
At once the Melusines stand at attention, focus diverted over their excitement at the prospect of decorating snowy locks.
The patters of their little steps trample down the hall, allowing you and Neuvillette a well-deserved moment of reprieve.Â
âThank you.â His posture drops slightly as a hefty sigh leaves him, lids shut for a moment of rest. Â
âOf course, SĂ©bastien.âÂ
His eyes crack open, casting you a glance with a raised brow. The ghost of a grin barely contained by delicate lips. By this time, Neuvillette couldnât recall all the past attempts.Â
âRegrettably, that is not my name.âÂ
âWas it at least a decent attempt?âÂ
He could hear the pout in your voice, one that didnât last long before a light-hearted laugh follows it.
Closing his eyes once more as he indulges in those chimes, he nods ever so slightly. It was a good attempt, for it brought out those sounds he enjoyed.Â
His lashes flutter open at the sensation of his hair getting gathered in your tender hold. Passing the carved wooden teeth of a comb through his snowy locks.
Careful to not pull or tug on them as you coaxed the tangles out of their knots. The heaviness upon his shoulders leaves with a deep exhale which left his body, indulging in your attentive touches.
Subconsciously, his gaze trails up at the bundle of flowers resting along the wooden table. It wasnât the periwinkle blush of the delicate petals that commanded his attention.
No, it was that salty, oceanic wisp mingled with the flora aroma. A fleeting essence of the sea.
âDo you miss the sea?âÂ
Ah, it seems that his stare wasnât as subtle as he had hoped. Neuvillette turns away from the flowers as if he had been caught amidst a scheme.
Facing in front of him, your paused hands signal your wait for his response.Â
âI suppose itâs only natural for me to long for it.âÂ
After all these years, Neuvillette believes he has finally grasped it, an answer to that void filled with âwhysâ. As if he had seized the reflection of a star from the bottom of a deep lake.
Neuvillette thinks he understands why you and the devil yearned for the sunlight.Â
Perhaps the one similarity between proud dragons and arrogant humans. They both ache to return to where they came from.
One yearns for the sea. One yearns for land.
For there and only there, could their sins and grudges be purged. To gain the most restful sleep before the hands of fate shape them anew from the element.
âHmm,â you hum in acknowledgment.Â
Fingers gentle and slow as they brushed through his hair. You hum a lullaby to accompany each pass of the comb. Melodies that made his ears yearn for more, craving for more sounds to leave your plush lips.Â
His hair had always been an inconvenience, capricious strands that were seemly curious of everything in his environment.
Snowy tresses find themselves gravitating towards door hinges, door knobs, and even the minuscule gaps in ornate furniture.
However, your patience hands untangled those unruly stands.Â
When a knot proves to be particularly stubborn, you tend to lend closer to hone in on the troublesome tangle.Â
It just so happens that a stubborn knot appeared, causing you to decrease the proximity between your bodies.
The heat radiating from your frame sends delightful pickles along his skin, a delicate warmth making his flesh grow feverish.Â
A hunger deep within begins to grumble and wallow, a greed that wishes to dig past those frivolous fragrances to get to the true taste he craves.
An ugly gluttony pleading to delve into your soft flesh. Ah, he recognizes the cause of this turbulence nowâŠ
Neuvillette clears his throat.Â
âI believe Iâm beginning to feel unwell, so please refrain from venturing into the cellar for the next few weeks. I should quarantine myself.â Too ashamed to turn back and face you.Â
âOh?...â The comb stops.
At this distance, he was well aware of your scent. A fine fragrance no water or bloom could hope to imitate. Concealed under a layer of lavish soaps and oils dropped from the surface was an aroma that was wholly yours and yours alone.Â
A gloved hand reaches up to cover his nostrils, seeking some barrier between that tantalizing whiff.Â
âPlease, excuse meâŠâ He pulls away swiftly.Â
The sudden action mustâve jostled his hair too much, for the sultry sensation of your fingertips was felt along azure âstrandsâ.Â
Just a minor touch against his horns, yet shudders rack up his nape. His teeth sink into the flesh of his bottom lip, sharper than theyâre supposed to be, anchoring those ravenous voices at bay momentarily.Â
He needs to leave now. For your sake.Â
Rushed strides stow a distance between his body and that delectable warmth of yours. His back turned to you as he couldnât bear to see the expression upon that saccharine face.Â
Just what expression were you making as a dragon retreated? Â
The cellar of this estate was always cold, its stones never having once touched the sunlight before, thus they only brood in their frigidity. A somberness fitting to quell a heat which yearned to burn.Â
The fever has consumed his body wholly, each pant leaving trails of foggy wisps. Neuvillette burrows deeper into the hoard of sheets, pillows, and blankets. The brush of the soft fabrics prickles his skin.Â
How strange it is that despite the fever of heat igniting each corner of his flesh, despite the numerous thick covers twisting and burying his bare form, heâs still shivering.Â
A chill ingrained so deep itâs in his very bones, skin alight but bones frozen over, just what is this purgatory?Â
Annually it happens, a period where primal instincts exude past the rigid confines of a mortal form. Making its influence in the resurgence of draconic features over the mortal flesh that traps him.
No matter how raw his true form claws to be released, the mortal prison doesnât relent. A curse heâs brought upon himself.
Laceratations of gluttony and cardinal sin sink deeper with each provocation. The creeks of the floorboards above and the sweet voice which leaked through the woods, the morsels of you that stirred the waters of instinct.Â
From the depths of the torrent, heâs so desperately suppressing came the unquenchable thirst to lure you in. Beckon you down to this shadowy cellar so that the ugly and primal waters could swallow you wholly.Â
But he mustnât. Those soft touches and smiles had just been bestowed upon him, the twine of trust still delicate. How could he ever squander such privileges? For those lovely eyes of yours to look at him filled with nothing but fear and disgust, heâd rather be chained down here for the rest of eternity.Â
He must endure it for a bit longer, he knows itâll be over soon. The gale which sweeps through him is slowly lessening its blows.Â
Even if the waters of primitive instincts howled and stormed, Neuvillette refused to leave this tangle of blankets and pillows. An unwavering grip refusing to submit to those demands. Thus nature had to find its own way to subsist off a drought.Â
The heat hazed over his mind, conjuring up fantasies to appease the ever-unsettled water from its vapid reality.
âNeuvillette?â A soft voice calls out.
Just like now. Desire fogs up his senses to create a delusion, mimicking the way your warm voice beckons him. Itâs nothing but a figment of his depraved lust.Â
âNeuvillette?âÂ
He buries his ears further into the down covers to block the alluring mirages. Tickling him to submit to the temptation. But he mustnât. Nothing more than a manifestation of lust.Â
 The phantom donning your sweet voice calls out for him, and gentle touches send shivers through his nerves. Ah, he must vanquish this mirage before the fraying line of his self-restraint splinters apart.Â
Nothing but smoke and mirrors conjured by desire, a rigid arm expels out from the covers to dissipate the sirenâs lure.Â
However, it wraps around something warm, a heat which his fever wails for. Intrinsically his shivering body covets that warmth, to be buried flush against the source so that this chill may finally stop its torment.Â
So like any greedy dragon, his claws enclose around temptation and drag it into his decrepit cave of blankets and sheets.Â
A satisfied purr judders through his stalwart body, a warmth which could finally reach his very bones. Thus, he burrows his face deeper into the shoulder of this phantom, a lovely aroma beckoning him to pull their soft body closer.Â
âNeuvillette?âŠâÂ
His eyes snap open, realization flooding through him just as the chill that had been ingrained into his bones. This wasnât an illusion. You werenât an illusion.Â
He tears himself away, just as a moth does once they realize a hypnotic flame had set their wings alight. Trembly arms firmly planted on either side of your body, snowy locks falling onto your face.Â
âAre you alright?...â The sapphire luminance of his elongated horns shines across those sinless eyes.Â
The strap of a nightgown halfway down your shoulder from when he snatched you beneath his savage form.Â
âYou⊠you shouldnât be here,â he breathes, voice unsteady and taut.Â
âYouâve been away for an awfully long time⊠I-â Your eyes were blown wide and lips pressed together, aghast gaze not daring to glance down at the raging rigidness pressed against the silk of your nightgown.Â
Frenzied shivers of pleasure jostles through his veins, tremors racking his body all the way to the tips of his horns. In desperation his rigidnesses pleaded to feel you, throbbing so painfully a hiss leaves his lips.
âYou need to leave, quickly please.â Leave before he traps you again.
 Before this pathetic excuse of a sovereign loses against himself, before he makes a fool of himself. Neuvillette tries to pull away, against the weeping wishes of his erections. Face too ashamed to even look at you, but a pair of tender hands guides his cheeks back.
â...But I missed youâŠâ You whisper.Â
Why are your hands embracing his face in this unsightly state? Are they not appalled by the patches of scales littered across them? Like a flame reaching out towards a moth.Â
âLeave, please.â Donât tempt him like this.Â
â... Donât you miss me?...â Your hold doesnât budge.
Why do you look at him like that? Irises filled with warmth as his image is reflected in the flickering candlelight. Gazing wholly up at him. A cerulean glow tinting your hair and supple body.Â
âDonâtâŠâ He reasons, the last of his sensibility crying a warning of a sinful fruit.Â
âPlease, Neuvillette⊠wonât you hold me for just a bit? I missed you so muchâŠ.â The shift of your shoulder causes the nightgown to slip further off your shoulder.Â
Donât call out to him like that. No, not as your bewitching body was so close to his. The glow of a candle illuminating the curve of your cheeks, disheveled hair framing your wide eyes.Â
Donât show him such a sight, for heâll salivate to devour you until his teeth rot.
âPlease?...â Coaxing his head down so that his forehead rests against yours.Â
Your warmth, your soft touches, and your delectable aroma, they parch his throat so much it pained him. Just as painful as attempting to swallow down sand from a hellish desert, it aches and lacerates his throat.Â
And here you were offering a lustrous fruit, so juicy and filled of sin, in front of his famished eyes. A cruel, cruel mercy.Â
â... MayâŠMay I?â Itâs unbearable, this parchedness in his throat, would you be so kind to quench it?Â
Your sweet hum grants him permission. Eyes closed just as you turn a blind eye to his ravenousness, still stroking his tender cheeks. Neuvillette couldnât deny himself any more of the warmth heâs coveted for oh so long.Â
Thus, he delves head-first into the glimmer of that enchanting flame. Burying his nose into the crook of your neck, so vulnerable and complacent, to hoard your bewitching fragrance all for himself. His skin flushed against yours as his bones delight in your heat.Â
The reigns of self-respect slip out from his hands as they let go in favor of running along your curves and edges. Each feature, your shoulders, and hips, aligns with details heâs long ingrained into his memory.
His fervor touches pushing down the silk fabric which dare disturb his worship. Nevuillette cants his head up momentarily, puffs of smothering breaths clouding the frosty air.Â
Lilac eyes drink up how the chilly air made your delectable breast perky, trailing down the goosebumps lining your torso, and landing on your exposed thighs.
A dryness itches in his throat as callused hands bite into the tender skin and he parts those placid legs away.Â
Oh, how could one ever take their eyes off that shiny, succulent fruit held out so openly in the hands of the tempter of all tempters?
They reveal to him the oasis heâd been hallucinating these grueling weeks. The tip of a serpentine tongue slips across his parched lips.
Since you so brazenly offered your body up to him, you wouldnât have any objects against him finally getting a taste, right?Â
His foreboding figure traverses downwards until his delirious face is right between the cusp of his salvation and demise.
Dilated pupils peering up at you for approval, an invocation for clemency from this drought. A merciful hand graces his cheeks once more, granting him his salvation and demise.Â
His tongue escapes past his parched lips, as lengthy as it was insatiable, it licks a slow and passionate strip up your slit. A taste he once would only recount in the depths of his recollections.Â
Does this new body of yours still have the same weaknesses? Will you still writhe in madness if he sucks on that delectable little nub? Or how about those hidden points concealed deep within?
Could this tongue of his bring you past the brink of insanity in this life as well?
There was only one way for Neuvillette to grasp the answers he sought. A long tongue slips past the entrance of your satin walls, welcomed with a lewd squelch.Â
Grip parting your legs from his path further. Those quivering calls of âNeuvilletteâand the pawing of your small hands against his head beckon him deeper.Â
Ah, redemption, itâs far too late for him now. For Nevillette has taken a bite out from that forbidden fruit, the evidence of it was dripping down his chin.Â
Ah, these slick velvety walls, he missed them. They clamp down with such ferocity along this beastly tongue, extensive enough to reach the deepest cavern of you.
A divine nectar begins to pool, Neuvillette retracts his tongue just enough for the heavenly taste to slide down his throat. Your sweet musk sends his olfactory system into chaos, rampant tongue returning to ravish you.
Not one drop of restraint left within him. Itâs beastly how heâs devouring you. His tongue craves more of the delicacy heâs denied himself these past years, a thirst no water could quench. Wet muscles sliding up the whole length of your slit in a meticulous long lap, his nose bumping into your clit.Â
Your mewls and sobs echo off the walls when he flicks his tongue over that sensitive nub. Your body jolts violently as the length of his tongue ventures into the honeypot, toes curling in the air, but his iron-clad grip doesnât allow any room for escape.
Delicate fingers now entangled into his tussled locks, grasping onto illuminated horns. You were likely trying to find something to ground your dissipating sanity, how unfortunate that your actions only flamed the fires.Â
A guttural growl echoed. Tongue now plunging further, slithering back and forth along your walls. For being such a sweet sacrifice for him, heâll give a reward. Slithering tongue making sure to drag against that spot heâs memorized.
Judging from how your feet were arching off the sheets, it seems this sinful detail of yours was repeated as well.Â
Your body writhes, no longer docile under the white searing pleasure frying the ends of every nerve within your being. Unrelenting rhythm slipping in and out of your convulsing walls, your body twitching and flailing in reaction.
Trying to find some way to handle this surcharge of sensations. Legs instinctively wanting to shut together as if to cease this turbulent sensation, unfortunately, your pitiful strength gave no resistance against his rigid hold.
He could feel your muscles begin to seize up, slick walls clamping harder on his writhing tongue. Was this foreign sensation too much for you already?
His long tongue explores every last crevice, tastebuds lapping against those weak spots deep within as his nose bumps and grinds against that lewd clit. This unsightly side of you.Â
Thereâs more fervor in the lashes of his tongue, slurping up the nectar trickling out your greed, mixing with his spit dripping down his chin.
Your legs trashing but unable to go anywhere in his unrelenting hold, only able to pull on his silky locks for dear life as sobs tumble out. A flood of arousal adds to the mess on his chin. One he gladly laps up.Â
Ohâs and ahâs were the only choked sounds your lips could make as your eyes rolled to the back of your scrambled mind.
Neuvillette still relishing in the elixir heâs denied himself for too long, not even the purest water could compare. Reveling in the taste until every last drip ran down his parched throat.Â
Pulling away, a trail connects his lips with your quivering folds. Callous hands dig further into your legs, making room for his body. Watching as the movements of your chest slowed, his brute figure engulfed your frame.
The ache was unbearable now, each impatient throb reprimanding him for delaying their greed. Neuvillette couldnât deny their request any longer.
Back sitting up straight, his cocks thrumming against his abdomen, precum exuding out from their swollen heads. Â
The cool air did little to calm the throbs of his fervors, the girthy shaft standing tall as its engorged tip weeped precum, its twin weeping just the same.
They hover over the softness of your belly, sharp pupils trail up the shadow they cast, heralding to where they crave to be buried.Â
The heat of his body was suffocating, the burn in his throat greater than ever before. But why? He had drank from that forbidden oasis, itâs dripping down his chin, yet why has his thirst grown greater than before?Â
Neuvillette was so⊠so close. If he had only endured it for another day or two, the gale within him wouldâve relented and retreated away in defeat. But oh how viciously itâs gloating in its victory. Getting a dragon to bow his head to its cardinal blows.Â
âDo you⊠feel better now, Neuvillette?â Slow pants leave your curled lips as your hands reach up to caress his taut face.Â
This brazenness, this shamelessness, this insolence. Ah, these characteristics have followed you through the grave and into this life as well. You werenât skilled enough this time around to hide your desire glazed across your pupils.Â
Did you do this in hopes of making him indebted to you? Offer your sweet body in return for stealing his name from his locked lips? Was this why you traversed down to this dark cellar so late in such flimsy silks?
That gleam in those deceptive eyes, the audacity to believe you could tame the sea with just a flick of your finger. You devious temptress.Â
âBetter?⊠youâve only fanned the flames, you devious woman.â A snarl from the depths of him.Â
Before another word could leave your lips one torrid hand pins your wrist to the sheets. Nails much too sharp to be human dig into those fickle and troublesome fabrics hiding your skin from his touch.
An all too satisfying rip resounding through the air along with your yelp. Scraps join the tangle of sheets.Â
Did his mortal prison deceive you too much? Did his mild mannerisms trick you into believing that heâs a merciful soul? Or did you always ignore the warnings?
A monster with a human face is still a monster. To believe that oneâs patience is endless, only a human could be this impertinent.
His other vascular hand slides down the curves of your body, settling on your hip as your legs hook behind his firm thighs. The ridges of his lower cock drag against your slick folds, wetting his girth from its leaking tip sliding down against your swollen clit.Â
Precum mixes with the concoction as the glossiness spreads about his length. A pair of shaky breaths mingle as Neuvillette positions his engorged tip at your dripping entrance.
The sensation mustâve cleared the daze from your mind, your head cants downwards to stare at the two oddities.Â
âA-are both of them going toâŠâ Your grip tightens on the sheets, a subconscious search for comfort.Â
Ah, now you remember danger. Now you realize your insolence to believe that a mere human could ever tame a proud dragon.Â
âThere wonât be any point in breaking you so quickly,â he snarls. Not missing the flutter of your hole as the weeping head dragged over it. It wouldnât be good to break you so quickly. His sweet little sacrifice.Â
Taking the erection which hung lower, he rubs its flushed tip along your slit. Each flinch and tremble sparked gratification through his veins.
The lashes of his tongue had aided in the preparation of these sinful walls, but the girth of his beastly tongue could not compare to the thickness pressed against these leaking folds.
The ghost of his breath flutters over your prickling skin. Neuvillette takes deeper breaths as the weight pressed against your core grew, the bulbous tip inching past the puckering entrance.
The stretch was maddening despite the restrained pace. Your walls fluctuate in a surging dance between clamping down and trying to remain relaxed.
As Neuvillette sinks his girth in bit by bit, its envious twin slithers against your aching clit. The sensitive bundle of nerves drags against each ridge and vein, sending jolts of searing pleasure through him and causing your satin walls to flutter.Â
A velvety sack kisses against your slick folds, signaling that his length has reached its end. The fat tip of its twin resting just above your naval indicated just how deeply he was buried, trapped between your soft flesh and his sculpted body.
Itâs crowded inside you, girth parting and stretching these satin walls while the length is pressed against the deepest most intimate part of you.
Forcing delectable little whimpers and gasps from your haughty lips. Quivering legs now locking ankles behind his back, like a pitiable attempt to hamper him.Â
That arrogance disgraced to nothing but obscenity upon a wanton face. To see the devil so helpless and lewd under the manipulation of a dragon. What a wonderful sight.Â
Surely your body remembers his. If not, then heâll ensure it does now, heâll engrain it into you for the next life.Â
One cock slid against the satin ridges of your walls, the other indulging along your searing skin and grinding against your clit. He canât deny how addictive your body always has been.Â
Dragging as far back as your locked legs would allow him, the flushed head of one dick kisses your twitching clit, and he sinks back in.
Grunts and purrs reverberate through his throat, teeth clenching as your heat engulfs him again. Reaching deeper into your welcoming core as your lips fall open.Â
His pace is methodical and controlled to his liking. Drawing out his cock inch by thick inch, sloppy trails of arousal caught on each ridge.
Each time making your core empty and yearning to clench around his girth. Just as a whine would leave your drooling lips, his hips would return to you what your core longed for.Â
Pushing each tantalizing inch to stroke your starved walls until his skin claps against yours with a wet kiss. Back and forth, back and forth the resounding slaps echoed. Mingling with his low groans and your pitched gasps, creating a sacrilegious yet divine hymn.
Your hand rakes deeper into his toned back possessed by desperation.
A few snowy strands are trapped between your writhing fingers. Pulling him closer to your smoldering skin, causing your clit to grind intensely against his swollen cock, as its twin twitches within your velvety folds.
Those babbles falling from your fed lips, were they pleas for him to bestow upon you leniency or begging him to speed up?Â
âDo you wish to climax?â A polite façade purrs into your ear.Â
Lilac eyes were not ignorant to how a devil keens under his body, her gaze drunk off a feverish potion of lust and desire. He could feel it, these velvet walls aching for more, for his girth to jostle your core more, to extinguish this all-consuming ache within you.Â
âThatâs too bad.â
 His hips remain steady contrasting against the unevenness of your own pants, unaffected by your desperate mewls. Youâve been selfish enough, youâve been greedy enough. If he were to grant you a taste of ecstasy, then itâll be on his terms.Â
He hasnât gotten his fill yet, no, he wants to pound his shape forever into these lewd walls. The way they contract and squeeze around his girth with each drive of his hips, theyâre practically begging him to.
Thus, he accelerates just a bit more, then a bit more, then a bit more again. Nearly folding you with how flushed he was against you.Â
The heavy scent of lust, the smothering heat, his unrelenting and unshakable thrusts amalgamating into a spark. One which set the both of you ablaze. Your nails digging into his skin and eyes reaching the back of your head. Sobs and incoherent prattles resound through the room.
Your devious walls clamped around his length with maddening convulsions, gummy muscles suckling to guide his throbbing head to your deepest greed. It was too much.
Neuvillette was powerless as his body pressed yours deeper into the damp sheets, trying to grasp onto any fleeting wisps of control as euphoria overtook him.Â
Sinking his ravenous teeth into the tangle of the sheets beside your neck, he stifles the admission of his defeat.Â
A heftiness is spilled within your walls and paints the expanse of your skin in an all-consuming wave. Thick release coating every corner of your core, to finally quell that ravaging heat.
Each subsequent twitch pours more into your crowded cavity and stains your skin. The filthiness of it all seemingly prolongs your sinful depravity.Â
Chest expanding with pants, pressing your erected nipples against his taut chest. Neuvillette remains buried against you, brutish arms holding your body flush against his.
As if to anchor you, to not allow the turbulent waves of madness to sweep you far from him, or him from you. Keeping your quiver body safe against his.Â
In the darkness behind his shut lashes, he felt it. Your soft caresses his silky tresses and heaving body. Even as your body heaves and quivers in exhaustion, why must you touch him so tenderly?
Why must you be so cruel? If your hands keep caressing his clammy skin, stroking his peeking scales, heâll misunderstand.
Heâll believe the delusion that you love him.
Him and not the swaying flower fields of the sunkissed surface.Â
Whispers cut through the haze of lust and passion, warnings crying for Neuvillette to escape. So he pulls his face from the tangle of sheets, lungs huffing as his eyes find yours.
Exhaustion muddles the hues of your gaze, but not enough to completely smother that glimmer still present. Ah, he knows that that glimmer was.Â
Even in his heat-induced daze, heâs not naive enough to believe the sincerity presented in your eyes was anything other than duty.
He doesnât want to be reminded that those hands, which cup his face with such tenderness, are bound by a sense of duty.
A reminder that heâs merely just a stepping stone on the path of your true desire.
He doesnât want to see it.Â
The head of his cock parting with a deafening squelch. A darkened gaze follows the pool forming between your splayed legs. Disgruntlement muddles lilac hues.Â
But such discontent couldnât last long when the twitch of a neglected length protests. Its bulbous tip longed for its turn within those sticky walls. A primal ordinance he couldnât resist.
What to call this sensation, to scorn yet desire you just as much.Â
It wasnât long before your hips were maneuvered up, your plush ass now up in the air as your quivering arms and face pressed into the sullied sheets.
As one hand supports your unsteady hips. Sharp eyes surveying the puffiness of your cunt, glistening with temptation and dripping with sin.Â
Hooked fingers slides up the weeping slit, collecting the sacrilegious mixture. Earning an addictive whimper from you when his digits pulled away. Spreading them in front of his gaze, tracing over the stringy nectar stretched between them.Â
How strange, those lying lips of yours whimper for ârestâ and a âmoment to catch your breathâ. Yet your body is still so eagerly exposing itself to his eyes, agape cunt so eagerly twitching and slick.Â
You donât even try to writhe yourself away from his hold, not even a single attempt to hide yourself from his hunger.
How skilled you are at fanning the flames, perhaps it's a talent inherent to devils like you. The tempter of all tempters.Â
Youâve always been like this since the very first rendition.Â
If only you werenât so strong-willed. If only you werenât so clever to trick him. If only you werenât so enchanting.Â
Then he wouldnât have bent to your whims, the sea wouldâve cleansed out the mortal filth from stolen land. Then he wouldnât be trapped in this disgrace of a body. Then he wouldnât be in love with you.
The betrayal, the disgrace, and this punishment wouldâve never happened if only a fool didnât surrender everything for a mere, fleeting creature.
Why must you make him repeat the same mistake again?
There it was again, that surging torrent within him making its voice known in the echoes of his mind. Whispering the hint on how a dragon would defeat the flame that had scorched him those years ago.
Smother the flame with the tides of depravity and vulgarity. Taint your arrogance with shame.Â
There wasnât an ounce of gentleness remaining within his eyes, a beastly hunger taking its place.
Yes, you must pay the debt of reducing him to such a humiliating state.
His neglected cock prods against that greedy cunt of yours. Unmerciful hands bruising the plushness of your hips.Â
The sinful concoction from the previous sessions allowed his tormented length into your walls without resistance.
The neglected cock finally indulging in the spasms of your abused walls, itâs its turn to bully those weak spots with its thick head.Â
Sobs sung in broken chokes leave your drooling lips. Trembling fingers enmeshed into the fabric as if to find some ground for your senses to land after their fall from euphoria.
He wonât allow you reprieve. No, not even for a moment. Heâll shatter your sanity and arrogance once and for all.Â
Nothing interrupted the pistoning of his hips as he fucked you through overstimulation, heavy balls slamming against your swollen lips.
The previous twin cock was now experiencing the hard nub of your engorged clit running along its veins and ridges.Â
Thereâs no room for an exchange of words. No, the two of you have long been pasted that point.
No sandy ground beneath as the two of you sank under the ravenous tides of primal instincts and pleasure.
Cacophonous growls, whimpers, and sobs filling the absence along with the thwacks of skin against skin echoed back from the cellar walls.Â
You keen under the ram of his hips, jostled head writhing against the soiled sheets. The motion allows your hair to fall over your shoulders.
Exposing an untainted patch of skin. Sharp pupils watching how beads of sweat trailing down your nape reflect the azure glow of his body.Â
An itch assailing his fangs even has his hips continue their barrage against your soft ass. Those lovely vulgar moans wane out from his hearing as his senses could only obsess over the untarnished expanse.Â
Ah, what if thereâs a way for him to pin you here until the stars themselves burn out? You were given to him as his bride.
An offering made to him.
So why canât he forever confine you within his clutches? Just as you were the original sin which damned him to this cove.
Long tongue dragging along the fresh skin, feeling the jolts of your body.Â
Heâs done it once before, heâs cursed you before. Imprinting a curse upon your very soul, one which followed you through the hands of death and even when the hands of life reformed your body from the earth.
Why not renew it?Â
Neuvillette pins your upper body further into the tangled bedding, one hand abandoning your hips in favor of raveling in the mess of fabric.
Your heated skin felt against his exhilarated fangs, hungry to sink into your nape.Â
âTill death do us partâ, thatâs not enough.
Such fleeting mortal oaths are much too meek for dragons.
No, those atrocious murmurs in his thoughts command him to curse you in the next life. And the next one, and the one after that as well.Â
Itâs not like your muddled head would understand, nothing but mindless prattles and mewls from the suffocating pleasure only he could ever give you.
But thatâs fine, just drown nicely in lust and desire. Heâll always be waiting there at the bottom to drag you down deeper.Â
Just as the tips of his pointed teeth broke through quivering skin, delicate fingers grasp upon a burly hand.
Intertwining their grasp together upon rumpled linen, a subconscious search for comfort.
An action that remits an iota of reason back to his foggy mind, hazy eyes moving toward the sight of your hand clutched around his.Â
Even as heâs ravishing your weeping walls, flooding your body with his filthy essence which trickles down your thighs and ass, and chasing his own carnal needs⊠you still reach for him.
Shamelessly pulling his touch closer, even when the throes of rapture banished all thought from your jostled mind.Â
A whisper resurfaces amidst the fog and clamor of instinct and rage.
However, itâs a whisper which made his incisors dare not budge another inch. The inkling of truth which he thought he had silenced within the depths of his heart.Â
The accuracy that this wasnât love. No, what his instincts craved was not love, it was obsession.Â
For love was not this sadistic possession, not to curse you just to ease his own damnation.
No, love is supposed to be much like the warmth of your palm flushed against his knuckles.Â
He remembers now, the lesson you taught him all those years ago. A demonstration witnessed with his own eyes.
Love was sacrifice, just as how you offered yourself to the tides, quelling the rage of a vengeful dragon. Because you loved your village too much to allow them to drown.Â
Retreating away from the transgression almost committed, fangs repressed behind closed lips. Neuvillette presses a sweet kiss against the shallow wound.
 To love you isnât to steal you away from the embrace of the star whoâs forsaken him. Itâs to hoist you up to that beloved sunlight. Just where you belonged.Â
Oh, how could he not love you?
The bride offered to a dragon in a white dress who once dared to command the great beast to stand still as she braided flowers into his hair.
A brazenness contrasted with the gentleness of her smile.Â
The voices of heart and cruelty rang out in vociferous battle in his mind, Neuvillette buries his face into your shoulder. Pursuing the savor of your skin, pinning you deeper into the tangle of bedding.
Providing more simulation for the pulsing cock wedged against your swollen clit and messy sheets. The neediness of his movements exposed just how close his undoing was.Â
The hand on your abdomen pulled you impossibly close, adding pressure to the bulging outline of his cock.
Amplifying the ecstasy coursing through your veins, abused walls clamping down on each ridge and each vein of his heft girth. The shape engrained into your wanton core, marvelous sobs and mewls echoing off the empty walls.Â
Soon those moans become shattered in your throat, eyes rolling back further with each heavy thrust and slap of his balls. Lungs cease all function as rapture unravels you wholly and exhilaration becomes your undoing.Â
Sloppy contractions mix the repercussions of multitudinous ruination, dripping out your convulsing cunt. Just before a hot surge replenishes the brood that oozed out on the sullied sheets.
Grunts vibrate against your back reminding your body to breathe.Â
Thick ropes paint your belly and sheets, making an absolute mess. Contracting walls trying but failing to contain the aftershocks from his cock buried deep within, already stretched to their limits, capacity long exceeded. Shudders rack your body and his the same.Â
With hands still entangled, he coaxes your body around. Granting him a mesmerizing view of your debauched face.
The face heâs so enamored with that he bows his down closer, bodies still connected as he wishes to echt every last detail of you into his being. So that eternity may remember you.Â
Softness resurfaces in his bones, a tender kiss pressed upon your fingers. Soothing those tremors as he guides your consciousness back to reality.Â
He holds you, remaining inside as to contain his greed spilled deep inside. The heftiness of his cock prods against your shuddering walls. Every last fiber of your being overstimulated with pulsing pleasure.Â
Yet, your hand refused to let go. Still holding him toward your exhausted figure in the dying light of the candle.
Whimpers and coos exchanging in a duet of devotion, a hymn so placate it quells the vapid torrents ever so slightly.
Placid fingers drawing circles into your sore back. A gentle lilac gaze keeping watch as your teary eyes retire behind heavy lashes.Â
Blood and water no matter how much theyâre mixed, wonât produce wine.
However, just for tonight in a realm heavy with lust, passion, and phantasm, theyâll craft a wine of delusion. One filled with nothing but wishful fantasy.Â
However, this wine of delusion shall be enough to quench the thirst of lascivious compulsions and vengeance.Â
The gentle caresses of steam ghost past your leaden lashes, lukewarm ripples lap against your skin. Your sore body propped up against the porcelain, as Neuvillette drags a dampened towel along your skin.Â
A pang of guilt stung him each time the cloth passed over a discolored imprint. No amount of diligent rubs would purify your skin of those bruises in the shape of his fingers.Â
A stir from muscle gradually awakening from slumber reflected in the wavelets of the bath. The sensation of a damp towel mustâve further jolted your senses back to alertness.Â
A cerulean glow glistens off the polished surface as your vision finally centers on the figure rising warm water over your limp body.
Attentive eyes immediately connect with yours as he scans your expression for discomfort.Â
âAre you hurting anywhere?â Neuvillette halts the towel.Â
You respond with a slow shake, your throat must be too sore to answer. Despite how he tries to conceal them behind a robe, blotches of azure painted along his fair skin.
Proof that draconic influence was still in rebellion of his body. All the while heâs very much aware of your eyeâs every move. What an appalling sight it must be for you.Â
âIf I make you uncomfortable Iâll leave promptly, this was just the only solution I could find to bathe-â
âItâs fine, I donât mind.â Voice hoarse as your frame melts closer to his, delicate fingers intertwining with between the spaces of his own scaly fingers.
Allowing your breaths to minge in tandem in the steam-damped tiles of the tranquil bathroom.Â
âDoes it hurt?â A warm thumb traces soft circles along the rough scales along his hand.Â
Did you catch the subtle twitches and jolts of his muscles? A mortal body rejecting draconic influences, draconic influences revolting against a mortal cage. Still, he shakes his head. Lilac gaze watching your eyes trail between the scales and his eyes with skepticism.Â
âIâm not quite sure as to why Iâm still in this⊠state.â Neuvillette gives a preemptive answer to the question he assumes to be hanging off your tongue.Â
âDo you⊠miss the sea?â However, it seems you had another inquiry hidden in your ever perplexing mind.Â
A deep sigh resonates through the tranquil air. He stares at the tips of his fingers dipped into the warm water, a taunting substitute for the sea that called for him.Â
âI suppose itâs natural that I yearn for itâŠâ
A hum was your only response, eyes hidden behind closed lashes. Neuvillette just couldnât decipher that smile of yours, curled lips reflected over the rippling surface of the steaming water.Â
--------------------------------------------------------------
âYour body is still delicate, please let us return back to the estate-â
âI might actually grow roots into that bed if Iâm to rest there any longer.â A pout was evident in your voice.Â
Taking a few greater strides, your body pulls in front of Neuvilletteâs pace. It was only momentary of course, for he swiftly rejoins your side.
Observant eyes not missing the subtle wobble in your steps along the pastures of the village.
âPlease just donât stray too far.â He relents, offering up his arm for support.Â
With a gracious smile, your arm curls around his, interlocking your fingers with his as two pairs of steps ambled along the grass.
Soon a familiar pool of water came into view, enticing two pairs of eyes with its glimmering ripples.
What it strange sight those waters showed, a cursed dragon who yearned for his place and a cursed mortal who longed for the sun, two cursed beings holding hands in the reflection along the pristine surface.Â
âI believe this is far enough. â His arm pulls your frame closer, a subtle hesitance tainting his tone.Â
However, your body didnât budge. Resolute stance not moving even one bit watching your reflection warp and contort in the water. A deep breath echoes off the wall.Â
âNeuvillette⊠do you miss the sea?â Your stare parts with the water, now peering straight into his lilac hues.Â
âDo you miss the sea?â Youâve asked him this question many times. He's always given a composite response, but maybe his flowery words diluted the meaning too much to your ears.Â
âYes, I do miss the sea.â His candid yearning.Â
There was a question his lips didnât dare ask, âDo you miss the sun?â, Neuvillette wanted to riposte your questions with this question of his.
But he knew it would be pointless, for he already knew the answer. Wordlessly written all over your melancholic stare into the pond, the longing to return to the sun, to be with blood and not water.Â
To love you, would be to hoist you up to where you longed to be, in the embrace of the warm sun. Neuvillette had thought he made up his resolve long ago.
However, would it be too selfish of him to wish to turn back?
To convince you to back into the tranquil estate where the Melusines await your return with those dishes you taught them how to cook.
Or maybe would at least try on those gowns still untouched? Could you wait until all those books in the library were read through by your sweet voice?
Would you be oh so kind enough to hold his hand just for a moment longer? At the very least, would you allow him to memorize your warmth?Â
His grip on your hands tightens ever so briefly, a shaky breath trembles in his chest before he releases it along with the tension in his fingers.
No, it wouldnât be fair to stall any longer, you deserve your happy ending.Â
Calmly, the dragon bows his head closer to yours. Ignoring the aggrieved voices that cried for him to swallow back to secret just about to spill from his tongue.
The ending of this tale wonât ever change, for a dragon is just as foolish as he was before.Â
âMy true name is-!â His voice was stunned as a pair of soft lips silenced him.Â
Your lips pressed against his own, forcing back the secret. His bewildered eyes hone in upon your face, but your lashes were shut as your hands pull his face closer. The resolve wanes from his bones as he sinks into your embrace.Â
As your lips pull away, gasping for breath. He places his hands atop yours, searching your face for an answer. All he got was that indecipherable smile.Â
Pulling his face down closer to yours again, your lips find themselves right next to his pointed ears. Under a faint breath which left your parted lips came the secret he kept locked away.
Since when? When did you find his name? Or⊠did you know this whole time?Â
Neuvillette reels back in the embrace of your cruel hands. Lilac eyes stare deep into yours, peering through the cracks in that enchanting façade of yours.Â
Ah, this whole time, did he not discover the false innocence in the irises of the deceptor of all deceptors?Â
A foolish moth fell for the deception of a devil once again, flying to the flicker of a candle until his wings were charred off into ash.
Those sentences written upon parchment werenât lies, all other monsters fall secondary to the devil. Even a dragon.Â
âWhy?â Was all he could muster, oh cruel devil why did you play him a fool once more?
âBecause I wanted to see you again⊠but I knew you wouldnât quite share the same sentiment since the moment I heard your voice⊠so I lied,â Those audacious eyes of yours never looked away.Â
Ah, how could he forget how crafty and observant a devil is with her schemes? The charming enchantment as she performs her deceptions. Speaking shameless lies with those bewitching lips.
âIf you wanted to see me⊠then that day at the loch⊠why werenât you there?â The stir of the torrent within put a snarl into his throat.
Why must you keep lying to him?Â
Ah, from the start, Neuvillette shouldâve listened to the clamorous cries of his instincts. To withdraw away from the flame, to extinguish the hell fires before they left another lesson learned upon his skin.
Yet, heâs still within the embrace of your cruel hands. His body just wouldnât pull away.Â
Just what is this level of stupidity called? For a moth to still crave the warmth of the flame which charred its wings into ash. Just what is this lunacy called?Â
âThe nobles locked me away after those tyrants stole your name from my tongue, they locked me away.â Torment brewing in those irises which reflected him.Â
A chill staggers the surge of the torrent, an icy sting which stupefied the rampaging currents.
For generations upon generations of scribes and poets never penned this detail down in any rendition of a classically beloved tale.Â
âI begged them, I banged against the bars of the cell, even clawed at the stone walls until my fingers were raw, but they left me there to rot in the cold⊠I just wanted to see you one last time, just once more.â Those bitter pools formed in your penitent eyes spill over.Â
This wasnât how the tale was supposed to end. The maiden, who deceived a dragon for her people, was supposed to be hailed a hero. You were supposed to have a happy ending, so why didn't you get that?Â
âAll I ever wanted was for you and me to walk amongst humanity⊠look where that got usâŠâ Tears descend from your cheeks and onto the grass below, a humorless chuckle.Â
Was this another lie falling from those saccharine lips of yours? Sugar dusted on the shell of a vile trick? Neuvillette wasnât sure anymore.Â
âThat foolish wish of mine⊠it mustâve been so painful. Iâm so sorry.â Your thumb traces over the scales dotted over his cheek, evidence of a draconic rebellion against a mortal condemnation.Â
Does your touch scorn or soothe him? Neuvillette wasnât sure anymore.Â
âIâm sorry. Iâll say sorry one thousand times if you wish.â A tremor in your voice.
The surge within him couldnât sustain itself, faltering and receding back to a placid, pathetic ripple. Perhaps⊠It's tired.
Tired of holding onto this futile grudge. Not when the bitter answers its tides were ravenous for had finally sunk in.Â
He takes a deep breath, collecting his resolve.Â
â...what⊠what do you wish for?â Just how will this rendition end? Neuvillette doesnât know.Â
But he knows his hands should hold onto yours, desperately etching the details of your tender touch into its memory. Rations to sustain him for the rest of a solitary eternity.Â
He hears your slow inhale, preparing your throat to speak your selfish desires.Â
âI wish for your curses to become mine alone to bear.â You reveal your selfish wish, pressing the voucher of freedom into his hands.Â
He had that look on his face again. Disbelief stupefied each muscle of his dashing face, wide eyes peering into yours trying to find the hint of a jest. Your gaze doesnât waiver as your finger tightens around his.Â
âGrant me my wish⊠please.â Lips stretching with a reassuring smile.
His lips press into a thin line, face returning to its place between your warm hands, he takes a deep breath. Perhaps itâs just his sense of responsibility and fairness that compelled him to fulfill this wish.Â
Or maybe, the dragon just couldnât help but submit to the whims of his beloved, a statement that remained no matter what rendition of the tale it was. Â
Releasing the breath he held, the shift in the air was palpable, a lightness in his chest. The pond off to the side billows momentarily, drawing focus toward its excited ripples.
Releasing his hold, feet leading him to the side of the saltwater before his mind could process his own actions.Â
He could hear it again, the hymns of the water singing the end of his exile. Reaching out a hand, it sinks past the cool surface, the tides welcoming back their prince with mellow kisses.Â
The ocean calls for him, so why is he still staring back at you? The one whoâll never embrace the sea again for the rest of her life, nor ever feel the sway of Summer days in a field full of Pluie Lotus. His eyes conveyed a question his lips couldnât bear to ask. Thus, you give the answer he seeks.Â
 âThink of it as my reparations to you, an overdue apology for my mistake, for making you to suffer so much.â That glimmer in your eyes, one he understands now.Â
Moving the hex to a body whose true master was the mistress of time, a body blessed with mortality. If a miracle isnât enough to make a curse break, then perhaps the tides of time could.Â
Taking a piece of the curse with each tick of a clock, just like how the waves take with it grains of sand from warm beaches.Â
Once a withered mortal body is called back to the earth, the clauses will be fulfilled after many centuries. Unsettled grudges eroded away like those sandy banks.Â
Until the pull of the ground makes its visible influence on your skin. Until your locks come to resemble the snowy shade youâve lovingly run your fingers through. Until the sweet earth hums for you to embrace it once more, you shall remain here.Â
What a clever scheme it all is, a masterful plan which could only ever be conjured by you. You devil, oh so devious, devil.Â
âYou can hate me, I won't hold it against you,â you whisper. âMay this tale end in your happiness, let me do this much for you.â
A bitter bile festers at those lies of yours. How could such lies fall from your lips so easily when they always left such a vile taste upon his tongue?
Gaze honed in upon your frame, watching the gentle smile hold back the slight quiver of your shoulders. He stands back up, slow strides returning him to your side. Taking your hands into his larger ones, placing your soft touch back along his cheeks.Â
âSilence⊠I wonât hear such deceit.â Snowy locks brushing against your fingertips.
âBut I wasnât lyingâŠâ Confusion furrows your brow, but your hands remain cupping his face.
Moving away, he studies the rivulets of regret and anguish that leave bitter trails down your cheeks. He swallows back the objections clawing up his throat, such vile words donât belong on your tongue.Â
âHow could I hate you?â he confesses.Â
Neuvillette has finally come to a realization. All those renditions, all those differing retellings of a classic tale. He had read them all wrong, basis clouding his interpretation.Â
For the princess did love her dragon. Just as he loved her, all this time.Â
Together in the depths of a cave away from the prying eyes of the divine. Breaths in time with one another as they stand in the embrace of one another, until the dragon bows his head back down.
Touching his forehead to hers, so that maybe Neuvillette could get a glimpse into that ever mystical mind of yours.Â
âHow can I ever hate what Iâve coveted for so long?â He asks.Â
That ever-stirring torrent, that spiteful surge, where did it go? Those clamorous voices with their vengeful snarls and cynical bellows, why werenât they intrepid enough to direct those foul words toward you?Â
Not you, never you. How could they ever hate you, the heroine of a Fontainian fairytale theyâve pitifully yearned for so long?Â
âAm⊠am I loved then?â Your lashes were squeezed shut as if death was rapping upon them. Too cowardly to face the verdict.Â
âYes⊠yes, you devious devilâŠâ Neuvillette couldnât help but chuckle at such an endearing sight.
He feels your fingers tense around his skin, astonishment in the features of your face. It soon melts away into those welling pools as a smile pushes against the corners of your eyes.Â
Pressing your forehead to his, a warm droplet rolls down your cheek and over the curve of your lips. He simply rests his head against yours.
Only now in the last sentence of this retelling of a tale which has been twisted, distorted, and embellished away from the initial narrative did an unwritten truth emerge.Â
A clever maiden was just as foolish as a proud dragon. The weight of their foolishness was so great it dragged them beneath the waves and kept them in a cove deep away from the prying eyes of gods.Â
However, if this idiotic dragon could intertwine his fingers with yours. If he could be by your side until the hands of time call you back to the earth in this final rendition.Â
If he could be the happy ending you deserved, then he wouldnât mind in the slightest.Â
Fin~
©ïžvivalabunbun DONâT PLAGIARIZE, REPOST, OR TRANSLATE ANY OF MY WORKS.Â
#neuvillette x reader#genshin impact x reader#genshin x reader#vivalabunbunfics#genshin impact x you#genshin smut#neuvillette smut#neuvillette angst#neuvillette fluff#yandere neuvillette#neuvillette x y/n#neuvillette x you#genshin fluff#genshin angst#genshin x you#neuvillete x reader
5K notes
·
View notes
Text
âwatch me, don't touch me, love me, don't hurt me.â
[title is from ive's accendio. gif not mine.] summary. you are the fop of the wizarding society, known for your shallowness and careless display of wealth, but as hogwarts faces another threat, the marauders and lily, find themselves drawn to you and the secrets hidden under your facade. (harry just wants to know what is going on.)
pairing/s. marauders x reader. (james potter/lily evans/remus lupin/sirius black/reader.)
wc. 24.1k.
tags. enemies to lovers, angst, hurt but the comfort is later, fluff(ish), i try slow burn for the first time (it hurts.), this is highly self-indulgent idgaf, set during goblet of fire but i decide what goes, voldemort isn't the only character who can revive from the dead, BITCH. OH, LMAO I FORGOT, THIS IS FOR THE DILF AND MILF LOVERS SDKJFHSF they're married, but remus and sirius keep their name for legal and plot reasons. adult marauders and adult reader! and i was careful this time to not use any specific pronouns or gendered terms so everyone can enjoy the pain!! every1 is hurting 2nite. proofread kind of, so we die like. . . harry potter?
cws. here we go... canon-typical violence, vivid description of injuries, pain, and blood, emotional abuse, trauma, self-destructive tendencies, minor character death (non-canon), pureblood society practices, voldemort is his own warning, brief mention of war, brief scene with abducted children, panic attacks, depictions of mental illness, suic!dal thoughts, bellatrix lestrange is also her own warning, morally-grey reader.
a/n: this is inspired by my most favorite finnick odair fic EVER! obviously, i won't ever reach that level of greatness, but i've had this idea in my head ever since i read that story. sometimes, i just want to cry at night to feel something, LMFAO. halfway through writing this story, i got insecure, so thank you to this eye-opening comment on reddit that i found that will forever change how i look at reader inserts: âfor me, a reader should be faceless, but not soulless.â
to my dearest friends and readers, i hope you enjoy this world that i've written for you ueueue. (the next and final part is fluffier, i promise.) will upload to ao3 soon!
act i. dear god, please save the little man.
âRITA, DARLING, do get your wretched little quill for this one. I heard from a wee birdie that Vittoria Zabini was spotted in Rome, and not just wearing last seasonâs designer collection, but on her honeymoon, of all things! Can you believe it, dearest? If I remember correctly, this must be husband number five now.â
Like a wingless canary in a gilded cage, you are forced once again to sing for red-lipped witches and their grating laughter, and for wizards with their fat bellies, graying hair, and leering eyes. How kind of Narcissa Malfoy to host these decrepit creatures in her manor gardenâand thrust the role of main attraction onto you. There you are, lonesome badger, dressed in the finest tulle for everyone to ogle at. A ballerina in a music box, turning, and turning, and turning.
(When will your cursed lullaby finally end?)
Isadora Bulstrode cackles. âGold-digging wench must be at it again.â
As predicted, Rita Skeeter greedily whips out her Quick-Quotes Quill. The bloodthirsty journalist preys hungrily at your every wordâand youâre more than willing to satiate the irritable, little pest. âRiveting.â She pushes her glasses upwards with a quirk of her lips. âWe may have tomorrowâs front page in our hands.âÂ
Lavinia Nott brings the teacup to her mouth, her gaze slicing towards you. âDo tell us more. Where ever do you get your information from?â
You hide a coy smile behind the fine porcelain. âWhy, Lavinia dearest, if I reveal my secret now, I might have to kill you!â The drove of ladies giggle amongst themselves as Lavinia sips her tea impassively. You play these people like a fiddle, and theyâre none the wiser. But even vile women have to play their parts in the cruel world forged by mad men. Yours happens to be the most ill-fated of them all.Â
âA shame you decided not to pursue the same path as your mother, but that is alrightânot every one is fit to work.â The Selwyn matron raises her brow, offering you a tight-lipped smirk.
âOh, Elinor, my love, Iâm surprised youâd even suggest such a horrible thing!â Your grin grows wicked and wider. You know perfectly what the wizarding society thinks of you: the orphaned heir, the shallow socialite who only cares for gallivanting about in pureblooded extravaganzas. A status youâve so carefully fashioned; utterly beloved and adored by these people, flowers falling at your feet with so much as a whisper from your lips.Â
Your gaze drifts to a familiar crowd of people to the side. Itâs the pack of lions and The-Boy-Who-Lived. There they are, the marauding bunch and their displays of loyalty and whatnot; hideously coordinated outfits, but capturing the worldâs attention constantly and effortlessly.Â
How repulsive.
In spite of that, you are intrigued. They are the section that plays out of tune in the orchestra you have been conducting for years.
And so you bid your goodbyes to the witches; they fawn and beg for you to stay for an hour more. You pout your lips and say with faux sympathy, hand flying to your chest. âOh, donât worry, my dears! Iâll be back soon enough after greeting some of the other guests. You lovely ladies might tire of me if I stay for too long.â
Melina Traverse brushes you off. âWe could never! You know youâre like family to us, pet!â
With a delighted gasp, you say, âDonât tell Narcissa, but youâve always been my favorite Slytherin.â The venom flows endlessly from your lips. You owe your life to only a handful of people. Narcissa Malfoy, who raised you when your mother no longer could, is one of them. Finally, youâre able to sneak away from their freshly manicured talons as they tittle-tattle amongst themselves.
Once your back is turned to the rest of them, you roll your eyes until your head begins hurting.Â
What a bunch of insufferable fools.Â
Still, the show curtains are wide open and the sun is yet to set. You have another audience that is awaiting your next number.Â
âOh, my, my, my! Is it truly the Chosen One in our midst?â You approach the horrid family of Gryffindorsânearly doubling over in laughter at the speed with which their faces fall at the sight of you. How refreshing, you think to yourself. Itâs been so long since youâve seen people who wore their hearts on their sleeves. âCissa and I didnât think youâd even respond to our invitationâbut this is just brilliant! Lily, darling! How long has it been? That dress looks utterly divine! Is that Charmeuse silk? The purple simply brings out the color in your eyes! And your skin, my love! Just glowing! Tell meâhave you been trying those snail facials? I hear theyâre all the rage nowadays.â
Sirius grimaces, cheeks turning ashen. âBloody hell, Iâm going to need a drink for this. A strong one, too.âÂ
âYouâre at a garden party, Sirius darling,â you remind in jest, flamboyantly motioning to the grazing table. âThe elves are serving Darjeeling, jasmine, chamomile, berry blends, spiced orange, silver needle, and my personal favorite, chocolate mint!â There are strings of lights wrapped around the tree branches; floating lanterns and the hydrangeas creeping on the stone walls. You put a hand over your heart, smiling knavishly. âFrom the Malfoy family, to yours, we sincerely hope you enjoy your brunch.âÂ
Lily deeply inhales as she intertwines her fingers with Jamesâs, a polite smile on her faceâan odd pang in your heart at the show of solidarity. (She questions how sincere can a Malfoy really be.) âY-Yes, well, itâs so good to see you, too. Weâre grateful for the invitation, especially since itâs for a rather honorable cause.âÂ
Ah, pure-hearted creatures really do get on your nerves. Lion hearts; words dripping in honey, limitless bravado. Youâve changed your mind, youâre sick of it all. A flash of vindictive glee crosses your face as you abruptly grab her hand, wrenching it away from her husbandâs. âWe just knew youâd see it that way! You probably see yourself in those Muggle children, eh?â
Lily recoils, as if struck by hot iron, shoulders tensing; slowly, she peels away her hand from yours, long lashes blinking away her shock. âYou and Narcissa must be raising a lot of money, then.â She eyes the marble fountain adorned in white roses, the harmonizing gnomes nearby, self-playing harps, and the scrutinizing stares from afar. âI never knew you cared so much about Muggle children.â
âWell, I suppose it must be done for all the pudgy-cheeked brats in the world,â You callously wave away her words with a sigh. Unbeknownst to most, all the charity proceeds come from your own Gringotts account. That is the one real thing left in your miserable life. âAs staff at Hogwarts, the children must come first, wouldnât you agree, Lily flower?â
âQuite,â replies Lily, lips firmly pursed.
James enters the fray, hand snaking around Lilyâs waist; jaw taut, seeming to regret ever entering the snake den. âHave you met our son, Harry, already?â He turns to the fourteen-year-old at his left side, gently patting Harryâs back with a crooked smile. âHaz, this is an old classmate of ours.â James gestures to you, and you offer the Potter spawn an amused smile as he blinks owlishly at you. The poor thing has gone frigid from the wintry cold, despite the summer sun overhead and blooming coneflowers; and you wonder if he must have run into Draco and Lucius before coming to the garden.
So this is the child the Dark Lord failed to kill, you muse. You only wish that you could have seen that monster fall to the ground lifelessly, defeated by an infant and his courageous parents. How fitting for men like Lucius Malfoy to follow in his footsteps; the blind leading the blind. Your grin stretches from ear to ear as you take his hand in yours. Clearly, heâs never held a girlâs hand before, as he limply shakes your hand, awkwardly spluttering his greetings. âWhat an honor it is to finally meet the savior of the wizarding world.âÂ
âWhy, you look just like James when he was younger, always strutting around the corridors.â Your eyes drift to the lightning scar on his forehead, a testament to his and Lilyâs survival against the killing curse. âAnd such clear-cut emerald eyes; truly your motherâs son. Tell me, Harry dearest, you must be quite the heartbreaker at Hogwarts.â
His doe-eyes harden, and your brow quirks in curiosity. (So the littlest lion can growl, after all.) âOh. . . not really.â His hand hangs back at his side, fists coiling. The robins chirp merrily as they fly by, his parents carefully watching the scene unfold; water endlessly splashing in the fountain. Harryâs voice deepens as he continues, âI couldnât be. My friends and I barely have time for anything else. There always seems to be something going on at the castle, apparently.â Â
âHow interestingâElsie!â You bark at the quivering house elf as Harry stumbles on his words. âGet Mister Potter and his company a plate of macaronsâserve them our finest tea, as well.âÂ
Harry winces as the elf apparates at once. âThereâs r-really no need forââ
Your gaze, sharp as a knife, slices to him, as the corners of your painted lips bend contemptuously. âHave you heard the news, dearheart?â
Harry looks to his father before shrugging. âI donât think so.â
âIf Mister Lupin here has so graciously informed you,â you begin tantalizingly, eyes cutting to the rugged werewolf at Lilyâs side; his back stiffening at the mention of his name, âOtherwise, keep this between you and me, Harry darling. Hogwarts will be hosting a rather important event this yearâand I do love a good partyâso you must have noticed the rise in appearances from the Ministry.â You gesture to the top Aurors at the DMLE towering over Harry, Sirius and James. âMore than that,â you continue with a sly cant to your voice. âThere will be a few new additions to Hogwartsâ staff. Among them, of courseâis yours truly!â
âAnd to do what, exactly?â Sirius blurts out incredulously.
âBe a teacher, of course!â you feign ignorance, bashfully furrowing your brows. âWhy else?â
âBrilliant!â Sirius chuckles scornfully. âSo, the children will be learning about French designers and frilly dresses then, I presume?
âIs that truly all you think of me?â you ask, gasping melodramatically as you circle the rim of your empty teacup.Â
âYou want to know what I think? Or what everyone thought behind your back at Hogwarts?â Sirius scoffs with a cock of his head. âYouâve always been the belle of the ball, no bloody doubt about that. But Iâve always wondered if there was anything more to your head than just air.âÂ
He runs a hand through his dark curls, lips twisting into a sneer. âBut I reckon nothing has changed since then. Youâre just the same insufferable, vapid wench as youâve always been.â
âSirius. . .â Remus quietly calls. âThatâs enough.âÂ
Your expression faltersâbut your mask cannot afford even a moment of rest. A jarring note in the lullaby plays as the ceramic ballerina stops turning. You let the minutes pass by fleetingly; it seems the self-playing chordophones have changed their tune, as well. You watch as the canary diamonds in your bracelet glint against the sunlight. (You are growing tired of the blinding show lights, unrelenting crowd, and never-ending play. Where is the reprieve, you wonder, for the tormented primadonna and her aching soul?)
The strings are now dipped in blood as your tears polish the stage. Your joints have twisted, bent, and danced. You wonder, how long must it be until you are rid of the starring role?
You muster a coy smile, fluttering your lashes at the heir of the most noble and ancient House. âSuch crude language, Mister Black,â you say, albeit your voice has gone mellow; nails drumming against the table surface as the guests mingle with one another. The unbearably dull conversations buzz in your ear. You notice Draco and Astoria Greengrass heading for the glasshouse. You consider stealing her lace parasol and whacking Sirius with it, and the thought fills you with immense joy.Â
Unfortunately, they are your guests, and you are nothing if not the most polite host. âPerhaps, I am not the only one who hasnât grown out of their immature habits,â you say, eyeing his shoulder-length hair, spiky ear piercings, and leather jacket. That damned leather jacket of his. It irks you that he and his kind can show insolence freely without bearing any repercussions. (But youâd die before you ever feel envy for a man like Sirius Black.) The sun fades behind the clouds, and your mask slips perfectly into place once more.
âWhat is it that happened again? Between you and Severus Snape in sixth-year?â You tap your chin pensively, taking cruel satisfaction in the stutter in Siriusâs breath and Remusâs parted lips, ever stupefied. You gaze fiendishly at Remus. âOh, silly me, Iâve gone off topic. Well, anyhow, I just wanted to say, I believe the students are in rather good hands this year. I just hope Dumbledore doesnât accidentally let an infected beast roam the halls of Hogwarts.âÂ
Your eyes flash impishly. âWouldnât you agree, Mister Lupin?â
Lily curls her lip viciously. âJust what exactlyâ?â
âElsie has returned, master.â The house elf bows her head just as the antique bistro table is circled with macarons, cucumber sandwiches, miniature cocktail buns, and slices of pound cake. Lily retracts her hand, grinding her jaw as she swallows the words in her throat.
âYou may go, Elsie, thank you.â With a guileful smirk, you levitate the teapot towards James and Harry, dutifully filling their cups; steam soon arising from the Chinese porcelain. You nod at the group. âItâs jasmine pearl,â you explain haughtily. âCarefully handcrafted tea from harvested leaves and flowers. Such exquisiteness that you wonât be able to find anywhere else.â
âDo enjoy your tea; Cissa and I made sure to spare no expense for our guests.â The teapot carefully lands back on the table. The sinfonietta ends, and so does your time with this particular audience. What misfortune, that you wonât receive your flowers for todayâs performance. You pivot on your heels, flinging them a lukewarm goodbye. âDo excuse me, for I must tend to the new arrivals. I believe I see Missus Parkinson over there by the koi pond. Cissa might have my head if I neglect my responsibilities.â
You turn your head, tossing a wink at Lily. âToday, after all, is for the children.â
Alas, it is not Persephone Parkinson you head towards.Â
You briefly exchange tepid pleasantries with Lavinia Greengrass before walking past the koi pond to the edges of the garden, far beyond prying eyes and ears. There, like a brooding Dementor drifting through a frozen lake, waits your true target. Sadly, it is only a dour-faced professor, a long time confrĂšre of yours, to be precise. There are only a handful of people to whom you are indebted. Severus Tobias Snape is one of those few.Â
With a flick of your wand, you covertly cast the silencing charm upon the elusive spot Severus had chosen. There is no need for these edacious vultures to prey on your conversation. They are better off with their tĂȘte-Ă -tĂȘtes and syrupy pikelets. You drown out the chamber orchestraâs symphony, the clinking of champagne glasses, the rustling leaves and ringing wind chimes. âSeverus darling,â you say liltingly, feet shuffling to his side as you playfully ghost your palm against his nape. He barely spares you a glance as a breeze courses through the rippling lake water. âYouâre missing out on the festivities, you know.â
âHave you finally finished tormenting Narcissaâs visitors?â he drawls, at long last acknowledging your presence and sharply raising a brow at your saccharine-sweet smile.
âWhy, Iâd never dare to do such a thing,â you reply with a theatrical sway of your head. âI simply conversed with the ladies and had a delightful run-in with your old flame, Lily. Do you remember her, my sweet? Ghastly red hair, pale skin, and, oh, those green eyes. It must be infuriating to look like that,â you rattle away to the only entity willing to listen to you in his company: the wind.
âSpare me,â he drones, lips curved impatiently.
You moue. âEver the bore, you are, Severus. Shall I fetch you a platter of brandy snaps?â
âShall I sit around while I wait?â Snapeâs lips contort into a sour grimace, eyes rolling to the back of his head. âThe Dark Lord himself might even find time to rise from his grave.â
âSeverus dear, if I didnât know any better, Iâd say you were trying to tell me something.â You eye him slyly, mouth tipping into a smirk as a dragonfly hovers by the waterline, avidly stalked by the dwarf frog on a lily pad. âSo,â you pry, âdid you have something important to tell me? I promised Mister Goyle Iâd have a drink with him.â
The frog splashes into the lake, and the dragonfly flutters away without a care. Severus clandestinely slips a piece of paper into your palm as he swivels around, dark cloak billowing. âEnsure that nothing traces back to you,â he snarls. âClearly I do know better, Severus.â You toy with the paper between your fingers, a sense of exhilaration running up your spine. âNot to worry,â you say with a clipped smile, a serpentine glare in your eyes, âI always do as I am told.â
(Severus, not for the first time in his life, wonders if the Sorting Hat made a mistake when it sorted you into Hufflepuff.)Â
act ii. tonight, letâs start the masquerade.
THE NIGHT GROWS weary, and so do the alleys of Knockturn; neglected as your hooded figure navigates through the brick road, only the caged owls and flickering stars to notice your presence. You fainly traipse amongst the shadows, a moment of surrender from the spotlight and malignant eyes; a brief interlude in the performance. Past the hanging doll heads in the windows of Borgin & Burkes, you find a lonely shop. Inside the locket of your ring, lies a slip of paper that had been given to you earlier this afternoon. Well, Severus, you think to yourself, idly twisting the ring on your finger, letâs see where you sent me to this time.
And so, the stage actor calls for a costume change. âAlohomora.â
With one last glance at the dimly-lit passage, you enter the boutique. The brass shop bell accompanies your entrance, but no owner appears to greet youâand if there was, well, you have quite a unique way of saying hello. Your fingers feather across the dusty bookshelves, eyes raking through the broken staircase, the faint scent of ginger, rosemary, and mugwort pervades the room; a shattered crystal ball sits in the center of the shop desk, ripped paintings on the wall. A grimace pulls at your lips as you come across a familiar ivory mask. A Death Eater maskâitâs warm to touch; recently worn, perchance. You bury the strong urge to set it on fire.Â
Thereâs a shift in the air, a creak in the floorboardsâin an instant, you whip your wand out from its leather holster.Â
âReveal yourself,â you whisper curtly.
To the naked eye, there is only one intruder in the dingy parlor. To you, however, there is an obscure silhouette of a stranger covered by a glimmering veil. You hold onto your wand resolutely. If it was an enemy, youâd be blown into the walls by now. âThis isnât an ensemble stage, you know,â you chuff impatiently, âIâm not fond of sharing the spotlight with lineless extras.âÂ
The disillusionment charm slowly unveils, and you wait unblinking, until you see a familiar face standing before you. Mid-length curly hair that falls over gray, dagger-like eyes, the irksome scent of tobacco, and a frightening similarity to his elder brother.Â
There are exactly five people youâd risk your life for, and right now, youâre digging the tip of your wand into their neck.
âMister Regulus Black,â you greet with a playful edge to your voice, eyes narrowing. âSeverus didnât mention weâd be running into each other tonight.âÂ
âThatâs because I didnât tell Sev Iâd be here,â says Regulus, dimples poking out as he swats your wand away from his throat. âI might go mad if I have to stay inside for another bloody week, thereâs only so many times I can re-read Good Omensâand by the way, did anyone ever tell you how dramatic you are? Lineless extras, really?âÂ
You hide a fond smile with a roll of your eyes, whirling around to browse the glass cabinets and leather journals on the table, returning to the task at hand. âAnd so you thought going outside and risking someone seeing you in the open was a good idea? Reggie darling, I often think about the possibility of Walburga dropping you on the head as an infant.âÂ
Regulus shoves his hands inside his trouser pockets as he hovers over your shoulders like a lost, overgrown duckling. âWasnât it Cissaâs soirĂ©e today? Did you jinx the statues like I told you to?âÂ
âWho do you think I am?â you say haughtily, pausing in your search to half-heartedly glare at him. And after a momentâs pause, you jerk your shoulder and coyly respond with a side-smirk, âOf course I did. The young Mister Flint nearly screamed his head off.â You hum reminiscently, âtruthfully, itâs been quite a while since I heard Draco laugh like that these days. For breakfast, I hear about the Granger girl, and then for lunch, I hear about the Weasley children, and for dinner, itâs an hour-long spiel on the famed Harry Potter.âÂ
Regulus chortles in amusement as he hops onto the shop counter, kicking back his chunky boots. âAnd, then? Did you see my brother?âÂ
âOh, darling, I did more than that,â you mutter offhandedly, leafing through the paraphernalias and foul-smelling potion flasks.Â
âHow was he? Is he doing well? Merlin, I think itâs been so long since I saw his face.â Thereâs a lapse of silence between you and Regulus. A lizard scurries across the room, chasing after a line of ants. The younger wizard taints the quietude with a long, frustrated sigh. âSorry, I just. . .â He slumps his shoulders in resignation. âI wouldnât have to ask so many questions if. . . if I could just. . .â
âI donât understand why I have to hide from my own family.â With a jagged whisper, he says, âI feel like Iâm losing my mind. Like I canât believe that Iâm really here, I donât even know if I exist sometimes.âÂ
You grimace as you turn to look at him, hand flinching as if wanting to reach out to him. Instead, you avert your gaze and continue scouring the room. âItâs forââ
âMy own good, I know,â Regulus blows a strand of hair away from his forehead. He jumps off the counter with a hardened stare. You glance at his back as he bends to pick at the marks on the floor. At times like this, you remember how small and young Regulus had been when you found him moribund from lake inferis. What a cruel price to pay in exchange for his survival, you think.Â
For Regulus Black has to remain dead to the wizarding world, stuck in an interminable masquerade, waiting until the hour is up for his performance.Â
All the worldâs a stage, and for the best of the actors and actresses, it seems the production never ends.Â
âHow long do you think itâs going to stay like this? For you, me, Sev? For Cissa?â As he stands on his toes to inspect the top of a dusty cupboard, Regulus veers his head to peek at your expression, frowning when he finds none. (Youâve no answers for him, after all; the entirety of your life was spent wondering that exact same question. All you know is that the show must go on until the audience tires of the starving artist.) âNever mind, letâs just focus on finding whatever you were trying to find here.â He walks past his reflection in the vintage carved mirror. âWhat are we looking for, anyway?âÂ
You wish to offer solace to a cherished friend, but duties are meant to be fulfilled. For now, to do what is right must come first. Your fingers slither up the side of a bookcase, a wooden ladder resting against the shelves. The mahogany is freshly varnished, the stench of glue is prominent, and deep scratches indent the floor. Itâs an empty treasure cove, barely anything displayed on the racks. You grit your teeth as you realize itâs been well-maintained compared to the obsolete state of the room. âHere,â you rasp, abruptly snapping your head to look back at him.
He furrows his brow. âWhat?âÂ
You beckon him to the corner of the room from where you stand, wooden planks creaking as you push at the bookcase. âHelp me with this, Regulus. There could be something behind it.â You clench your jaw as you lean your weight onto the cabinet frame.
âWhy donât we just, I donât know,â Regulus cocks his head as he waves his wand in the air. âUse magic?â he offers discreetly, as though divulging a century-old secret. âI suggest Bombarda for maximum efficiency.âÂ
You stare at him vacantly. âRegulus dearheart, I hold a stupendous amount of tolerance for you, but there is absolutely no way we are drawing attention to ourselves via explosion spells in the dead of the night.âÂ
He grins boyishly before ushering you away. âAlright, alright, I was only taking the mickey out of you.â Soon after, Regulus deftly mutters a levitation charm, his wand steadfast as the bookcase slowly detaches from the floor. You take a couple of steps backward, lips pursed as you observe Regulus concentrate on his work.Â
You note to yourself to have a conversation about Regulusâs restlessness with Severus. It could pose a liability and pull the curtains on the entire pasquinade. âCareful,â you keep a tight watch on Regulusâs pinched brows, his hovering wand, and the steadily moving bookshelf.Â
âLike taking jelly slugs from a first-year,â he says flippantly, beaming at you as his dark curls sweep over his eyes.Â
You give him an exasperated scowl before side-stepping his quip as you descry a faint outline of a door in the plastered wall. You feel a rumble in the ground, muffled noises behind the shrouded entrance. âReady your wand, Regulus,â you say grimly, hand reaching for the doorknob, looking back in time to catch his smirk fade into a distant expression, âI believe what awaits wonât be as simple as that.âÂ
A grave tenor disquiets the room, your free hand already grasping for your wand. Regulus stands at your side, nodding as you take a sharp breath. He offers his back to you, in spite of the looming danger. (A sadistic part of you finds comfort in his presence tonight, but neither of you can truly share the burdens of your harrowing façades. Tomorrow, you play the lone star once more; and he, the dead brother and son. But today, you must simply share the stage.)Â
You twist the knob until a click pierces the heavy silence.
You wait with a bated breath, expecting creatures and spells to come hurling in your direction. The room ahead is enshrouded with darkness. You share a terse nod with Regulus as a ball of light appears at the tip of your wands. Regulus moves to take a step forward, but you block him with your arm. âIâll go first,â you say breathily, curtly glancing at the Death Eater Mask. âIt could be cursed the moment we step inside.â Regulus presses his lips into a white line, clearly unhappy with your decision, but relents nonetheless.Â
Rough, travertine flooring begins where the woodwork ends; a gust of wind howls into the dark chamber. Wordlessly, you call for your patronus to investigate inside; thin, silvery wisps floating in the air, its light hauntingly beautiful against the unilluminated dungeon. You hear heavy chains dragging across the ground and the harmony of timid footfalls. A drop of water falls onto the cracked stone. Regulus grinds down on his jaw as he readies his wand.Â
After an eternity of waiting, you snap your wand to set the torches alight.Â
A pronounced chill runs up your spine; a stutter in your breath. You nearly stagger at the sight unveiled before you. If you had been a weaker wizard, youâd have dropped your wand already. âThis. . .â you say hoarsely, eyes wide, blood simmering in your veins.Â
Children.
Little ones as young as ten-years-old, barely coming up to your stomach, staring up at you with bloodshot eyes. Their skinny arms are covered in grime and wear pathetic rags for clothes. Moss grows in every corner of the room. Emaciated mattresses on metal beds. âBloody hell,â Regulus growls, chest heaving. âWhat the fuck?âÂ
âItâs a prison,â you whisper, horrified. There must be more than twelve children standing before you. Bile rises to your throat. You worry about your wand breaking in half, but the overwhelming sense of dread traps you in position.Â
âAre. . . are you with the bad men?â A brave, young girl with owlish eyes protectively steps forward in front of her companions. âNo,â you answer gently, bending down on one knee to meet her eyes. You were neither good, or bad, but there is no magic on earth that would make you harm these children.Â
Regulus calls your name. âTheyâre Muggles,â he hisses angrily. âI donât sense any magic from any of them.â He exhales in frustration. âWhat the hell are they doing with Muggle children?âÂ
You grind down on your teeth, nearly dizzy with anger. You forgo a response to Regulus in favor of clasping your cloak around the trembling child. Soon after, you blanket the room in a warming charm. âTend to their wounds,â you say sharply. âIâll see what I can do about the chains.â And you will do something about those shackles, if itâs the last thing you do. âWeâre going to get you out of here, I promise,â you tell the girl, stolid as you pat her head.
Except, the brass bell rings once more and everyone stiffens in alert. The children begin whimpering amongst themselves. Slow, deliberate footsteps reverberate from the shop into the icy-cold room. The hairs on the back of your neck rise.
âMove out of the way!â you yell, veins straining against your neck, just as youâre blown into the stone walls.Â
Regulus screams out your name, but you barely hear anything over the ringing in your ears; through blurring vision, you see the children and Regulus unharmed. Relief floods through you as you sluggishly rise from the floor. Thereâs a large crater in the wall from the impact; luckily, the tethers to the chains were demolished, as well. âGet them to the safehouse,â you order, blood trickling from your lips. You hardly feel your arms and legs; thereâs an ache in the back of your head, your spine feels as though itâs been snapped in half. Youâre definitely going to feel this tomorrow. Regulus hesitates to leave, hands laid on the shoulders of the children as he glowers at the newcomer. âNow!â you bellow gutturally.Â
A muscle ticks in Regulusâs jaw, but as he finally apparates with as many children as he can, you finally stop holding your breath. âItâs okay,â you reassure the wee boys clinging onto each other for comfort, limping to their side. âIâm rather strong, you know. Stronger than any of the bad men.â
In every duel, you allow yourself to be hit only onceâdriven by your inhuman desire to feel something other than the emptiness of your unbroken charade.Â
(And for years, you have waited for anyone to say these two specific words: Avada Kedavra.)Â
âGo,â you instruct gently, brushing away the tendrils of hair from the little boyâs forehead. âHide and wait until my companion comes for you.â
âAnd as for the ill-mannered invader,â you crane your head towards the entrance of the chamber, eyes raking over the tall figureâs bloodthirsty stance and flittering cloak. Thereâs a lack of silver mask, but you know well the stench of foreboding decay and malignity. At the speed of light, you aim your wand, âConfringo!â
You watch with a spiteful grin as the stranger is blasted across the room. The walls and ceilings threaten to crumble, and you can only hope that Severus wonât be too cross with you in the morning. You point your wand at the uninvited guestâs heart. Nothing will trace back to you, that much you are certain of.
After all, no one would suspect a vapid, insufferable boulevardier to be the greatest spy of the wizarding world.
A firebird caws in the distance.
And, scene.
act iii. whereâs your soul? whereâs your dream? do you think youâre alive?
âAPPEARANCES ARE OF utmost importance.â You stand in the front of the Great Hall, sun rays streaming through the large, stained windows, wooden tables pushed to the walls; accoutered in a black velvet capelet with gold trimmings and vintage dragonhide boots. The sleeves of your blouse are lined with handwoven, gothic lace; trousers made of the finest yellow satin. It is a testament to your Houseâthe cete of badgers. (You seize everyoneâs attentionâwhether the two Aurors in the corner like it or not.)
After a descanting introduction, you are given center stage before the students of Gryffindor and Slytherin. With a swing in your step and a wrest in your voice, you continue, âThat is why the Headmaster, Dumbledore himself, invited me to personally facilitate this yearâs Tri-Wizard Tournament. As hosts of the event, excellence is expected of us. Professor McGonagall has graciously allowed me to take charge of your lessons, particularly in the art of dancing.â Your eyes gleam as you offer the young fourth-years a graceful reverence. âAnd our first lesson begins straight away.â
The crowd of students transfigure into a sea of curious eyes and flabbergasted whispers. You derisively watch the chaos unfold with an amused grin. Yet, youâre not the least bit worried. Youâve charmed even a flock of Dementors before, the creatures having been drawn to your voice, ostentatious stature, and the dark depths of your soul; like a bee to a field of flowers. A class full of awkward teenagers should be more than easy for you.Â
âNow, now, children,â you clap your hands as you make your way to the heart of the room, leaving a trail of softening murmurs. âThe Yule Ball is a revered tradition, an exhibit of togetherness that has lasted for hundreds years.â You lift your nose up in the air as the girls look at one another, barely able to hide their giddy smiles and discreet glances across the hall. âAs such, it is my venerable duty to oversee your etiquette in and out of the ballroom.â
(Sirius rolls his eyes from where he sits besides James.)
âMister Filch, if you please.â With a flutter of your lashes and a poised smile, you beckon for the school caretaker who flounders to the gramophone. You wink at the young miss Pansy Parkinson who stares up at you in awe. Soon thereafter, you hear the soft melody of LĂ©o Delibesâs Valse. CoppĂ©lia, you simper to yourselfâa story close to your heart. (Youâve always found a winsome irony in a marionette like you dancing to the enamel-eyed girlâs song.)
âA dance, while enjoyable by oneâs lonesome, is best savored with a partner,â you begin vivaciously, eyeing the gentlemen in particular. âYour date for the night must be aware that youâve chosen them out of your own volition and undue necessity.â Your stare drifts to the coterie of young Gryffindors, tittering mischievously. âShall we have a demonstration from the House of courage and splendor?â
âNo one?â You raise a brow curiously when youâre met with silence and averted gazes. You then utter the scariest phrase a professor could say to their students: âIâll choose the lucky student myself.âÂ
You survey the pack of lion cubs, drifting through the tuffs of flashing red hair; gangly boys raucously kicking and pushing at each other to volunteer for your teach-in on ballroom dancing. You flash the students a vexatious grin. âMister Harry Potter?â you call out to the ashen-faced boy with your hand outstretched. âWhy donât we let the Chosen One set an example to his peers?âÂ
Hollers and cheers break out across the hall; not withholding the mirthful giggles of the doves on the other side of the room, wonderstruck by his green eyes and lightning scar. You motion for Harry to join you on the pseudo dance floor. The Weasley twins take delight in clapping and wisecracking into his ears until Harry reluctantly rises to his feet, a blooming shade of red on his neck and cheeks.Â
âAs you approach your partner with the grace of a majestic stag,â you acclaim to the class whilst Harry approaches you with a wry grin and hands shoved inside his robe pockets, âAnd not a newborn foal.â You place your hand in his, âYou may now invite your lady to dance.â
âOr your beau,â you add spiritedly, eyes gleaming as Harry chokes on his saliva.
You pat his back as the music comes to a sweet-sounding crescendo. âDancing is about connection,â you turn to the students with a stern gaze. âIf your posture crumbles, there goes your confidence, as well. At all times, you must maintain eye contact,â you say sharply as you tilt Harryâs chin and correct the arch of his arms. âRemember, itâs not ballroom if thereâs no trust. Lean onto one another, and then. . .â You lay your palm onto his shoulder. âThe feet should follow the music.â
Unfortunately, Harry runs on two left feet and both persistently evade the music. On the umpteenth time he stumbles on your shoes, heâs appraised by snickers and low whistles from either side of the hall. The Weasley twins in particular seem thrilled by Harryâs flailing arms and bewildered expression. Along with the two Aurors whoâve skipped their aurorly duties to patrol the castle in favor of heckling their ward. âYouâre doing it wrong, James!â shouts Sirius through cupped hands, shoulders shaking in laughter.Â
âWhy donât you try it, Padfoot?â Harry retorts back to him; thick hair flopping over his eyes as he grates his teeth. Youâre given no warning as Harry extracts himself from your grip and stalks over to where Sirius and James sit comfortably.Â
You blink, dumbfounded. âHarry dearest, I donât believe that is necessaryâ!â
âGo on then,â says Harry, jerking his head. âShow us all how to do it.âÂ
To the side, Ron guffaws into his fist, brought nearly to tears. (Earlier he was apprehensive about the class. âWeâve got a whole new professor just for twirling around and all that girlish stuff?â he had asked in disbelief before entering the Great Hall.
âShut your mouth, Weasley,â growls Draco Malfoy as he shoves past Harry and Hermione to head inside the hall.)
Sirius grins roguishly, having the gall to bat his eyes in confusion. âWho? Me?â He chuckles before forcibly slapping Jamesâs back with the flat of his palm. âNo, no. The honor should go to the debonair of his time.â Trenchant eyes flicker with mischief. âHave at it, James. How will the children ever learn without a proper demonstration?âÂ
âGo on, Sir Prongs!â exclaims one of the red-headed twins. âShow us how itâs done!âÂ
Alarmingly, the bespectacled man resigns to his fate, a deafening ovation as he shrugs his robes off, generously revealing his broad shoulders in a tight, black turtleneck; a leather wand holster across his chest; long legs framed by pleated trousers. You bite down on your tongue as James draws closer to you, a hint of a smirk on his lips. With an unerring arch of his back, he holds out his hand for you to take, âMay I have this dance?âÂ
Your breath stuttersâif only for a moment. One cannot deny that James Potter is deviously more appealing to the eye than the dance partners youâve had during Narcissaâs galas. Perfectly-carved cheekbones and golden hoops dangling from his ears; bright, hazel eyes girdled by rectangular glasses. âWell,â you say, pursing your lips as you slip your palm into his. âIf you must.âÂ
In contrast to his son, James needs little-to-no guidance from you. Youâd have assumed that much, considering that both James and Sirius grew up in pure-blood customs. The warmth of his hand on your back is scalding. He spins you along to the songâs aria; the two of you gliding effortlessly through the soapstone floors. Any more closer to him and youâd be able to hear his heartbeat. âThere will be lifts, turns, and dips during a waltz,â you inform the class as you demonstrate a twirl vine. âYou will rise and you will fall together with your partner. Understand?âÂ
James chuckles at the wistful sighs and horrified groans that erupt through the Great Hall. âYouâre good with the children, you know,â he remarks cheekily as he gently lowers you to the ground, hand steadfast on your waist. You hear his unsaid words clearly: Sirius thought youâd be downright rubbish at it.Â
âWell, Mister Potter,â you say breathlessly, clasping your arms around his neck once more. âTo some of the students here, frilly dresses and French designers are their entire world.â Your chin all but perched atop Jamesâs shoulders; the scent of his famed Sleekeazy potion and vetiverâdew on fresh grass on a warm sunny dayâfills your senses. You cast a sniffy glare in Siriusâs way, to which he responds with a raised brow.Â
âBit shallow, isnât it?â he murmurs, chest rumbling and his breath hot on your ear.Â
You scoff. âOne could argue the same for a young Seeker whoâs been given their first ever broom.âÂ
James Potter has the nerve to smile at you. And as you move to extricate yourself from his hold, James mindlessly lets his hand fall from your waist to your hipâincidentally, where youâve been nursing a heavy fracture. Sore bruises from chasing vampires the night prior as you were out hunting allies of the Dark Lord from the first wizarding war. Although you had drowned yourself in pain relief elixirs, it seems youâre more sensitive and hurt than you thought.Â
Even statues of white gold chip and fade over timeâyouâre reminded of this fact quite painfully. You roughly push James away from you, hissing in pain as you cradle the left side of your hip. Memories of crimson-stained teeth and rotten, pale skin flash before your eyes. You remember the stench of blood, and the feel of their nails slashing into your thighs. But most of all, you remember their ear-piercing shrieks just before you drive the stake into their chests, one by one, until you have left a graveyard of vampires in the outskirts of an abandoned mansion.Â
James furrows his brow immediately as you cave in on yourself. (Even Sirius surges to his feet.) âWhatâs wrong?â
Occlude! Occludeâyou must occlude immediately!Â
With a sharp inhale, you close off your emotions for anyone else to see. âIt is nothing of your concern, Mister Potter,â you respond blankly, as though your soul is locked far away. âI do believe weâre done here.â You step further away from him. Your attention shifts to the students as you fold your hands behind your back, lips curling into a virulent smile. The weight of your mask is comforting; youâve forgotten how to breathe without it. âNow, letâs have the students pair up and practice what theyâve learned so far. Iâll have no patience for dilly-dallying and nescience on my watch. Youâll dance until I tell you to stop. Youâll practice until the soles of your feet are sore and raw.â
That, after all, is how you learned.
The class goes by accordingly; you maintain a distance from Sirius and James, turning a blind eye to their burdensome sympathy. (Gryffindors and their bleeding heartsâit always unnerves you how easily the avowed Marauders get deep under your skin.) You nip at the studentsâ heels, righting their poor footwork; looping the music until you are certain theyâd hear it in their nightmares. To your surprise, the round-cheeked Neville Longbottom takes all your instructions in stride. From the moment that you allow Filch to lift the tonearm, the students practically fall to the floor, heaving; some forsaking their long robes and tying their hair in flimsy ponytails.Â
As the students retreat from the Great Hall, you slink away into the crowd of Slytherins, desperate to avoid a particular duo of Aurorsâno doubt ready to probe you with questions. A numbing panic claws at your chest; black spots swallowing your vision. Emotionsâhow putrid. The studentsâ discordant chatter overwhelms your hearing, more than the ringing in your ears. The unyielding, outrĂ© stone walls feel like theyâre closing in on you. Still, you keep your head above the water, enduring every staggered breath. You must.Â
Whatâs wrong?Â
The question echoes in your head.Â
Ha!Â
You scream inwardly, if they only knew!Â
While you had been expecting either James or Sirius to ambush you, you do not expect to see Draco Malfoy shouting your name as you flee down an empty corridor.Â
The miniature Lucius Malfoy stands before you, grimacing as he clenches his fists tightly. âAre. . .â Dracoâs expression contorts morosely. âAre you alright? Theo and I were worried that the blood traitor upset you.â he spits his concern as if it were acid. Little snakes and their keen eyes.Â
âMind your language, Draco,â you reply cuttingly, eyes flashing as you lift your chin. And for his question, one that youâve been asked numerous times over the years, you have only ever had one answer. Despite the scars on your back, the tremors in your hands, the aching of your heart, and the endless bruises on your limbs, you tell him: âAnd do not ask what is not needed to be.âÂ
âYouâre hurt, arenât you?â he presses further, mouth pinched. âDonât treat me like a dim-witted child because Iâm not!âÂ
A hand lays on his shoulder, and to your chagrin, Severus makes his appearance, lips downturned and his gaze filled with subdued apathy. Your day is about to get worse. âPerhaps, it is best if you leave this discussion to the adults, Draco.â Snape drones, leaving no room for debate. He tightens his grip on the younger wizard. âI will not be inconvenienced to explain to Minerva as to why you were dawdling in the corridors.âÂ
In true Malfoy fashion, Draco sneers in disdain. He rips himself out of Snapeâs grasp with a scoff. As he storms past you, you sigh and pat his side.Â
When Draco disappears into the corner, you release a deep breath as you prepare for the onslaught to come. âJust get it over with, Severus,â you pinch the bridge of your nose, the pounding in your head growing more unbearable by the second.Â
You see his nostrils flare as Severus turns to glare at you. âI wonder,â he says through gritted teeth. âIf you are actually capable of following direct ordersâof using that near-empty brain of yours!â His upper lip curls back into a snarl, as he scours the empty hallway for any prowling ears. âYour stunt made it to the Daily Prophet. You were asked to proceed tactfully, were you not?âÂ
You lean against the wall, rubbing at the temples of your head. âAnd Iâve done my part. Every last one of themâdead by my hands. A problem you failed to deal with for the last two months. That I settled last night. Remind me why youâre still chittering into my ear, Severus darling?â
âDo not play coy with me,â he replies brusquely. âIâve heard the students tattling about it as though it were the most interesting event in their pathetic, insolent lives. The Embris Mansion burnt down to the ground. There are talks of a vigilante, a good-for-nothing do-gooder. You got sloppy!â
âAnd if I didâso what?â You retaliate, chest heaving as you step into his face. Truthfully, this isnât the first time youâve had this conversation with him. Over the years you have left some sort of mark on your work. Not a phoenix, but a firecrest. Wings outstretched in flames. All eyes are on the ungovernable hero, the Firebirdâand never on you, the foppy socialite. âWould it be so perverse to want even a slither of recognition, Severus?âÂ
âDo not forget your duty,â he taunts venomously, the cords in his neck going rigid. âTo the greater good you so earnestly fight for. Your duty to your mother.âÂ
âDo not talk about her!â you all but shout, magic sizzling in the air around you.Â
âThen see to it that there are no more mistakes going forward!â Severus juts his chin, baring his teeth in contempt.Â
After a few long moments, he continues with a resigned exhale, dragging his palm down his faceâas though you are the perplexing one. âThis. . . Moody has developed a habit of emptying my cupboards.âÂ
âAnd why, pray tell,â you retort gruffly, âshould I care for this oh-so special cupboard of yours?âÂ
âIt contains ingredients for Polyjuice potions!â he proclaims angrily. âGet to the bottom of this. Iâll not have a blithering fool like Pettigrew get to the students again. Do what you must, I have no interest in understanding the workings of your mindâas long as you do not draw unnecessary attention to yourself.âÂ
The sound of footfalls break you apart as Severus nimbly lifts the Notice-Me-Not charm he had cast earlier. Within seconds, you find Remus Lupin rounding the corner. Heâs dressed in his usual baggy, gray jumper; jaw clean-shaved, and pinkish scars against his skin. A well-loved quilted coat over his shouldersâhandmade by Lily, you presume. You notice the mismatched otter socks peeking from his loafers. Remus saunters down the hallway with tired eyes and a feeble smile as he stops right in front of you and Severus. He has a rather tall frame, slender even, despite his hunched shoulders.Â
âSnape,â Remus nods to him, gaze flickering back and forth as he attempts to discern what had transpiredâwell, youâre certainly in no rush to tattle and cry into his arms.Â
âProfessor,â he says to you, an ever curious smile on his face. âYouâre looking quite peaky. Is something the matter?â
âI am most certainly sound and fine, Mister Lupin,â you respond, irritated, as you wobble on your feet. You are at your witâs endâhow bothersome of it all. âShould you not be on your way to your next class, Professor?â you bite tiredly.Â
Remus shrugs, hazel-eyes crinkling in amusement. âMad-Eye is taking over my next class. I thought it would be good for the students to learn from a veteran Auror. Iâm sure he has much more experience to offer than me.âÂ
You scowl, his humility smothering you painfully. âWell, Iâve no interest in dragging my feet around. If youâll excuse me, gentlemen, I have a prior engagement with my cat and Iâm afraid Iâve left her alone for too long.âÂ
And as fate would have it, when you make haste for your quarters, you falter in your steps; lurching as your vision goes blurry. Your breath snags in your throat as Remus catches you by the waist. âPerhaps, we should get you to Lily,â offers Remus as he sets you upright, brows pinched worriedly, ignoring Snapeâs eye roll in the background.Â
âI said I was fine!â You blurt out, cradling the front of your head as you sway backwards; now seeing two Lupins and two Snapes. âMerlin, are all Gryffindors this bloody meddlesome? Must I repeat myself? I am fineâ!âÂ
Turns out, you are not fine.Â
The last thing you see before losing consciousness is a pair of brown eyes with flecks of gold, more beautiful than any full moon youâve ever seen.Â
 â
You wake up to a dry, sore throat; the bitter scent of infirmary disinfectantâa Muggleâs touch, no doubtâand concoctions of various healing potions. Your head is still pounding, but somewhat bearable. The room is small, privy to only teachers, you concludeâalthough, it is the very first time you have ended up in the infirmary. Remus Lupin would feel your wrath, youâd make sure of it. Your back stings as though it were doused in Dittany recently. As you nearly break the flower vase in an attempt to reach for the empty glass, the door creaks openâand in comes Lily Potter with her husbands.
âAm I in hell?â you eye them bitterly.Â
âNo,â says the youngest matron, dressed in her own version of the nurseâs uniform. Red vest over her white blouse, and a long, plaid skirt with pockets. Soft red hair tied back with a pink ribbon. Albeit, her expression is anything but sweet and delicate. âBut youâre in my office, which means you are now under my careâtherefore Iâd like you to explain why you have vampire toxins in your blood.âÂ
âAnd I would like to return to my quarters now, please,â you respond haughtily, referring to the private bedroom professors were offered in the castle. âIâve nothing to explain to someone who administers the diagnostic charm on my person without explicit permission to do so!â you exclaim, releasing a shuddery breath as your head throbs agonizingly.Â
âYou will listen to meâseven hours ago you were this close to paralysis!â Lily shouts right back, eyes glaring defiantlyâshe may have adhered to you in Malfoyâs territory, but no power holds more authority than an acclaimed healer over a patient. âIf you had been a Muggle, youâd be dead ten times over.â
âWell, now that weâve established that Iâm alive and well, I suppose we have no more pleasantries to exchange, Lily darling.â You tear the flimsy blanket from your legs, grimacing at the bandages covering your skin.Â
âNot before you tell us where those bruises came from,â Sirius demands, voice low and knife-like eyes on you.Â
âMust have been the Nargles,â you reply sarcastically. No one would care for a bonny doll ripping apart at the seams and gathering dust on a childâs shelf. âTheyâre quite frisky this time of the year, didnât you know? My good friend Xenophilius wrote about those creatures a long time ago. Good read, Iâd say.âÂ
âAre you capable of taking anything seriously?â cuts Sirius with a snarl, tendrils of hair curling around his face; hints of tattoos peeking out from his leather jacket. Vermillion satin shirt clashing against his pale skin. The lingering smell of lit cigars only reminds you of Regulus, and so you tear your gaze away from Sirius.Â
âSirius, letâs not scare her off now, love,â Remus admonishes, softly resting his palm at the back of Siriusâs neck, before he stares at you with honey-dripping eyes. You have a desperate need to run away. Theyâre an uncharted danger that you arenât familiar with navigatingâand you figure young Harry wouldnât appreciate you treating his parents like a rabid vampire. âWe just want to know what happened, you looked worse for wear when we brought you to Lily and Madam Pomfrey,â Remus placates, treating you like a crow with its wing snapped in half.Â
You sneer. âIf I am not dead, then these wounds hardly matter to me.âÂ
Lily gasps, a sound so soft only the wind could have possibly heard it. âHow could you say that?â she asks, hand flying to her lips. âOf course it matters, you had lost so much blood while we tried to get the toxins flushed from your system.â She stares at the puncture mark on your arm, before peering over at Sirius. âWe nearly couldnât find a match to your blood type. Sirius. . . Well, heâs a universal donor and he didnât even hesitate in giving you hisââ
âGiving me what?â you echo lowly. âWhat did Sirius give me, Lily?â
âBlood,â Lily says firmly. âHe gave you his blood so you could live.â
âHow dare you?â you seethe, chest rapidly rising; digging your nails firmly into your palms as you stare furiously at Lily. âYou had no right!â You scream until your throat is sore; your magic overflowing until it shatters the nearby vase of butterfly weeds.Â
Rage tunnels your vision; heart hammering against your ribcage as you move to carelessly rip at the bandages over your wounds. âYou had no right! You had no fucking right! I would have never done the same for you! Get out! Get out!âÂ
âGet out!â You hurl the glass at the wall across from you, narrowly avoiding Siriusâs head; anguish tears itself from your voice and you barely notice James flinch from the intensely flickering lights.Â
âYou think Iâd be grateful?â you scoff, a burning heat spreading across your chest. âYou think Iâd be indebted to any of you after this? Is that what you wanted? What a fucking joke!â You laugh irately as you gasp for air. âIâd rather die!âÂ
When you run out of items to throw at themâpillows, shards of glass, and crumpled flower stemsâyou sit on the bed, shoulders violently shaking as you cough yourself sick.Â
âI. . .â Lily begins, swallowing the lump wedged in her throat. âI understand. . . But I am the castleâs nurse, as long as you are under Hogwartsâ protection, I am keeping you alive no matter what.âÂ
âI donât bloody care,â you snide.
Her eyes flash to James. âWeâll leave you to rest, then.âÂ
You stay silent, vacantly staring at the reddened welts on your hands. Itâs not until you feel Jamesâs arms around you and his chin hovering above your head that you realize youâve stopped shivering. âIâm sorry,â is all that James whispers into your ear as he lays you to sleep with an inaudible charm. The chill of his magic is the last thing you feel before your eyes flutter to a close.Â
â
You wake up in the infirmary once more. This time, you lay stiff on the mattress, absentmindedly gazing at the plain ceiling; your chest falling and rising ever-so slowly. The stink of a Calming Draught is painstakingly familiar. A low humming sound tells you that you arenât aloneâbut you barely flinch from their presence, too tired to do anything but close your eyes. âSome boys kiss me, some boys hug me. . . . something. . . theyâre okay,â murmurs one Sirius Black, tapping on his thigh as he rests his back on the rustic chair.Â
If Sirius wants an encore, heâd have to drag the fight out of you. Youâre utterly drained from your emotional palaver earlier. âDidnât know you were into Muggle songs, Black,â you chortle bemusedly. Â
Sirius halts in his singing as a forceful silence falls over the roomâyou distinctly hear the moment Siriusâs hand drops to his thigh, most likely taken aback by the sound of your hoarse voice. You feel the weight of his eyes on your bandaged arms and legs. A few seconds pass before he responds, his words but a faint breath. âAfter today, I believe that there is much to be uncovered for the both of us.âÂ
You donât bother replyingâyouâd have Obliviated them instantly if it wasnât illegal to use on Aurors.Â
âWe know it was you,â says Sirius out of the blueâyour blood turns icy-cold on command, wondering if heâs figured out about the wizard behind the Firebird. âOn the first day of term, someone had left a basket of freshly-brewed Wolfsbane potions enough to last him for the entire year,â he explains further, leaning his elbows on his knees as he stares at you unwaveringly. âI almost didnât believe it, but a Marauder has his ways.âÂ
(His son with an invisibility cloak and a handy, enchanted parchment.)Â
âThank you,â he says, guttural with emotions. âIt means more to Remus than you think.â
âYour gratitude is misplaced, unfortunately,â you rasp, coiling your fists tightly, stubbornly intent on avoiding his eyesânot wanting to get caught in the storm within. You exhale with a ragged sigh. Severus was right, you had been sloppy. And this is what carelessness leads to. âDonât delude yourself, Mister Black, I couldnât care less what happens to you or your family.â
Sirius chuckles, like heâd expected such a response from you. âWell, do what youâd like with my gratitude, I donât care, just know that you have it,â he says, rising from his seat. âItâs past midnight, by the way. Lilyâs left you some dinner in case you woke up hungry.âÂ
Your eyes drift to the nightstand. Thereâs a steaming bowl of spinach rice with mushrooms, and a plate of honey cinnamon bars. But your gaze lingers on the bouquet of snapdragons and orchids placed in a ceramic vase.Â
âShe believes home-cooked meals help the patients heal faster,â Sirius tells you, carefully observing your reactionâbut thereâs none to be found. He purses his lips into a thin, white line.
As he makes his way to leave, Sirius pauses, hand resting on the doorframe. âYou know,â he begins quietly. âThe thing about magicâit can fool the best of us into thinking weâre indestructible. But, youâre not as inhumane as youâd like us to think.â Sirius veers his head to look back at you. âTake that mask of yours off sometimes, yeah? Youâd see the rest of the world clearly if you did.âÂ
That is all you hear from him before the door clicks shut, and youâre left alone with your thoughts.
How arrogant.
How very Gryffindor of him.Â
You push the flower vase closer to the edge of the bedside table, indignantly eyeing the watercolor art. The room reeks of Lilyâs kindness. Lions and their constant need to see the goodness in everyone. Take off your mask? Youâd give your entire Gringotts account to wear the kind of rose-colored lenses they haveâtheyâre more pestilent than you realized. No matter, itâs high-time you reintroduced yourself to the Marauders, anyway.Â
If you take off your mask, they would find nothing but a barren soul.
â
It seems your newfound parasites have forgotten who you truly areâbut you have no qualms in reminding them why exactly youâre called the pureblood societyâs darling.Â
For the week or so, the Daily Prophet features you out in luxurious restaurants, a new partner each night hanging off your arm. International Quidditch players, foreign models, esteemed opera singers, and even Muggle celebrities. Men and women are captured in moving photographs, avidly fawning over you.Â
Youâve missed three classes in favor of shopping in France; Flooing back to Hogwarts, stinking of bordeaux and rosa centifolia. Painite gems nestled around your neck, glittery sapphires lining your wrists. On more than one occasion, youâve seen McGonagall lift her chin in distaste at your behavior.Â
âWell, thatâs certainly a speedy recovery,â says Lily one afternoon as the owls take the Great Hall by storm. Rita Skeeterâs new article about you is plastered on the front page, apparently youâve gotten into a catfight with an Italian seamstress. She risks a glimpse of you from the other side of the long table, laughing away with Professor Sinistra. The sound is scraping against her ears, yet Lily canât help but feel disappointed.
Your desk is littered with mails from admirers, invitations to galas and fundraisers. The students canât help but notice this fact as theyâre brought to the dance floor each morning. (Each day, you rewind CoppĂ©liaâs songâher wishes, and her painâbut you plan to ignore the ballad until blood trickles from your ears.)
âMummaâs just about ready to send her a Howler,â you hear Ginevra Weasley saying in passing after class. The young red-haired girl nearly bumps into Hermioneâs shoulder as Ginny dips her head low, prattling excitedly, âCalled the Professor a tart, even.â
Hermione stops walking, scrunching her nose. âReally?â
âYes, yes,â Ginny nods. âBut enough about all thatâhave you seen the news this morning?âÂ
Hermione looks up, lips wrinkled in thought. âThe one about the Professor being seen in Muggle London? I thought that was rather stale for a headline.â
âNot that one,â Ginny says exasperatedly, rolling her eyes. âThe article about the Firebird. Remember what happened during the World Cup? When You-Know-Whoâs followers came and raided the entire campsite?â
âThat would be pretty hard to forget, Gin,â Hermione replies softly.Â
âWell, the Firebirdâs gone and hunted a few of them,â Ginny tells her, eyes brimming with awe. âFound their hideout and left them half-dead for the Ministry to find. No Malfoy, though, which is a bloody shame.â
At your desk, you sip your jasmine pearl tea with a knowing smirk.
On the first of October, your previous Head of House invites you to the greenhouse for an overdue get-together. Naturally, you greet Pomona Sprout with gift baskets overflowing with glacĂ© treats, packets of tea, scented candles, and dried berries. She huffs in fond exasperation before instructing you to grab a pair of cotton earmuffs and gardening gloves. And, well, you donât mind playing the part of a slap happy third-year under her gentle care. Itâs a role you enjoy more so than others.Â
âYouâve been worrying me these days, dear,â Professor Sprout tells you earnestly as she wrestles with the Flitterblooms. Hoo-hoo chicks flutter around in their cage while the uprooted baby Mandragoras screech nearby. You feel the weight of her gaze, much like a knitted blanket draped over your shoulders on a cold, autumn noon. âThe other staff have been expressing their. . . concern, as well.âÂ
You busy yourself with planting the Wiggentree in its pot, allowing only a moment to raise your walls of Occlumency. You know that she couldnât possibly be a threat, but you would not allow someone else to expose you bare for others to see. (You loathe the thought of Siriusâs blood flowing through your veins.)
You know that concern is shallow at best, forged from fear of the students being influenced by your frivolous escapades.Â
At your silence, Sprout continues on, âWe always tell the children that their Houses will be like their second family during their time at Hogwarts.â You hear her draw in a long breath, gingerly placing the flitter tentacles on the ground. âI hope you understand that the same is true for the professors. We take care of each other, substitute teacher or not.â Pomonaâs hand is leaden on your shoulder. âAfter all, you were our student before anything else. The Sorting Hat gave you to me, and what a darling blessing you have been, even until today. When I look at you now, I see the same young first-year student who was afraid of everything and afraid to come out of their shellâbut do not forget, I will always be on my childrenâs side no matter what.â
How poignant that the first person who truly welcomed you to Hogwarts, is one of the only people who can see through you despite your protective barriers.
And so, the puppet show beginsâlike a lifeless ragdoll, you peel the deer-leather gloves off your hands, blinking away any hints of emotion. You stand tall before Pomona, dusting flecks of soil off your dovetail skirt. âNo one has been on my side. Not then, not now,â you say as you snobbishly arrange the brim of your sunhat. âBut do not be mistaken, Pomona. I have been fine on my own and a change still remains to be seen.âÂ
In another life, you would have happily embraced her comfort and affectionâbut the fate of a lonely starlet is cruel. Youâve made your bed of thorns and wilted roses, and there you shall lay when there is no one left but yourself.Â
âToday was lovely, Pomona, thank you.â It is one truth youâve permitted yourself to offerâa shred of humanity in exchange for her kindness. The dirt beneath your nail beds is real; so is the ache in your back and the sweat dripping from the side of your head to your chin. But you cannot feel any more than thatâyou forbid yourself. The Mandrakes fall silent, and you bid your goodbyes to the professor.
The sunlight on your skin is real as you step outside, and so is the sound of clamoring students heading for the greenhouse. Sixth-year students from Hufflepuff and Ravenclaw hurry down the hill. Their unrestrained laughter and carefree smiles are real. And so is the unwashed blood on your hands; the killing curses that have fallen so easily from your lips, and the ghosts that haunt you as the moon arises. Perhaps, you could withstand it all if it means the children would live through a real future without the sins of people like you.Â
(But why is it that every time you distance yourself. . . there always seems to be someone calling out to you?)Â
Cedric Diggory, your godson, yells for you with a grin that stretches from ear-to-ear. You watch as his yellow scarf swings with each hasty step he takes. Cedric crosses the gap between you in under a minute, strands of wavy, brown hair sweeping over his glimmering eyes. Itâs an unsolved mystery as to how you and him were sorted in the same House.Â
âYour shirt is wrinkled, Cedric,â you tut, straightening his tie. âDo you go riding Hippogriffs in your spare time?âÂ
Cedric chuckles wholeheartedly. âFather told me to tell you that youâve been invited this weekend for a dinner at Hogsmeade,â he says, cocking his head as a cheeky simper erupts across his face. âThat is, if you arenât busy.âÂ
You raise a browâsly little badger, he was. Harrumphing uppishly, you swivel to turn your back to him and say, âTell your father that Iâm choosing the venue, lest he chooses some primitive pub in the village.â You draw out the distance between you and Cedric, tossing your parting words into the chilly breeze, âTell him Iâm paying for everything, too.âÂ
His hearty laughter cuts through the hillside as you make your way back to the castle. Thinking you have the last word, you donât expect him to yell once more:Â
âIâm going to enter the tournament this year!âÂ
Youâre certainly taken by surprise, but you donât slow your pace. An imperious smirk tugs at your lipsâwell, at least you know where youâre placing your bets.Â
A day before the esteemed guests are set to arrive, you run into Sirius and Jamesâmuch to your annoyance. Itâs just your luck that the evening prior you were hunting down a known member of Greybackâs pack. You played a little cat-and-wolf deep in the depths of a forest, hungrily isolating him from the rest of its family. Though this lycan was unturned, you walk away with claw marks on your back. Still, you hope that Greyback licks his wounds and feels the burden of this particular loss. However, you feel that dealing with James and Sirius will be much more difficult than bringing a werewolf to its knees.
After all, this is the first time you come face-to-face with them, nearly a month after your incident in the infirmary.Â
âAuror Black, Auror Potter,â you say liltingly, the rhinestone tassel clinking in your hair as you swirl to face them with a devious leer. âWhat can I do for you today?âÂ
Sirius scoffs in disbelief. âSo itâs like that, then? Like nothing ever happened?âÂ
âPartying around, missing your bloody classes, parading all over the castle like youâre better than everyone else. We thought you changed. You know, I actually thought there could be something real to you under all that,â he punctuates his words with a harsh laugh, sneering at your blinding jewelry. âGuess we were the fools, eh?âÂ
James stares at Sirius, a grim expression flashing across his face, before he shakes his head. âIt just doesnât make sense. What we saw at the infirmaryâthatâs not something anyone forgets.â He gazes at you with grief in his eyes. âItâs like youâre two different people.âÂ
âItâs disappointing, really,â Sirius bites, his lips curling into a snarl.
Theyâve made it all too easy for you.Â
âWhat are you so frustrated for, darlings?â you say in faux sympathy, stalking towards them as you tap at your chin; a sickly-sweet pout on your lips. âWhat were you hoping for? For all of us to become friends? Weâre not children anymore, my loves!â you exclaim histrionically. âDid you actually fall for my little trick at the infirmary? The care parcel I left your husband? Didnât you know my mother drafted the anti-werewolf bill?â
Sirius staggers.
âThe real me?â you giggle incredulously. âWhat you see is what you get, dearestâdonât go searching for what doesnât exist. Itâs not my fault you fall so easily for a pretty face.â You tilt your head, fluttering your eyes as you drag your nail up Jamesâs chin. âNot every damsel is in distress, you know.â
Your eyes slice towards Sirius with a coy smile. âMaybe if you had followed your head more often than your naive, little lion heartsâyou wouldnât have driven Regulus to his death.âÂ
James recoils away from your touch just as Sirius flinches, eyes flashing with angerâSirius digs his nails into his palms, chest heaving as he stares at you in disgust. You expect another stab in the chest from him, and so you lift your head up high, daring him to say another word. (You hope they stopped trying after thisâthat they would leave you alone to rot in your stage of lies and dutiful sacrifice.) But you donât plan for James to step forward, shielding Sirius away from your gaze.
âYou are, without a doubt, the ugliest creature Iâve ever seen,â says James, words dripping in sincere revulsion. âCanât believe I thought anything less than that.âÂ
You smile widely, despite the tightening sensation in your chest. âAre we done here now, gentlemen?â
They would learnâthis is who you are beneath your masks and pretenses.Â
The thirtieth of October brings about a cold youâve never felt before. As you await the arrival of the Beauxbatons and Durmstrang students, the outside corridors are teeming with students, eyes hungry with anticipation. You lean against the wall, exhausted physically and mentally, hugging your worn-out shawl closer to your shoulders.Â
The skies are exceptionally gray todayâyouâve had to drag yourself out of bed earlier this morning, limbs heavy as lead. The teacup in your grasp is scalding to the touchâyou find that nothing hurts more than the ache in your heart. The children are particularly rowdy at the momentâeach time you close your eyes, you see the hatred in James and Siriusâs eyes.Â
Has loneliness ever felt so suffocating before?Â
When winged horses make their way from the heavens, the clamoring grows louderâyet all you hear are their words.Â
âYou are, without a doubt, the ugliest creature Iâve ever seen.â
âI actually thought there could be something real to you under all that.â
You would not weepânot for yourself, and not certainly for them.Â
Sometimes, you wondered if you were hurting too much to even be considered alive. Did your marked flesh even count as skin anymore? Worthy to be cherished with gentle touches and tender lips? How much more did you have to do until the guillotine finally fell?Â
When does duty end? And when does life begin?Â
Madame Maxine and her drove of Veelas descend from their carriage; awestruck gasps and intrigued murmurs echoing along the corridor. When the Beauxbatons Headmaster comes to stand before you, you instinctively sink into the role of a diplomatic hostâthat is, after all, why Dumbledore hired you. With a nod of your head and a pleasing smile, you greet the first of your guests to arrive.Â
âWhat a relief that you made it safely to Hogwarts, Madame Maxime,â you tell her in a saccharine-sweet tone. âIf you please, Mister Filch here will guide you to the dormitories where youâll be staying while Hagrid will take care of your horses.âÂ
You want to go to sleep already.Â
Finally, as a large ship emerges from the Great Lakeâa sense of relief floods through you. Only one more person to greet and youâll finally be able to return to your quarters, welcoming feast be damnedâyouâve done your part for today. Igor Karkaroff and his students make their presence known; imposing statures and foreboding glares. The castle nearly crumbles from Viktor Krumâs entrance, Hogwartsâ Quidditch players eager to catch a glimpse of the prodigal Seekerâwell, you could care less about such a barbaric sport.Â
Karkaroff presents you a slimy leer as he presses a kiss to the back of your palmâthe dig of his long nails into your skin is a pleasant feeling, to your surprise. âDumbledore did not inform me we would be greeted by such beauty. We would have arrived earlier, otherwise.âÂ
You miss your cat.Â
(Siriusâs eyes roll all the way to the back of his head when you giggle and melt in Karkaroffâs wretched compliments.)Â
You want to die.
â
Chaos erupts the next day. The Goblet of Fire has chosen a fourth championâHarry Potter himself. No one is more enraged than his mother, Lily. The Aurors on duty, James and Sirius, struggle to contain the studentsâ horror and verbal lashings. Some have taken to accusing James himself of putting Harryâs name in the goblet in the name of family prestigeâpredictably, itâs Draco and Pansy who lead that revolt. But you donât expect for Dean Thomas and Seamus Finnegan to be swayed by the baseless gossip. So thereâs a crack in the prideâs loyalty to one another, you surmise to yourself.Â
Like a Niffler drawn to shiny objects, you follow the Headmasters and professors into a room, away from all the ruckus.Â
âDid you put your name into the Goblet of Fire, Harry?â the wise Professor Dumbledore asks calmly.
The atmosphere is beyond wintryâyou note the biting criticisms in their eyes, particular between Fleur and Madame Maxime. Lily hides Harry from their scrutiny, proud and unyielding despite being shorter than the Beauxbaton champion. Across the room, you find Severus and Remus engaged in a muted, albeit wound up argument.Â
Everyone looks to the morose Bartemius Crouch Sr., awaiting his decision with a bated breath. You sympathize with the manâfor a fleeting momentâfor if looks could kill, Siriusâs tempestuous glare would have dragged him six feet under.Â
âWe must follow the rules, and the rules state clearly that those people whose names come out of the Goblet of Fire are bound to compete in the tournament.â
Your blood runs cold.
Ludo Bagman appears to be pleased with his colleagueâs decisionâyou see no reason why he shouldnât be, heâs only ever put his odds in the thrill of the game. âWell, Barty knows the rule book back to front!âÂ
Dimwitted fool.
You scoff. âIn a room full of Headmasters and Ministry leaders, surely one of you can find a way to unbind young Potterâs name from the tournament.â
âErr. . .â Ludoâs gaze flickers from Dumbledore to Crouch Sr. Madame Maxime and Karkaroff nod emphatically in agreement, forcing him into a corner with a ragged chuckle. âThereâs nothing to be done, the Goblet of Fire has gone out.â
âDo you or do you not have a wand, Mister Bagman?â you reply, piqued; crossing your arms over your chest. âIf the rules were written by a wizard, surely it can be unwritten by a wizard. Teaching an Unforgivable to a first-year would be more difficult than that.â âIt is not as simple as that, Professor!â Bagman cries. âBut you are welcome to try a hand at it.â
âSo we just let a child run to his death, then?â you seethe, nostrils flaring. âI never knew the Ministry was teeming with incompetent men. Shall I steal your job from under your nose, Ludo dear?â
(Harryâs brows pinch in confusion. He does not expect for you to care so much.)
âHeâs got to compete. Theyâve all got to compete. Binding magical contract, like Dumbledore said. Convenient, eh?â says Alastor Moody as he limps across the room, flask in his hand. You fall silent, an unnerving chill slithering down your spine. Something about this man did not sit right with you. You pull the sleeves of your blouse further down your arms.Â
âMaybe someoneâs hoping Potter is going to die for it,â Moody growls in response to Fleur. âOver my dead body!â James snarls, veins rigid against the column of his throat, eyes simmering in anger.Â
âYes, yes, Potter, we all know youâd die for your son,â Moody remarks offhandedly, taking a large gulp of the liquor in his flask.Â
âIt seems to me, however, that we have no choice but to accept it,â Dumbledore counters in an attempt to placate the tense atmosphere. Lilyâs sharp sob engulfs the outraged clamors of the two other Headmasters. âBoth Cedric and Harry have been chosen to compete in the Tournament. This, therefore, they will do. . . .â
The glass sculpture of a long-haired mermaid shatters into fragmented pieces as you bump into the table; just about ready to flee before you do anything rash like point your wand at Crouch Sr. himself. Before you exit the room, you catch sight of Cedricâs eyesâworry and uncertainty pooling within his gaze. You slam the door hard enough until the wood splinters.Â
Harry Potter is imprisoned by his fate as the Chosen Oneâand it seems time has imprisoned everyone at Hogwarts, yourself included.Â
The first task for the tournament arrives defiantly, without care for Harry and his loved ones. You have only been to the Quidditch field twiceâtoday happens to be the second time. Everyone is bundled in their wooliest sweaters and warmest jackets; although, Hermione did have her portable bluebell flames. You stare at it with envy.Â
âOi! Professor, over here!â One freckled Weasley twinâFred, you guessâbeckons for you to sit by their swarm of red and gold. He pushes Ron away to make room for you beside Minerva.Â
âThank you, Mister Weasley,â you say quietly, sniffles falling from your frost-bitten nose.Â
Itâs quite oddâyouâd have expected to be sitting with Professor Sprout and Amos, amongst your sett of badgers. But itâs not half-bad. You donât erupt in flames when Minerva holds onto you, shrieking, as Fleur narrowly avoids her dragon, awoken from its trance. You donât particularly mind either, when the Weasley twins bump their chests and holler into Ginervaâs ear when itâs time for Viktor Krum to face the Chinese Fireball.
âWe got a traitor here!â George snickers when you flinch and yelp for Cedric as he fights shy of the Short Snoutâs fire, and cheering breathlessly when he eventually captures the golden egg. You glare at George mirthfully, wondering where your fight and heat has gone.Â
âPlease excuse me for a moment,â you say, rising to your feet as the judges mull over their scores for Cedric. âMinerva,â you nod to her, and she offers you a hint of a wrinkly smile. (McGonagall thinks that if anyone can talk back in the face of a Ministry chairman in defense of her students, then perhaps sheâs misjudged a professor or two.)Â
Your cheeks grow numb from the cold as you cross the swarm of Beauxbatons students, past the flock of Ravenclaws. Harryâs match is underscored by the deafening cheers; the stands rumbling from the yells for his name. Youâre nearing the territory of yellow banners and black insignias, trumpets blowing into your ears, when the clamor and hurrahs turn into terrified gasps; students rushing back from the edge. You donât understand the fuss until you look back at the arena.Â
Harryâs dragon has broken free from its chains.Â
You join Professor Sprout and Severus in herding the students away from dangerâspotting James and Sirius across the arena, hastily reinforcing the protective barriers around the stands, uttermost precision in their wandwork. While Harry dances a life-threatening waltz, you hurriedly clear out the space closest to the banisters. Your breath hitches as the Hungarian Horntail wreaks havoc below, inducing quakes and showers of fire.Â
But more frightening than any dragon, you hear the bloodcurdling scream of a student.
âDaphne!âÂ
The Greengrass heiress, Astoria, cries vehemently as Draco holds her back from rushing to the front of the stands.Â
You scour the area franticallyâthere, only a few feet away from you, lies a fear-stricken Daphne Greengrass, staring right into the eyes of the Horntail. Its teeth bare, growls like thunderstorms, and the rising scent of embers and ashes.Â
âDaphne, get away from there!âÂ
You hardly hesitateâyou run to her, desperation pushing at your legs, terror holding your heart captive. As the dragon screeches in preparation to breathe fire, the nearest Aurors miles awayâeach gasp for air is torn from your throat. In a blink of an eye, you grab Daphne into your arms and shield her from the Horntail. The crowd bellows in frightâyou close your eyes, preparing for even the most excruciating of pain.Â
But there is nothing.Â
Just you, Daphne, the Hungarianâand Remus whoâs pointed his wand at the onslaught of flames, redirecting it up into the sky as Harry grabs the Horntailâs attention, now zipping freely on his broom.Â
Remus looks back at the both of you in relief, drawing his wand back in his pocket. âAre you alright?â he asks you first, a weary tenderness in his eyes.Â
You tear your gaze away from him, checking on Daphne instead; cupping her pale cheeks and wiping the tears from her eyes. âAre you alright, Daphne? What do you feel? Come, darling, letâs get you to Madam Pomfreyâcan you stand? Here, put your arm around my shoulder.âÂ
âTâThank you, Professor,â stammers Daphne as Astoria rushes to her, the pair of sisters blubbering and crying. The blonde-haired girl nods to you and Remus, âBoth of you. IâI donât know how Iâll repay such kindness.âÂ
âDonât worry, Daphne,â says Remus, smiling as he offers her a lemon-flavored treat.Â
He steps back to make way for Lily to fuss over Daphne, his eyes straying to you, oozing with sincerity as he rubs his handkerchief to your cheek. He grins at you and your heart skips a beat. âMy kindness is freely given.â
Has kindness ever felt so real before?
act iv. you wouldnât last an hour in the asylum where they raised me.Â
âTHE CHILDREN ARE terrified, Missus Fawley. Just last week, we had another incident. All the windows in the kitchenâshattered! The little ones couldnât sleep for days.âÂ
You hear the orphanage matronâs voice behind the bedroom door. Youâre allowed but a moment of playing with your ragged, plush animals, before the matron comes barging inside. (How rude, you think to yourself. Hasnât she ever heard of knocking before?) Although, unlike all the other times, she has a lady right on her tail. This woman is much taller than Sister Thompson, certainly more beautiful-looking, too. Not that you have anything against Sister Thompsonâs wrinkly face and foul smile.Â
No, this woman walks with her head held up high, dressed in a burgundy leather coat that clearly costs more than the thin rag you call a shirt. This must be Mrs. Fawley, then. Her black heels click against the rusty, wooden floor; you watch impassively as she bends down to your eye level. She takes you by surprise when she grabs ahold of your chin, slowly turning your head from side to side.Â
âSo this is the child,â Mrs. Fawley muses, red lips quirked. Haunting blue eyes stare back at you; hair dark as ebony falling to her waist. âYou may leave, Sister Thompson. I would like to get to know my future ward.â
The matron widens her eyes. âMissus Fawley, I strongly advise againstâ!â
âYou misunderstand me, Sister Thompson,â says Fawley, a sharp edge to her voice. âThat was not a request.â
A strange sense of victory fills you when Sister Thompson bows her head in response, tossing you just one sour glare before exiting the room. The rickety door clicks shut and Mrs. Fawley returns her attention to you with a low hum, eyes raking over your form once more. You wonder what sheâs thinking about; wondering if itâs the vast difference between her neatly-pressed clothing and your rumpled dress shirt. Many have visited the orphanage before, but none have spared you a second glance, not with Sister Thompson scaring them all away. (You suppose there is no appeal in adopting a child with temperamental issues who can make other girlsâ noses bleed.)
âShow me,â Fawley commands, breaking the quietude; her voice stern, yet hypnotic. Much like the first notes of a pied piperâs song. For a few moments, you donât understand what sheâs asking for, until realization dawns upon you. You drop the plush toyâs limbsâseconds later, the teddy bear waves its hand as though itâs gained a soul. If this had been a wooden doll with a long nose, it would be saying: âIâm a real boy!â
Fawley chuckles, leaning back with a pleased look. Your head falls to the side in confusionâwhen you had shown this little trick to Daisy Anne and Annaliese, theyâd begun to throw stones at you, screaming and saying that you were a witch. You donât try to play with the other children anymore after that. Rather than being afraid, Missus Fawley seems to be happy with you. âMy name is Agatha Fawley, special adviser to the Wizengamot, daughter of the Sacred Twenty-Eight,â she tells you, and you donât have a lick of comprehension. âWhat do you know about witches and wizards, darling?â âI donât know, maybe. . .â You scrunch your nose, making the stuffed elephant twirl the bear with just a glanceâFawley tilts your chin upwards, demanding your utmost attention. âThat they arenât real? Or if they are, they should be burnt at the stake?â
Agatha Fawley hisses, a low sound that sends shivers down your spine. You wonder if youâve angered her. The toys fall back to the floor lifelessly. âDamned Mugglesâ! Is that what they teach these days?â She shakes her head. âNo, never mind. What matters is what happens from now on.â âAre you going to adopt me?â you dare to ask, gaze falling to the floor, heart hammering against its confinements.
âI will,â she affirms and your eyes grow wide, breath stuttering in your throat. âBut if we are to become familyâthere is one thing you must do for me.â
âAnything!â You all but scream in her ear, a plea for her to take you away from the orphanage; far, far away from hurtful words and a room that echoes your loneliness back to you.Â
âNever lower your eyes.â She smiles, teeth bared into a snarl, reminiscent of a prowling fox. âYou are magic, my darling. And I will be your mother. No one on this earth can make you kneel in surrender.â
You believe her.
You believe her with all your heart.
But, you would learn that even monsters can call themselves âmotherâ and embrace you with open arms.Â
The Fawley Manor is largeâlarger than the orphanage, and that was a place you couldnât fully explore due to its largeness. There must be a thousand rooms, as far as the eyes can see. Itâs like a princess castle coming to lifeâakin to the ones youâve read about in storybooks. Missus Fawleyâs home nearly touches the sky. There are tall trees, wide grassfields, and glimmering lakes. You gasp and cover your eyes with your hands as the chauffeur drives past the marble sculpture of naked ladies. (âThink of them as Goddesses bare to the mortal eye, dearest,â says Fawley when you yelp and sink into the leather seats.) Then, the family butler, maids, and chef come to greet you, all smiling at the new addition to the manor.Â
You meet Elsie, the house elfâyour first real encounter with magic. Well, besides Missus Fawley turning paper into crystalline butterflies in the car. Elsie is a tiny, wrinkly creature who wears five different-colored knitted hats atop her head. She canât seem to stop shuddering while speaking, too, as if drenched in cold, invisible water. But you look into her big eyes and you decide to be her friend forever.Â
âGet settled into your room, and then weâll have you acquainted with the rest of the staff,â Fawley says after she ushers you into a roomâa bedroom just for you, where you wonât have to listen to anyone elseâs snoring or fight to the death for a blanket on a cold winter storm. The bed is bouncy and soft, not unlike the cardboard theyâd given you at the orphanage. Your shelves are stocked with toys and books.Â
Then, you remember that in exchange for all this, you must do your best in school. That is one thing you arenât looking forward to.Â
But, how bad could a school be if itâs filled with magic?Â
You happily imagine smelly trolls, dashing unicorns, talking ghosts, and floating crayons.Â
For your first week in the manor, you enjoy glazed desserts, fluffy pillows, and silken clothingâand on your second week, you are reminded of your duty to the family youâve been brought into. Something bigger than studying in a faraway magic castle. Missus Fawley introduces you to her long line of ancestors. You stumble on your footing as the portraits shuffle around and gaze upon you with curiosity, some with a more heated glare than others. They call you a funny term as you walk past. Mudblood. But, Fawley tells you not to worry. You are now her child before anything else.Â
The family crest is chiseled with gold; you squint your eyes to make sense of the inscription: Virtus in Arduis.
âVirtue in hardships,â Agatha explains in her dulcet tone. As you featherly trace the emblem with your fingers, Fawley leans down to your height, clearing her throat; her expression impossible for you to read. âI brought you to this family because I saw potential in you. I sensed great magic from your person. But we all have our duties. Magic gives, and magic will take.â
âThe wizarding world is in grave danger,â she tells you firmly, gripping the curve of your jaw with an intensity that frightens you. âWill you help me fight for the greater good?â
You blink.
You just got here and now you have to fight for a world that you never even knew that existed?
âGreater good?â you echo in disbelief. âF-Fight? Fight who? Iâve never even fought in my life! Making Daisy Anneâs nose bleed w-was just an accident!âÂ
âI will be with you every step of the way,â she vows fiercely, the tips of her nails digging into your cheeks. âTell me, do you understand? You will do what is right without any recognition at all. Think of it as a performance, my love. And Iâm preparing you for your role in this world starting now.âÂ
The ingĂ©nue in this act you have to play involves studying endlessly, practicing your wand work until Fawley is satisfied, and familiarizing yourself with every shelf in the library from dawn until dusk. You donât understand why you must memorize every charm and every incantationâbut Missus Fawley reminds you that you are bound to her and your responsibilities. You donât want to go back to the orphanage, cold and aloneâso, you acquaint yourself with parchments and quills, swallowing the discomfort when the nib harshly rubs your skin raw.Â
On your tenth birthday, Missus Fawley gifts you with a closet overflowing with chiffon, taffeta, and organza. Lace parasols, pretty shoes, and wide-brimmed sun hats. The chef surprises you with a three-layered cake, the constellation icing charmed to flicker like real stars in the night. Itâs the best birthday youâve ever had. For the first time, you feel like your life is actually celebrated.Â
The next day, your adoptive mother says with utmost exigency, âThis time next year, you shall be off to Hogwarts, but that means your debut in society is drawing near. The wizarding world will officially acknowledge you as my child.â
âWhen that happens, vultures will flock to you as though you were a corpse.â Her eyes flash dangerously. âAnd you will become one, unless you learn how to fend for yourself. The most ruthless of us all can be adorned in pearls and dressed in ball gowns. Appearance is everything in this worldâdo not let them see that you are afraid.âÂ
And so, you donât tell her that sheâs petrified you to the bone.
âAs the sole heir to my fortune and properties, you must understand how to navigate, not only the wizarding world, but this treacherous domain, as well.â Missus Fawley straightens your back, harshly tapping you once more to spread your legs at a more acceptable distance. âTo be envied by allâthe perfect host must always be ready to receive their guests with attention and politeness.â
When you wince, or move to massage your sore muscles, she barks at you, âYou must always be composed, even in near-death. If you crumbleâif you let even a single person know what youâre truly feeling, all this will be for naught.â
The burden of her words is heavier than the textbooks she shoves in your hold.Â
âControl them before they can control you,â Fawley explains as the seamstress measures your waist and arms. âExert your influence in a conversation. Not only in words, but your stature. Present yourself accordingly. Jewelry and clothing can be your armor when you cannot draw your wand.â
You grumble under your breath when the seamstress accidentally pokes you with a needle for the nth time.Â
âSmile when flattered, giggle when offered a dance, and curtsy when greeted.â Fawley glares daggers at you when you hiss in pain. âBut most of all, do not let any of those cretins know that you are fully aware of the power you wield over them. Anyone can be a puppeteer if they want to be. Youâll just be the greatest of them all.â
(But even a master of puppets has someone pulling their strings from behind the curtains.)
Elsie stays up with you each night, carefully pouring ice-cold water over your head, and playing with the floating bubbles to distract you from the ache in your legs and arms. âElsie will give Master her hat!â the young elf says one evening, pulling the topmost beanie from her head and laying it on yours. She tells you a bedtime story before tucking you beneath the covers of your queen-sized bed. You fall asleep to the sound of grasshoppers chirping and portraits murmuring to one another.Â
Then, you get your first taste of a pureblood skirmish. Missus Fawley had taken you to Diagon Alley, months away from the first of Septemberâa letter in your hand with all the materials a first-year would need for their classes. Safe to say, youâre more than excited. (âOh, mother, look!â you exclaim, pointing to the various shopsâand also remembering the rule of calling Agatha mother out in public. âA sweet shop! Fortescueâs ice cream parlor! Mother, can we go there? Please, please, please!â) Fawley smiles at your wide-eyed wonder, your hand in hersâtoday is a special one, she decides. Youâre allowed a bit of fun. Especially since youâve shown unfathomable progress in your studies.Â
You get your very first wand at Ollivandersâand now this world of grumpy goblins and jumping chocolate frogs becomes even more real. You hardly let go of your wand, a tingle of exhilaration running through you each time you brush your fingers against the finely-carved wood. Even Missus Fawley is pleased with the wand that chooses you. Later, youâll be given three hours to practice your charms again, but you find that you donât mindânot when youâve learned that you can now read books under the covers when Elsie turns the lights off.
As you exit the shop, breathless and flushed with a hunger to explore more of this world youâve been given access to, you and Fawley run into one of her friends. This must be one of the scary people sheâs warned you about. Sharp cheekbones, unfriendly gray eyes, and a stern demeanor. You immediately suck in a breath and school your face just as Agatha has taught you.Â
âWalburga!â Fawley greets with a lovely smile, but you notice that it doesnât reach her eyes, not like when she smiles at you for growing another inch taller. She brings her hand onto your shoulder. âWhat a pleasant surprise, my dear.â She peers at the two young boys hiding behind her, much like you were doing now. âOh, my! Is it that time already? Iâd forgotten young Sirius was set to go to Hogwarts this year. You must be overjoyed.âÂ
Walburga is a tall lady, taller than Agatha, even. She hums, lips quirked, chin held up high. âFawley,â Walburga responds, rather displeased. âTalking my ear off, as usual.â Her trenchant eyes land on you and her smile curves into a sneer. âAnd who might this little one be?âÂ
You risk a glance at Missus Fawley before offering the other woman a sweet, half-curtsy. âMadam Black, how do you do?â you smile at her, gaily revealing your name and the gap in your front teethâthe two boys snicker and your eyes instantly narrow into a glare.Â
Walburga stares you down harshly. âHow adorable.â Her eyes slice to the two boys behind her. âSirius, Regulus, introduce yourselves.âÂ
Missus Fawley laughs, a grating soundâmuch like warning bellsâas her eyes flash dangerously at her, hand tightening on your collarbone. âWhat a relief to know that Sirius will at least have one friend already before they arrive at the castle.âÂ
âButâoh, dear, look at the time.â Agatha quickly casts the Tempus charm before looking at you aghast, eyes wide as saucers, mouth parted dramatically. âI promised the Daily Prophet a photoshoot today! It is my thirty-first birthday soon, after all. Iâd give you tips on how to capture this look, but, Walburga, it seems youâre embodying the housewife fashion perfectly.â
âTa-ta!â She plants two, airy kisses on Walburgaâs cheeks before waving the three goodbye.Â
âThat,â Fawley whispers into your ear as she snuggles the side of your face. ââis exactly how to do it.â Â
You collapse in your bed that night, wondering just what youâve gotten yourself into and what kind of world youâre about to live in.
How confusing.
All this time, you thought that Missus Fawley had been preparing you for an intense entrance exam. Why else would she make you study twenty-five hours a day and eight days a week? But as it turns out, all you had to do was sit on a chair and have Professor McGonagall put a talking hat on your head.
âHufflepuff!â the Sorting Hat proclaims, and the table of yellow and black welcomes you with open arms. You sit next to a boy named Amos Diggory. Later in the night, youâll share a dormitory with a kind girl named Amelia Bones.Â
(Hogwarts is the best!)Â
The holidays arrive in the blink of an eye and you find yourself standing at the steps of the manor once more. Agatha Fawley waits for you by the door, engulfing you instantly in a hug that shields you from the falling snowflakes and biting winds. Hot cocoa with marshmallows and gingerbread cookies await you in the grand dining room; you even get a crotchety greeting from Isolde Fawley the Thirdâs portrait. Elsie crumples to the floor and sobs at your arrival.Â
âSo you were sorted there,â Fawley mutters to herself, a worried expression contorting her face. The fireplace crackles as a winter storm rages outside the manor. You lay on her lap as she absentmindedly pats your head. Stories of your first few months at Hogwarts fall from your lips without pause. âThis would go smoother if you had been sorted in Slytherin, however; but no matterâitâs not what I expected, but we can make do. The Diggorys and Bonesâ are purebloods, so maybe not all hope is lost. But you need to get more acquainted with the Greengrasses and the Malfoys, Druella Blackâs daughters as well.â
You hide your frown against her legs. You really liked Amos and Susan, Bellatrix was just downright mean to everyone, even calling this one girl, Lily, a Mudblood, too. But if mother wanted you to try, you might, but only once. If Bellatrix didnât want to be your friend, then thereâs no helping that unhinged witch. (At least the Prewett twinsâ pranks were funny. Bellatrix once snuck inside the Ravenclaw tower to leave a dead pigâs head in the girlsâ dormitory just because.)
On the twenty-fifth of December, Agatha Fawley throws a gala just for youâmasqued as a fundraiser for Muggle children in need. (None of the families cared about them, you would realize later on.) The ground nearly rumbles from the number of guests sheâs invited. From your bedroom window, you spot a few familiar faces. Sirius Black, who stands out from the crowd like a pale bean sprout; his cousin, Bellatrix, whoâs already taken to yelling at the staff; Lucius Malfoy, the Flints, and the Parkinsons. Your head goes dizzy.Â
As long as you donât trip during your entrance, everything should be fine, right? Right?
(You one-hundred percent trip in front of everyone as you descend the stairs. The sound of James Potter and Sirius Blackâs laughter haunts you.)
But other than that, the Yule event goes by smoothly. You donât fall flat on your face when greeting Cygnus Black and Druella Black nĂ©e Rosier, and mother is thoroughly satisfied when you smile in the face of Walburga Black and Abraxas Malfoy. You stay in the corner after welcoming your guests, sitting in your chair like an abstract painting forbidden to touch; whilst the Prewett twins and James teased Elsie until she cried from anxiety. Sirius also goes out of his way to congratulate you for growing all your teeth in.Â
You donât understand why Mother is so scared of these people.
But youâll understand virtue in hardships soon enough when you receive your first tutoring in ballroom dancing. Instead of sapphire earrings or a trip to France, Missus Fawley has a different gift in mind for your fifteenth birthday. She surprises you with a tutorâyouâre bewildered at first, arguing that youâve consistently been at the top of your class. (âMadam Hawthorne is not here for your academics, my darling,â Fawley explains with her red-lips stretched in a foreboding smile. âDance is a beneficial skill for any host to have. Youâll practice until your footwork is perfect. You will dance until I say you can stop. And when your feet are aching and bleeding, you will keep dancing.â)Â
Each night for your summer holiday, you go to bed, sobbing into your pillows, body trembling from Madam Hawthorneâs cane.Â
Everything changes on the eve of your sixteenth birthday.
Like all the years before, Missus Fawley invites the entirety of the pureblood society to the manor.Â
You stay with Narcissa and Andromeda, gently placating their concerns when they ask about your unnatural quietnessâtruthfully, you could no longer breathe in the flounced dress youâve been forced to wear; the sides of your feet raw from constantly practicing with Madam Hawthorne, head aching from the lights and obnoxious perfumes; stomach gurgling. Bags under your eyes from revising endlessly for your N.E.W.T.S.Â
Eyes drooping and neck craning from exhaustion, you donât at all expect for James Potter to emerge from the crowd; wavy, brown hair sweeping over his glasses, wine-colored suit melting into his dark skin. He holds out his hand to you with a boyish grin. âMay I have this dance?âÂ
You blink, frozen solid for a few moments until Narcissa softly nudges your side. âY-Yes, if you must,â you splutter, placing your palm in his.Â
He leads you to the dance floor as the orchestra plays a song perfect for a waltz along a flower field; your eyes glued to his back. The chandelier hangs overhead as James settles your arms around his neck in one swift motion. You almost step on his feet, spluttering your gratitude when he steadies you by the waist, the heat of his hands permeating your layers of clothing.Â
âIsnât it odd that the birthday celebrant wasnât dancing all this time?â he says, pulling you in for a twirl.Â
âI assume the others were all too afraid to deal with my mother,â you reply timidly. âSheâs quite overprotective, you see.âÂ
âWho? That tall lady over there by Missus Black whoâs currently glaring at me?â James chuckles into your ear as you step closer to hear his heartbeat. âShe couldnât possibly terrify me.â
âLily says thank you, by the way.âÂ
âOh? For what?â
âLetting her copy off your Defense Against the Dark Arts essayâsheâs downright shite at the subject. Donât tell her I said that, though.â
You laugh along with him, and you find that you could rest in his arms forever.
But, as your dance with him comes to an end, so does your wistful reverie.Â
When most of the guests have left the scene, and when the lights have dimmed, Mother presents to you her real giftâyour debut in the wizarding society. She leads you to a room, one where youâve never ventured before. Itâs deep past the cellars, where cobwebs and dust bunnies grow. (Before you enter, Narcissa grips your hand firmly, a look of dread and urgency in her eyes. âBe brave,â is all that she says, encasing you in her arms.)Â
In this dark room, you see Abraxas and his wife, Walburga, Cygnus, the Notts, the Goyles, and more people you recognize, all dressed in their finest black cloaksâas though it were a funeral instead of a birthday. In the center of it all, is your mother, Agatha, with a man kneeling in front of her.Â
âWhat is this?â you ask in alarm, frantically searching for answers. The man struggles against his rope, binds, screams and pleas muffled by the cloth shoved in his mouth. The sight of his bruises makes you all but retch. âMother, what is going on?âÂ
Walburga is the first to step forward, her lips painted blood-red against her ashen skin, curving into an edacious smile. She cradles the back of your head to her chest. âMy lovely dear, it has been the utmost privilege watching you grow. Your mother is certainly proud of you, we all are. Tonight, just as our sons and daughters before you, we offer you our blessing on this very special day.âÂ
âYou know of the Unforgivables, right, my child?â Her voice is a sweet, ruthless cadence in your ear; her touch, like worms crawling on your skin as she places your wand in your hand. You bite down on your tongue, swallowing each breath as the walls threaten to cave in on you. Your fingers forcibly shake in terror and you worry that you might snap your wand in half if you arenât careful. âThe Cruciatus, the Imperius, andâ?â
âThe killing curse,â you breathe out, ever-so stiff in her hold. You watch as Abraxas kicks the man to the ground; you dig your nails deep into your palm to keep from flinching.Â
âThatâs right, little one,â says Walburga, tracing your jaw with a morbid sense of satisfaction. She holds your chin in place as Abraxas tears the cloth from the manâs mouth. Itâs worse now. You hear his desperate begging and his guttural cries for help. âMuggles,â she spits the word out like venom. âLook at them. Theyâre filthy. Infecting our blood with theirs.â
âKill him,â Walburga says, a delicate whisper, as though she had asked for a cup of tea. âKill him and youâll have proved your worth to us.âÂ
âNo! No, please!â The man struggles against Abraxasâs arms. âPlease! I have a family! A c-child!â
You stagger backwards, nearly losing your grip on your wand. You look to your mother for help. âIâ!â
âKill him, pet!â Bellatrix cackles from across the room, teeth bared viciously, eagerly beckoning for you to come forward. âMake sure you mean it! Otherwise it wonât hurt!â
âYou know the words,â says Walburga, lifting your pliable armâa puppeteer controlling its ragdoll. âSay it.â
The man before you is real. Heâs a real person with a real family anxiously waiting for him to come home. His children worried sick for their father. How can they just stand there and expect you to kill him? âMother, pleaseâI canât. I w-wont.â Your breathing grows labored, hot tears pricking your eyes; the man screams and yells, and the sound echoes ceaselessly in your ears. âI donât. . . I donât understand.â
Agatha Fawley closes her eyes, and you understand perfectly.Â
Each sob wrecks your body and the tears endlessly flow from your ears, you hiccup and shiver; blood pooling from the bite in your tongue. âI canât do thisâplease!â
âYou will.â
You close your eyes just as a flash of unforgiving green shoots from your wand. âAvada Kedavra!â
The man falls limp to the floor, and so does your wand. Walburga coos and drowns you in a sea of shallow praises, the men offer their congratulations, but all you hear is the sound of a lifeless body dropping to the ground.Â
A man who you just killed by your wand, in your home.Â
That night, the four walls of your bedroom bear witness to your anguishâyou cry until you throw up on the floor, body lurching and quivering on the freezing red oak.Â
âDo you get it now?â says Agatha as she enters your room, the faintest of sunlight streaming through the windows. She bends down and cups your face in her palms. âThis is your world from now on.âÂ
You rip her hands away from you, gritting your teeth. âI donât want to live in your worldânot anymore! I donât care about all this! Magic, wealth, and all these things mean nothing if I have to kill innocent people! Youâre a monster!âÂ
âGood.â Fawleyâs voice is cold as she stands up, lifting her chin as her eyes glaze impassively. âThat means youâre ready for your next lesson.â
âDidnât you hear me? I said I was done!â you retort, sore from crying.
âDonât you see?â says Fawley, pausing underneath the door frame, gaze ruthlessly slicing towards you. âWe will destroy them from the inside out. Walburga, Abraxas, Tom Riddle. All of them, one by one. That is our true duty.âÂ
As she turns to leave, she adds coldly, âReady yourself. Iâll be teaching you Occlumency during your summer break.â Then she slams the door shut, leaving you all alone in your room.Â
When you return to school after the winter holidays, youâre forced to pretend that you hadnât taken the life of an innocent Muggle.Â
âDo not let them see you are afraid.âÂ
âUnfortunately, flaming red hair and hand-me-down robes will not complement my dressâitâs crimson taffeta, you see, handcrafted only by the finest tailors in Italy,â you say dismissively to the ragtag of Gryffindors before you, Vittoria Zabini and Isadora Bulstrode giggling at your side. The Prewett boy visibly wilts and you almost give inâalmost. But everyone must play their part in this world. You know that if you show a sliver of weakness, Vittoria and Isadora will be happy enough to report to their mothersâvying for the pedestal youâve been put on by their parents.Â
For the final blow, you scrunch your nose in disgust, slamming your Divination textbook close. âCan you even afford anywhere in Hogsmeade for a date, Prewett?â
(Walburga would Avada you herself if she caught you in such a place with such a wizard. Youâre more terrified of what she might ask you to do to Gideonâsomeone she deems as a blood traitor. You refuse to utter another Unforgivable. You just wonât.)Â
âOh, you cruel wench!â Marlene McKinnon steps forward and before anyone could take another breath, she slaps you in the face. And, finally, you feel something other than the guilt of taking someoneâs life.
Your cheek stings from the impact, your ears ringing with the sound of your friends asking if youâre alright and Dorcas Meadowes roaring about how you deserved itâwell, youâre not about to disagree. You move your jaw about, cradling the side of your face as you sigh impassivelyâoh, itâs nothing compared to the etiquette lessons of Agatha Fawley. âMy mother will certainly hear about this, McKinnon.â
âYou and your mother can kiss my arse!â she shrieks, eyes ablaze.
âGideon didnât deserve that, and you know it,â Lily argues fervidly, eyes sickle-shaped as she looks back at the Prewett twinâs dejected expression. âHow could you even say that?âÂ
âHow could I not, Lily darling?â you reply off-handedly with a roll of your eyes.
Lily flinches. In her gaze, all you see looking back at you is the Muggle father who had cried out relentlessly for one last glimpse of his children. She stares at the badger emblem on your cloak with disdain, and you with a great deal of pity. âYou are, without a doubt, the ugliest creature Iâve ever seen.âÂ
She has the softest voice youâve ever heard, but it hurts you all the same.Â
Youâve scrubbed your skin raw in the bath, hoping that youâd wash the feel of your sins off your handsâitâs all for naught. Agatha might be a monster in your eyes, but youâre the fool that played right into her act.
You get to your feet, meeting her eye-to-eye. In a low whisper, lips close to her ear, you say, âThere are far worse creatures out there, Evans. Youâre lucky youâve been born only a Muggleborn.â
Fortunate that she wonât ever have to play the role that youâve been forced to. You feel an overwhelming envy towards herâeffortless beauty, pure and untainted hands, a kind heart that draws in every one and every person. Compared to her, you must be a dirtied, black swan in a lake thatâs only meant for white swans like Lily Evans.Â
And she will have more charming princes and truehearted fairies on her side than you could ever hope to gain.Â
âSay another word and I will tear your hair from that pretty head of yours,â Marlene snarls, pushing Lily behind her.
Oh, how easy they make it for you.Â
You smile in delight. âSo you think Iâm pretty?â
Marlene lunges.
(You are so tired of it all.)
Every night of your summer holiday, you spend it writhing on the floor, Agathaâs lessons on Occlumency taking its toll. She grows harsher, stricter, and more apathetic than the sun beating down on the manor windows. (âAgain!â Fawley demands as you collapse to the ground, drenched in sweat and your head numb from her probing. âDo you think the Dark Lord will be lenient with you? Get up! Weâre going again! If you want this to end, you will endure this without error!â)Â
While your peers are out swimming in lakes and racing around in Quidditch brooms, youâre stuck within the confinements of your home. But you are not that naive, youâve seen the headlines of the Daily Prophet. A coalition known as Death Eaters have begun making their mark on the wizarding society. There are rumors of a great, sinister power rising. People go missing everyday, and you worry that this might be the world that your mother has been preparing you for all this time.Â
But why you? Why must you carry this burden all alone? Who will pick up the pieces of your battered soul when the weight of your burden crushes you entirely?Â
There are times when you wish you never left the orphanage at all.Â
A week into your summer break, you find out that your mother is dying. Violent coughing, dizzy spells, jaundiced skin, her eyes bloodshot, and the healer frequenting her bedroom quarters. Youâre not allowed inside, of course, but you can hear her feeble voice and the doctorâs stern orders.Â
You also learn that sheâs absolutely insaneâbut that is a fact youâve come to terms with years ago. One night, during dinner, youâd let it slip that you have your suspicions of a classmate being inflicted with a lycanâs curse. Agatha Fawley reacts just about as one would expect her to.Â
âA werewolf? In Hogwarts?â Fawley staggers to her office, the tower of neatly-piled documents and research reports from the Ministry now fluttering to the floor. âNo, no, no. . .â she utters to herself, panic seeping within her skin. Itâs the most frazzled you have ever seen the great Agatha Fawley. You stare at her unraveling from the threshold of the room, unsure of what to do. âDumbledore has gone mad! That old loon! What was he thinking? Sheltering a beast within the castle!âÂ
âDonât worry, my dear,â says Agatha as she reaches for you, a ghastly smile on her face and a near-empty look in her eyes. Your brows pinch together in confusionâyou hadnât been worried about that student at all. âIâll have that monster out of the castle in no time. The Ministry will have no choice but to listen to me.âÂ
âThatâs it,â she mutters, haphazardly grabbing for her feather quill and blank parchment. âPerhaps a law to forbid werewolves from ever integrating into society. School, house propertiesâcan you imagine if they manage to infiltrate the Ministry? Everything Iâve worked so hard for!âÂ
âMother?â you call out hesitantly, crossing the distance, hand outstretched as Fawley slips on her footing, a muttered profanity under her breath. The woman before you is unrecognizable, a sallow casing of a moribund soul. âMother, please, Remus is no threat to the castle,â you plead, ripping her hand away from the quill. âYou canât do this!âÂ
âDo not tell me what I can or cannot do!â Agatha seethes through her teeth, chest heaving as she glowers at you. âEverything I have done, I have done for you! Yet, you still continue to fight me? I should have left you in that orphanage to rot while I had the chance!âÂ
âWell then, why didnât you?â you scream, pushing her away as the words force themselves out of your throat. âMaybe that Muggle father would have still been alive if you did! Maybe I wouldnât have to suffer so much! To hell with you and your duty!âÂ
Fawley laughs to herself, a weak and feeble sound. At first, you think itâs in response to you, but then you watch her drag her palm down her face, unblinking when her fingers appear to be drenched in blood. You take a step forward and thereâs crimson trickling down her nose, a pallid contrast against her skin. âHa,â she chuckles once more, keeling over to the ground as she stares up at the ceiling, blood on her flesh. âMerlin, what have I done? IâIâve gone too farâeven the Gods cannot save me.â
The despair in her voice is confounding. âCome here, my love,â she croaks from the floor, reaching out to you with bloodstained hands. Reluctantly, you sink to her side, gnawing on your lower lip as she cups your face in her palmsâhow many times have you been in this position before? âIâm sorry,â she sobs, shoulders trembling. âOh, my darling, I am so sorry. Iâm afraid Iâve doomed the both of us.â She traces the frame of your jaw and cheekbones. âMy child, my beautiful child. What have I done? Will you forgive me?âÂ
You realize that this must be the consequence of living in a constant lie. To be an imitation of a human person, with no room for grief, rage, fear, hope or even a semblance of love. You stay silent, drowning in the arms of your adoptive mother. âI am to die soon,â says Agatha with utmost finality, eyes boring into yours. âBut you are better than me. Braver. Far stronger than I have ever been. I know this must be the heaviest burden a child can carry, but you must understand that the fate of this world is at stake. I am so sorry, my love, but I must leave this duty to you.âÂ
She lets her head hang limply. âI-I am tired, as well. Iâve pushed away everyone and anyone for this. To do what is right, to endure what is hardâthat is what Iâve lived by all these years.â
âAnd so must you.â Agatha has been mourning all this time, but not for her life.Â
You hate her.Â
You hate her with all your heart.Â
But even monsters need a heart to breathe.Â
A month passes by in a blur, and you are now set to meet the ill-famed Tom Riddle. You know that he was a student of Professor Dumbledore; that Narcissa is extremely terrified of him, and that Lucius Malfoy idolizes him to a fault. (âThis is the moment I have been preparing you for all these years,â your mother tells you, shields of Occlumency glimmering in her deep blue eyes. âDo not let him in no matter what.â) Soon thereafter, Missus Fawley apparates the both of you to the Malfoy manor.Â
The dining room is bleak, befitting of a Malfoy; curtains drawn, fireplace idly crackling, and hushed murmurs upon your arrival. All eyes are on you, and youâre lucky to have dressed in your Sunday best. At the head of the table, you see Tom Riddle, with Abraxas and Cyprian Nott sitting on each side. You hear something large slithering across the polished floorsâyour breath hitches at the sight of a monstrous serpent curling around Tom Riddleâs chair. The glass chandelier chimes overhead and you wish it would fall from where he sits on his shrewd throne.Â
(You find Regulus Black sitting beside Narcissa, cheeks flushed, body quivering as his skin pales to a deathly color; holding onto his left arm for dear life. And, your heart just physically breaks. You donât understand why this is the world you must live in.)Â
âCome here, my dear,â Tom Riddle hisses, urging you forward with a serpentine leer in his eyes. You feel like a circus lion forced to perform its tricks.Â
Tom Riddle is handsomeâyou notice begrudgingly. A menacing kind of beauty that entices the weak and preys on the vulnerable. (You would not be one of his victims, you vow, raising your own walls against him.) His gaze drills into your ownâinstantly, you feel his magic snaking around in your head, searching for hidden truths. The sensation is staggering, dizzying, and youâre nearly brought to your knees. You clench your jaw at his Legilimencyâobstinate bastard.Â
âThis one is lasting longer than your son, Abraxas.â Riddle chuckles, his finger tracing the curve of your jaw, as Abraxas forces a smile. Finally, after what feels like an eternity, he leaves your mind. You release the breath youâve been holding for the last thirty seconds. He finds none of your secrets, and you suppress a vindictive grin. Riddle glances at your mother. âHow fascinating.âÂ
You wonder if his intrigue will keep you alive for another day or bring you closer to your death.Â
âMy Lord,â you greet windedly as you press a kiss to the cold signet of his ring. âWhat an honor to stand before you today. Although, I could have done with a more polite greeting from you.âÂ
Bellatrix snarls at you in warning. âDo not speak to the Dark Lord that way, you insolent brat!âÂ
âEnough, Bella,â Tom rasps, flicking her concern away, barely so much as sparing her a glance. âIâve no need for a little girl to come to my defense.â She visibly wilts at his dismissive words and you almost feel pity for herâalmost. Then, you remember this is the man who treats the Cruciatus curse like a treat to give away freely to childrenânow, you pity Bellatrix fully. The curly-haired girl twitches at the sight of him toying with his wand, Naginiâs forked tongue flicking in anticipation.Â
âTell me, my dear,â says Riddle, trailing his gaze down to your arm. âHas your mother arranged a marriage for you yet? Much like our dear Cissa here.â
You grow frigid in his hold. âNot at all, my Lord. Mother thought it best if I focused on my studies before anything else.âÂ
Tom hums in thought, eventually releasing you from his clutches. âI see. . . Then, have you considered other ways of pledging your allegiance to our cause?âÂ
Instinctively, you hide your left arm from his sight. âMy Lord,â you begin, wondering how much longer you can address him as such without throwing up in his lap. âThe only reason there isnât much backlash to your. . . merciful endeavors is because Mother and I have ensured that the Daily Prophetâs eyes are elsewhere. The Ministry is blindsided, and no one expects a mondaine darling to be under your influence,â you say, desperation pouring from each word.Â
You donât want to carry his Mark. Not ever. You can endure itâyou can endure it all so long as you arenât eternally condemned to his name.Â
âTake that away, and youâll face significant repercussions,â you threaten boldly. âI promise you that. They look away because of me.âÂ
For every village and family terrorized, you had shifted the publicâs attention to your facetious behavior. Throwing galas left and right, appearing out in public with various partnersâyou had done it all to bury the looming war. Rita Skeeter is at your beck and call. For every attack, your face is plastered on the front page. For every cry for help, the Ministry is busy dealing with trivial matters that your mother has proposedâsuch as anti-werewolf bills.Â
And Voldemort would never notice that youâve been thieving covert information from right under his nose and delivering it anonymously to a rising organization known as the Order of the Phoenix.Â
(Youâre also not pleased that they share similarities to your non de plume, the Firebird, but you suppose that is the least of your worries.)Â
If Molly Weasley comes across a sealed letter on the steps of Grimmauld Place, with complete details and addresses of Death Eater hiding places, it is no oneâs business but the Orderâsâand yours.Â
For every life taken, you remember that Muggle father in your motherâs cellar. It may not be today, it may not be tomorrowâbut youâll dismantle the pureblood society yourself. All of them, one by one.Â
Tom Riddle smiles, and you realize that no one threatens him and gets away with it unscathed.Â
A day before youâre set to return to Hogwarts for your seventh-year, the Malfoy Manor is pervaded by your gut-wrenching screams.Â
There you are, little Firebird with your wings clipped, writhing on the floor of Lucius Malfoyâs guest roomâthe Cruciatus curse surging through your veins like molten lava threatening to burn you from the inside out. You hear Narcissa and Missus Fawleyâs voices blend into a cacophony of panic. Theyâre shouting for various things: warm towels, bandages, essence of Dittany, and water. Regulusâs hold on you is tight, near-suffocating, even.Â
But you donât feel anything other than the mutilated flesh of your arm.Â
You scream, cry, and scream againâyou feel his magic over and over again. Branding you. The ink blends into your skinâbut itâs not your skin anymore. A part of you now will always belong to him.Â
Bile rises to your throat.Â
Tears fall from your eyes.Â
(How cold is the floor? You donât even care anymore.)
And, the worst part is that no one can see it. Riddle charmed it perfectly to coalesce against your skin tone. But you see it. You see the skull and the stupid, wriggling snake. You see Tom Riddleâs monstrous glee as he drives his wand into your armâAbraxas and Lucius holding you down as you thrash and flail. Your only reprieve was your mother was there, cradling your head to her chest, blocking out their malignant laughter. (You canât believe you never noticed, but your mother had been branded, too.)Â
âIâll. . . kill him,â you say to yourself, blood and saliva trickling from your lips. If it is the last thing youâll ever do, you will have Voldemortâs head on a silver platter.Â
âDonât be foolish,â Narcissa scolds, tipping your mouth upwards to swallow the drops of Dittany. âNone of us have the power to do that. We just have to make do with the life that weâre given.âÂ
âI promise. . . you,â you gurgle through the searing pain, gasping for air, clawing at her arms. âIâll destroy them all.âÂ
You pass out in her arms.Â
When you awake, youâre on a train to Hogwarts, left arm bandaged and hidden under the sleeve of your school robes.Â
You donât bother attending your classesâseeing no more purpose in Transfiguration and Herbology when youâre just a pawn in someoneâs, everyoneâs plans, apparently. The professors express their concern when you no longer turn in your homework or assigned projects. Once again, you barely see the need to. Your meals during breakfast, lunch, and dinner go untouched. You stay away from Narcissa, Vittoria, Isadora, Lucius, and Regulus. Your only friends, Amos and Amelia, stay away from you, too, having seen news of your promiscuity in the Daily Prophet. You scoff internallyâyouâve never even had your first kiss yet. But even that seems like a distant dream.Â
You are tired.Â
How much longer do you have to play this part? How much more of yourself do you have to give?Â
Youâre only seventeenâhow can you even hope to defeat Voldemort like this?Â
The castle walls have dulled, and you drift through the corridors like a wearisome ghost. The once colorful world that you have been brought into now pales in the face of curses, spilt blood, and the Mark on your arm. You wonder what would happenâif you just run away now.Â
Why should you be the one to bear the burdens of this duty thrust upon you? Why do people like James Potter and Sirius Black find loyalty and a real family within Hogwarts, and there is no one willing to fight for you?Â
Perhaps, you have no one else to blame but yourself.Â
Rita Skeeter publishes her article on the growing rift between you and Vittoria Zabiniâclaiming that you had stolen her beau from her.
You toss the newspaper into the fire.Â
Some nights, you donât bother returning to the Hufflepuff dormitories anymore. You know what they think. You know what they say behind your back.Â
For the third time this week, you find yourself at the top of the Astronomy Tower, legs dangling from the edge of the window, eyes blankly staring at the horizonâif you run towards there, you wonder how long it will take before they find you. The cold nips at your cheeks, but you barely feel anything other than a gnawing emptiness.
Your gaze falls to the ground below, thirty, fifty meters from where you sit.Â
Maybe. . .Â
If you move a few inches forward. . .Â
If you just fly.Â
Youâd be free.Â
âOh, I didnât know this window was occupied.â You loosely turn your head to find Remus Lupin standing before you with a crooked grin, hands shoved in his pockets as he awkwardly shuffles one foot over the other. He raises his arms up in surrender. âI guess Iâll. . . find somewhere else to brood.âÂ
I donât care.Â
Go away.Â
I want to die.
If I disappear, would you care? Would anyone?Â
You rest your head back on the windowsill, hugging your legs to your chest.Â
Starlings chirp and fly past youâhow liberating it must be, to soar in the skies. But all you can do is watch enviously. Powerless, little songbird with no more lullabies to sing and no more wings to fly with.Â
You let your weight shift over the window.Â
Maybe if you fall, you could see what itâs like to fly.Â
âH-Hey! Donâtâ!â Remus quickly snatches your hand and pulls you into his embraceâthe both of you tumbling to the floor. You feel his chest heaving, arms trembling around you, and the sound of his rapid heartbeat. His eyes are wide as he looks over your face for any injuries. âWhy would you do that? Are you mad?â
You sigh.Â
Maybe tomorrow, then.Â
âOi!â Remus pokes your shoulder. âDonât just ignore me! You scared the piss out of me, you know? Bloody hell.â His shoulders slump in relief, and he takes another peek at youâjust to make sure youâre still in front of him. âA-Are you okay?â he asks softly, afraid to spook you further away. âDo you want to talk about it or anything?âÂ
You shrug. âNothing to talk about.â
His gaze flickers from you to the window ledge. âI think thatâs a big something to talk about, honestly. B-But I get it. Really. No judgment.âÂ
An unwilling chortle escapes past your lips. Remus Lupin and his marauding bunch of lions would never understand the burden you have to carry each day for the rest of your life.
Remus scratches the back of his head with a wolfish grin. âHey. . . listen. We donât know each other all that wellâso this is going to sound terribly weird. But would you like a hug?â
He opens his arms wide enough for you to fitâand you stare at him in horror. âCâmon, then. It really seems like you need it. And honestly, I kind of need it, too, especially after a scare like that.âÂ
You stay silent.Â
He shakes his hands, beckoning you forward, golden hair flopping over his eyes. âI donât bite. Promise. One hug and weâll go on pretending like we donât know each other tomorrow. Marauderâs honor.â
âI havenât done anything to deserve your kindness,â you say with a prominent sneerâcertainly not kindness from him. It must be another prank of theirs. You wait for Peter Pettigrew and Sirius to jump out and spray you with garlic juice.Â
Remus smiles. âI think youâll find that my kindness is freely given.âÂ
You nibble on your bruised lip.Â
Could you really?Â
Maybe just this once.Â
Youâre only human, magic as you are.Â
You take one step forward.Â
Then another.Â
Another.
Until you fall right into his arms, and you inhale the scent of honey, milk raspberry chocolate, and cedarwood. The warmth of his arms around you is real. His voice is real. He whispers cruel words into your ear, âYouâre alright, love. Let it out. Iâm here.â You burrow your head deep in the crook of his neck. The sound of his heartbeat is real. He tightens his hold around you, and the ground underneath feels real. For a few moments, you donât feel like youâre floating away into oblivion.Â
Maybe youâd stay aliveâfor a few more days.Â
To do what is right.Â
To endure.Â
Perhaps, tomorrow will be easierâif such kindness is real, maybe youâre allowed to seek it for yourself every now and then.Â
But your nightmare doesnât end when youâre awakeâit takes you by the throat when you find yourself summoned to the Malfoy Manor on Hallowâs Eve.Â
Youâre not the only one caught by surprise. One by one, Tom Riddleâs followers apparate into the dining room, stumbling inside with a bewildered expression. Their Dark Lord has called for them in the dead of nightâit must be for something important. You stiffen, sinking into Luciusâs shadow. You search for your mother but she doesnât appear to be anywhere in the room. Someone brushes their hands against yoursâNarcissa. She stands by your side, face impassive, her pupils frantically trying to make sense of the situation.Â
Then, Tom Riddle finally apparates into the room, startling you for a fraction of a second. Not far behind is Abraxas, Cyprian, the Lestranges, Bellatrix, and finallyâ
Your mother.Â
Fawley looks worse for wear, her skin sinking into her bones, clothes tattered, and her face littered with bruises. Bellatrix drags her across the floor, hair wrapped around her hands.Â
You move to stop Bellatrix, anger blinding your visionâNarcissa tightens her grip on your wrist, subtly shaking her head. You rip your hand away from her.Â
âWe have found a traitor in our midst!â Bellatrix cackles, throwing your mother to the groundâyour fists clench, swallowing each lump in your throat with rage blinding your vision. âI caught the bitch helping the McKinnons escape!âÂ
âNo,â you whisper, dread knocking you backwardsâit just isnât possible. The two of you had always been careful. Bellatrix hits her again, and you have to restrain yourself from marching forward and cursing her from where she stands.Â
One moment of weakness, that is all Tom Riddle needs. He finds you in the crowd with ease. The crowd of Death Eaters part like the red sea, and you steel yourself with Occlumency before you are sharply pulled forward, the mark on your left arm blistering as though a hundred needles are driving into your skin repeatedly.
âIf the mother is a blood traitor, the child is sure to follow!â Bellatrix hisses, spit flying into the floor, her eyes gleaming with maniacal glee.
Voldemort cruelly holds your jaw in his hand, nails digging into your flesh, threatening to break through your bones. âIs this true?â he asks, drawing blood from your skin. âTell me!âÂ
âNo!â you cry out, kicking and punching to get away from his hold. âItâs notâlet me go! That is my mother! Youâre hurting her! Sheâs sick!â
âThat,â Riddleâs eyes flash with hostility, breath hot on your skin, âis a betrayer to our cause.âÂ
âSheâs not!â you scream.
âHow did she find out, then?â Voldemort flings you to the groundâimmediately, you rush to your mother, gathering her in your arms. Tom Riddle cocks his head and youâre blasted into the wallsâyou feel his Legilimency trying to force its way in, exploiting your pain and shock. But you wonât let him in. Heâll have to pry your memories from your cold, dead body.
The pain is searingâyouâre being torn apart from limb to limb. Your mark is burning, head throbbing from a concussion, and still fighting against Riddleâs magic. Through your blurry haze, you see Lucius holding Narcissa back from running to you. âWeâre not traitors!â you cry out desperately, crawling pathetically to your motherâs listless body. âI swear!â
Voldemort sneers just before he points his wand at your mother. âCrucio!â
âNo! No! Stop it! Please! Please, stop it!â you beg on the ground as your mother helplessly writhes on the floor, the Cruciatus curse reducing the once austere Agatha Fawley to a whimpering mess. âYouâre killing her!â
Tom snarls, âGood.â
Bellatrix digs her claws into your neck, her laughter resounding throughout the manorâyou swallow the sobs down your throat as she drives her wand into your flesh. âYour mummy over there is done for. But youâour precious jewel, you can still prove your loyalty to our Dark Lord.âÂ
She puts your wand and closes your fist over the woodâyour eyes grow wide as you thrash in her hold, screaming as she forces you to look at Fawley. âKill her. And you may live.âÂ
âJust say it,â Bellatrix whispers in your ear. âTwo little words. Youâve already done this before, petâthe second time should be easy enough!â
âNo!â you knock your head back into her nose, slipping away as her hold loosens and she screams profanities at youâbut to your misfortune, Voldemort captures you, like a defenseless bunny running into a starving snake.Â
âMum, wake up, please!âÂ
You cry out helplessly, sobbing as Voldemort forces you to watch the life gradually fade away from her blue eyes. Her magic envelops youâand you remember warm holidays spent by the fire, Muggle storybooks before bed, surprising you with breakfast in bed for your birthdays. Itâs a warm feeling, a stark contrast to Tom Riddleâs invasive magic. Her voice echoes in your head one last time.
âThank you for showing me what love feels like, if not for a moment. I am sorry I could not show it as a proper mother would.â
âKill her!â Voldemort rages into your ear.Â
You watch as Fawleyâs eyes drift to a close, an act of resignation. âItâs okay, my darling,â she whispers tiredly. âI. . . can rest now.â
For the second time in your life, you point your wand at someoneâs heartâthis time, itâs your motherâs.Â
âWhat are you waiting for?â Bellatrix asks, twitching menacingly. âKill her! Before I do it myself!âÂ
Thereâs a faint smile on her face.Â
âIâm. . . sorry.â
Those are Agatha Fawleyâs last words before you take away her life.
The incantation falls so delicately from your lips, an act of mercy for the woman you once called your mother and your greatest tormentor.Â
But your eyes are on one person and one person only.
Tom Riddle.Â
âAvada Kedavra!â
He will know your pain.
Not today, not tomorrow.
But youâll destroy them all, one by one.
a/n: THERE IS KISSING IN THE NEXT SCENE I PROMISE.... AND TRUST MY LILY LOVERS WE WILL GET OUR REDEMPTION ARC SKDJHFGKJH and sirius lovers too,, but yall are well-fed every day so.. next part has the yule ball, likee,, there's no way THAT becomes angsty.. if you saw a plot-hole, no you didn't just CRY and enjoy sdhgsdf... come tell me what you thought!! (if you have any constructive criticisms, just come to my dms BUT PLS BE VERY GENTLE.... oh and don't hesitate to tell me if i accidentally wrote anything super specific like height, skin color, etc.!!) i promise to better in the final part!!!! (there's only two parts to this fic.) I LOVE YEW I HOPE YOU ENJOYED THIS STORY AAAAAAAAAAAA
#poly!marauders x reader#hp angst#hp fluff#hp imagine#james potter x reader#lily evans x reader#marauders x reader#poly!marauders fluff#x reader#remus lupin x reader#sirius black x reader#reader insert#poly marauders#poly!marauders imagine#poly!marauders#sunny's hp fics#x reader angst#poly!marauders angst#poly!marauders x you#marauders fanfiction#marauders angst#marauders imagine
2K notes
·
View notes